ENGLAND,

History. THE southern division of the island of Great Britain. In treating of this grand division of the British empire, we shall divide the subject into three Parts; the first comprehending the History of England, the second the Statistics of that country, and the third some account of its Government and Laws. History.

PART I.
HISTORY.

THE history of England, till the period of the Saxon Conquest, has been fully treated of in the first chapter of the article BRITAIN. After that event the country relapsed into a state of obscure barbarism, nearly as great as that from which it had been rescued by the Romans. The provincial Britons had profited by their intercourse with that great people. From the latter they had learned many of the arts of civilized life, and during the period of their subjugation they had erected a considerable number of cities, towns, and villages; but these were subsequently levelled with the ground by barbarian invaders, and the natives were frequently involved in the same ruin with their habitations. We are informed by one historian that a mighty conflagration began on the western coast, and gradually extended itself over the whole island. To escape from the exterminating swords of the Saxons, the Britons sought refuge in their native fastnesses; and thus the spark of civilization which had been struck out amongst them, and which, in more auspicious circumstances, might have kindled into a generous flame, was totally extinguished.

About the year 700, the island of Great Britain was divided into no fewer than fifteen sovereignties. Of these, eight were Saxon; but the union of the two Northumbrian principalities reduced the number to seven; and from this circumstance, as well as from some vague alliance amongst these petty states, historians have designated the whole by the name of the Heptarchy. They ruled over a considerable portion of England, and whilst they waged a fierce and endless war with every other kingdom in the island, they also maintained amongst themselves a continual struggle for the superiority. It would appear that one state usually exercised an undefined power over all the others; and the prince who possessed this equivocal ascendancy had the title of Bretwalda, or wielder of the Britons, bestowed upon him. The history of this period is not characterized by any event which would lead us to take an interest in the fluctuating fortunes of the various states. Our information relating to the earliest portion of the Saxon rule is also scanty; but what we do possess is not of such a nature as to awaken any feelings of regret that more minute particulars have not been transmitted to us. Details of the shedding of kindred blood, and acts of oppression, treachery, and cruelty, exercised towards the natives by the fierce invaders of their soil, are not calculated to interest human feelings. The re-introduction of Christianity, however, in some degree alleviated the darkness of the picture. The exact date of its first appearance in Britain is uncertain, but it had made some progress before the close of the second century. It disappeared however, with the other traces of civilization, when the Saxons commenced their devastations. It was in the year 596 that Gregory the Great sent over St. Augustin, with forty other missionaries, to convert the Saxons; and their arrival in Kent marks a new era in its history, and probably in that of the country. At this period Kent was governed by Ethelbert, an able and powerful monarch, and the third who bore

the title of Bretwalda. He received kindly the deputies of Rome, and became a convert to their doctrine; an example which his subjects were not slow in following. From this period the spread of the Christian faith over the island appears to have been rapid; for we find that in about a century after the arrival of St. Augustin it was professed and believed throughout Anglo-Saxon Britain. That it conferred many temporal benefits upon the community, cannot be doubted. But, however its divine precepts may have influenced the conduct and ameliorated the lot of individuals, crimes upon a great scale continued to be perpetrated as formerly. It may have mitigated the horrors of war, but battle followed on battle with as uniform a succession, and native blood flowed as freely, as heretofore. The continual struggle amongst the Anglo-Saxon principalities for the supremacy was however fast coming to a crisis. It is evident that such a state of affairs could not continue for any length of time, and that it must necessarily end in the establishment of a regular hereditary magistracy in the island. This took place partially at the beginning of the eighth century, in the person of Egbert, king of Wessex, who was a lineal descendant, and the only surviving prince, of the house of Cerdic, the founder of that kingdom. The great talents which he early exhibited had given offence to Brihtric, king of Wessex, who, jealous of his popularity, projected his destruction. Egbert, however, eluded his vengeance, and fled for protection to Offa, king of Mercia, a monarch illustrious for the talents he displayed and the prosperity he enjoyed, but whose name is stained with perfidy and blood. Thither the vindictive Brihtric pursued the youthful fugitive, who was finally compelled to cross the channel and to seek shelter beneath the broad shield of the victorious Charlemagne. France, governed by that renowned sovereign, excelled all the states of the West in civilization and the arts of government, as well as those of war. Trained in such a school, therefore, and early disciplined by adversity, he was undergoing an admirable probation for wielding with judgment and moderation the perilous sceptre which was destined to be transferred into his hands. The death of Brihtric, who perished by the machinations of his queen, recalled the fugitive from his exile. In Wessex the claim of Egbert was at once acknowledged, while his accession to the throne of his celebrated ancestor, an event highly popular in itself, was ennobled by a victory, the omen of many a future triumph.

At this period the island, though nominally under a A. D. 800. hexarchy, was rapidly verging to a triarchy, from several of the smaller states becoming gradually blended and identified with their more powerful neighbours. Wessex had been enlarged by the incorporation of Sussex; and various favourable circumstances conspired to concentrate in the hands of Egbert a well-organized power, which he was prepared to wield when summoned by any great emergency. For several years, however, after his accession to the throne, his sword remained in its sheath; and this pro-

History. pitious period of tranquillity afforded him an opportunity of turning his undivided attention to the affairs of government. His administration was as mild as it appears to have been politic; circumstances which completed the attachment of his subjects, and consolidated his growing strength. It was upon the unfortunate Britons of the west that he first made trial of his military prowess. About the year 809 the struggle between him and the natives commenced. The latter made a strenuous but unavailing resistance; and Egbert carried the havoc of war and the flames of destruction from the east to the west. In a few years the greater part of modern Wales, as well as the people who occupied the northern shore of the estuary of the Severn, acknowledged his authority. The king of Mercia, whose strength had been augmented by the appropriation of the petty sovereignties of Kent, Essex, and East Anglia, was now the only rival for the supreme authority whom Egbert had to fear or to contend withal. Their power was nearly equally balanced, for what Wessex wanted in numerical force was compensated by discipline and skill. War had now become inevitable; neither would brook a superior, and only one Bretwalda could be acknowledged. The conflict began, therefore, and was speedily brought to a termination. In an obstinate and bloody battle the king of Mercia was totally defeated, and Egbert became lord of the ascendant. State after state was annexed to Wessex; Mercia was invaded and subdued; and in nineteen years after he had first drawn the sword, Egbert was acknowledged over the greater part of the island as the eighth Bretwalda.

The authority of Egbert, however, still continued doubtful; and the Anglo-Saxon power was as yet very far from being consolidated. The fortunes and immunities of those composing the several states were not dependent upon one common legislature; and in regard to the details of government, the whole principalities remained as distinct from each other as before. Wales still continued to annoy him; and it was not until he had marched an army to Snowden that North Wales quietly submitted to that of the Saxon Bretwalda. But new and more formidable enemies than any he had yet encountered had begun to threaten England, and trouble the tranquillity which it in some measure enjoyed. These were Scandinavians, recognised in France by the name of Normans, and in England by that of Danes. Familiarized, from their maritime situation, to the dangers of the ocean, this people, like the Saxons of old, spent the greater portion of their time upon its waves. A pernicious law of succession, which consigned the whole patrimony to the eldest son, drove the younger branches of families to seek their fortunes by means of their ships and their swords. It was only in this manner that they could acquire riches and renown; and such pursuits were peculiarly agreeable to a people who unhappily preferred the acquisitions of rapine to the fruits of laborious industry. It was the custom of these pirates to set sail for some distant province in squadrons, under the command of chieftains called Vikings, or Sea-Kings. After pillaging the coast where they landed, they collected the spoil and returned to their own country, where they disencumbered themselves of their booty and prepared for fresh expeditions. Three descents upon England are recorded as having taken place in the eighth century, but these attempts produced no permanent alarm. Towards the termination of Egbert's reign, however, the numbers of the pirates greatly increased, whilst their visits were annually renewed; and for two centuries to come the country was destined to be a prey to these fierce and fearless invaders.

After making several successful inroads into various parts of England, in 835 they landed on the coast of Cornwall, where they succeeded in seducing the Britons from

their allegiance. The king of Wessex met the united forces of the enemy at Hengstone Hill, and gained a bloody but decisive victory, which restored the glory of his arms. This was the last exploit of Egbert, who died the year following, after a reign as prosperous as it was long, and which, allowing something for the condition of society at the period, may also be termed glorious. History.

Ethelwolf succeeded his father on the throne of Wessex; but an unfortunate arrangement, by which the former king bequeathed all his dominions except Wessex to a younger son, greatly weakened the power of his successor, and lessened the influence of the Bretwalda. Ethelwolf had been a monk, and appears to have been better adapted for the cloister which he had left than the throne which he now ascended. The history of his reign presents little of interest or variety. It is merely an account of the atrocities of the Danes, who made repeated descents upon England, laying waste the country, plundering towns, and despoiling the rich monasteries, where treasure was supposed to have been accumulated. No defeat, however, signal and decisive for the time, was capable of permanently expelling them from the island; and although routed and compelled to flee for shelter to their ships one year, they returned the next with persevering audacity. In the meanwhile Ethelwolf found leisure to perform a pilgrimage to Rome; and in passing through France on his journey homewards, he espoused Judith the daughter of Charles the Bald, king of the Franks. But he was not permitted to enjoy undisturbed domestic tranquillity. On his return to England he found his son Ethelbald at the head of a formidable conspiracy, which threatened him with deposition and exile. The two parties, however, came without bloodshed to terms of accommodation. It was agreed that Ethelwolf should possess the eastern states appertaining to Wessex, whilst the kingdom of Wessex proper, which belonged of right to the head of the family, should be enjoyed by Ethelbald, but, it would appear, with a nominal subjection to his father. Ethelwolf survived these arrangements only a few years, having died in 858.

After his demise Ethelbald continued to occupy the throne of Wessex; whilst Ethelbert, a younger brother, succeeded to the government which had been left vacant by the death of his father; but both these princes died in a few years, and left their thrones to their brother Ethelred, who assumed the sceptre at a most unpropitious period. Not only was the kingdom divided against itself, but the Danes, acting now in a well-organized confederacy, and terrible from their numbers as well as from the frequency of their inroads, threatened the total annihilation of the Saxon dynasty and the subjugation of the island. In the reign of Ethelred ancient chroniclers present us with little else than accounts of battles fought and towns sacked, prolonged by all the sickening minutiae of rapine and bloodshed. The conflicts were numerous and sanguinary; and in one of these, which took place at Merton in the year 870, the king received a wound of which he soon afterwards died.

By the death of Ethelred the throne of Wessex devolved upon Alfred, the fifth and favourite son of Ethelwolf. As an account of this extraordinary individual has already been given under the head of ALFRED, it is unnecessary to recapitulate the events of his life. He was succeeded by his son Edward, who ascended what may now almost be termed the throne of England, in the year 901. Alfred had been called to the crown in preference to the children of his elder brother, who were considered at the time as too young to be entrusted with the government. Their pretensions being also set aside at his death, Ethelwold, one of the rejected princes, attempted by violence to seize hold of the royal authority. He formed an alliance with

History. the Danes and other enemies of Edward; but in a battle with the men of Kent he met his fate, and the island was once more rescued from a destructive competition for the crown.

Previously to this event the Danes had contrived, by a union with some of the disaffected provinces, to obtain a kind of permanent footing in the country. They possessed the north of England from the Humber to the Tweed, and the eastern districts from the Ouse to the sea. Emboldened by their strength, they invaded Mercia, but were met by Edward, who obtained over them a decisive victory, which effectually restored his supremacy. The most remarkable individual after Edward was his sister Ethelfleda, upon whom the mantle of Alfred seems to have descended. She governed Mercia, and vigorously seconded her brother in fortifying the country against the common enemy. Upon her death in 920 the Anglo-Saxon monarchy received additional security from the final incorporation of Mercia with Wessex. After various successes over his northern and other enemies, Edward the elder expired at Farrington in Berkshire, in the year 924. This monarch would appear to greater advantage were he not viewed in such close proximity to Alfred the Great, the brilliancy of whose reign was calculated to eclipse that of his successor, had the latter been even a greater man than he actually was. Edward, however, was a great man, and every way worthy to wield the sceptre of his father, which he did with uncommon judgment and success.

He was succeeded by his son Athelstane, whom historians, on the faith of an old song, are in the habit of styling illegitimate; but a contemporary poetess has recognised his mother as the partner of Edward's throne, a circumstance which fairly balances the former authority. There is one argument in favour of his legitimacy, which, as far as we are aware, has been overlooked; it is the exceeding partiality evinced towards him by his grandfather Alfred. It seems improbable that an individual, whose moral rectitude and ardent piety were so conspicuous as those of Alfred, should have singled out as his especial favourite one whose birth was a public scandal; that he should also have invested him with the insignia of knighthood whilst yet a child, and looked upon him as the future hope of Britain, more especially as, supposing the youth to have been a natural son, the legitimate children of his father had a preferable right to the throne. Viewing the matter in this light, the truth of the hypothesis that Athelstane was the fruit of a union sanctioned by law and religion appears highly probable, even allowing that the distinction of natural from legitimate children was at that period somewhat faint. It does not appear to have been so in the mind of Alfred the Great.

Athelstane was thirty years of age when his father expired; and Mercia immediately, and Wessex shortly afterwards, recognised him as king. Opposition was, however, experienced in other quarters; but he ultimately succeeded in seating himself firmly upon the throne, and fully justified the early popularity he enjoyed with his grandfather. In the person of Athelstane the Anglo-Saxon sovereign became a character of dignity and consequence in Europe. His connections with the most respectable potentates on the Continent gave to his reign a political importance, and he is moreover entitled to be considered as the first monarch of England.

The sovereignty of the whole island appears to have been the object of Athelstane's ambition. In his military enterprises he was completely successful, and compelled the princes of the Scots, Cambrians, and Britons, to swear fealty to him, in the same manner as the Saxon vassal was accustomed to swear to his lord. But his prosperity was

interrupted by a powerful confederacy formed against him, which threatened not only to emancipate Northumbria from his authority, but even to overwhelm his hereditary government. The confederates were Constantine king of the Scots, and Anlaf the son of Sigtryg or Sihtric, who was king of Northumbria at the time of Athelstane's accession. Anlaf had received the hand of Athelstane's sister; but he drove her from his court, for which barbarous conduct the Anglo-Saxon monarch stripped him of his kingdom and ejected him from the island. Anlaf had fled to Ireland, whence he returned with a large fleet, in order to retaliate the insult of his expulsion. The remaining malcontents were the Welsh princes who had been humbled into submission, the Danes who inhabited the eastern coast from Tweed to Thames, the petty states of Cambria, and a constantly increasing host of lawless pirates and freebooters from Scandinavia.

Athelstane prepared with firmness and energy to meet the storm which threatened him with destruction. The armies met at Bramanburgh in Northumbria, and a battle was fought, celebrated in Saxon and Scandinavian poetry. The confederates were routed with great slaughter, and Anlaf and Constantine effected their escape with great difficulty. So complete was the overthrow, and so decisive the victory, that the remainder of Athelstane's reign was undisturbed by the rebellion of his subjects or the invasion of a foreign enemy. The throne of his ancestors was now effectually secured to him; and the Britons were so completely humbled, that to him belongs the glory of having been the founder of the English monarchy. The fame of his accomplishments, his talents, and his successes, was not confined to the insulated kingdom which he governed; it extended throughout all Christendom. With several foreign courts he maintained a friendly correspondence; and three princes, who afterwards became eminent in Europe, were fostered under his care, and restored by his aid or influence. These were Haco of Norway, Alan of Bretagne, and the son of his sister, Louis d'Outremer, so called from his residence in England. A concern in the death of a brother named Edwin is generally ascribed to him, but the story is somewhat doubtful; and if the other events of Athelstane's life, his public services and private virtues, be allowed to have any influence upon our judgment, it must be pronounced as improbable. Athelstane died in the year 940, regretted by his subjects, amongst whom he was revered as a prince alike distinguished for wisdom, justice, and benevolence.

Having left no issue, he was succeeded by his brother Edmund, who perished by the dagger of an assassin six years afterwards. The life of this king is not characterized by any events of importance. He was succeeded by his brother Edred, whose reign was short, and distinguished by no remarkable circumstance, except the complete incorporation of Northumbria with the rest of the Anglo-Saxon kingdom.

Edred died in 955, and left the throne to Edwin, who is usually styled Edwy, the eldest son of Edmund the Elder. The name of this monarch is intimately connected with that of the celebrated Dunstan, abbot of Glastonbury. The life of that individual having been already given under the head of DUNSTAN, we shall only mention here a few circumstances which are indispensably necessary to the complete chain of historical events. The reign of his uncle Edred had been looked upon by Edwy as a usurpation, and when he himself ascended the throne, the counsellors of the former monarch became the objects of his antipathy. He discarded them altogether, and surrounded himself with a host of young courtiers, more ready to emulate the vices of their master than to suggest prudent measures of government. At their instigation Edwy imposed

History. unjust taxes upon his subjects, despoiled the clergy, and committed other unseemly acts. Dunstan, having been one of the leading advisers of Edred, was most probably obnoxious to the young king; and at his coronation a circumstance occurred which brought the hostile parties immediately into collision. On that day Edwin, after the ceremony, withdrew from the festive board at which the nobles and clergy were regaling themselves, and retired to his own apartments. This indecorous act appears to have displeased the assembly; and Odo, archbishop of Canterbury, deputed Dunstan and another individual to bring back the king to join in their carousals. Dunstan penetrated into the private apartments of his sovereign, whom he found in company with Ethelgiva or Elgiva, his wife or mistress; the mother of the latter was also present. The two deputies forcibly tore the king from the company of the ladies, and brought him back to that of the nobles. This daring and insolent conduct of the monk towards the newly-consecrated monarch drew down upon him the royal vengeance. At the instigation of Elgiva, Dunstan was deprived of his honours, and condemned to exile. During his absence, Odo contrived to take Elgiva from her husband's residence, and send her a prisoner to Ireland, where her face was branded with red-hot irons, for the purpose of obliterating her charms; but in vain. They revived with the healing of the wounds; but on her return to England she was pursued by the opposite party, who falling in with her at Gloucester, actually hamstrung the unfortunate fair one. In a few days death released her from the vengeance of her enemies and from her own sufferings.1 In the meanwhile a conspiracy was formed against the now unpopular Edwy; and at the head of it was his brother Edgar, who, supported by the Northumbrians and Mercians, drove the unfortunate monarch beyond the Thames. His sufferings and humiliation, however, were of short duration, for he died in 959, ere he had attained the full age of manhood. By some historians he is said to have been assassinated; others state that he pined to death for the loss of his throne, and his Elgiva, whom he tenderly loved; but all agree that his demise was as miserable as it was premature. His youth was the source of all his calamities, for it seems certain that he was only sixteen or seventeen years of age when he assumed the sceptre. He had also the misfortune to live at a very critical period. It was the commencement of that struggle between seculars and regulars which was to be maintained for many centuries thereafter. The intrusion of Dunstan into the king's private chamber was the earnest of many a bold step upon the part of the clergy. It is thus memorable as being one of the earliest instances in our history, of the putting forth of that overwhelming strength with which the church of Rome was armed, and which was destined ere long to exercise so preponderating an influence over the political affairs of every court in Christendom, whose haughtiest monarchs were soon taught to tremble at the thunder of the Vatican.

The death of Edwin put his brother and rival Edgar in peaceable possession of the whole Anglo-Saxon territory. His reign was tranquil, neither foreign enemy nor domestic broils having interrupted its quiet, so that posterity has styled him "the peaceful." The only event of a warlike character ascribed to him is an invasion of Wales. In his personal character he was distinguished alike for his religious zeal and for his licentiousness. A few facts relating to each of these may be stated here. He

espoused the cause of the monks, and, during the sixteen years of his reign, erected a vast number of Benedictine monasteries. He recalled Dunstan from exile, placed the bold saint at his right hand as chief counsellor, and conferred upon him the see of Canterbury. In this situation that celebrated ecclesiastical prosecuted his ambitious schemes connected with the order to which he belonged with redoubled vigour. He expelled the clergy from the monasteries, and supplied their places with Benedictines, making the rule of their founder everywhere predominant throughout the nation.

We now find the church so intimately mixed up with political affairs, that some account of it is necessary for the elucidation of history. Although religious individuals had been collected in monasteries from the period of Augustin's landing in Kent, yet the order of Benedictines seems to be the most ancient example of monastic rule. Each congregation of recluses lived according to its own internal regulations, nor were the several monasteries consolidated into one community before the time of Dunstan. The Scottish or Irish, the Pictish and British churches, though in communion with Rome, were still independent of the papal see; and it was the object of the popes to suppress this independence of the different national churches; a cause which was warmly espoused by Dunstan. His policy was to enforce clerical celibacy; to expel at least all the married clergy from canonries and prebends in cathedrals, in order to make way for Benedictines; and to reduce all monasteries to the rule of the founder of that order. The opposition he encountered was formidable, and the cause of the clergy was espoused by the laity. Amongst the latter the secular priests found many powerful partizans, and the schisms of the church at last degenerated into factions amongst the people. But Dunstan was impetuous, and determined to carry through the reformation which he had begun, for he looked upon himself in the light of a reformer; and although the extension of his own power and that of his order may have been so blended with his zeal for the service of God as to deceive even himself, yet there seems no reason to doubt his sincerity. That there were many clerical abuses to be corrected, is consistent with the history of religion in all ages. The Danish invasions, and other national calamities, dispersed the clergy amongst the laity, with whose vices they doubtless became contaminated. The necessities of his situation compelled the prelate to be a statesman and an intriguer. He made some progress during the reign of Edred; in that of Edwy we have seen him checked; but in the present one, invested with the highest ecclesiastical dignities, and backed by the power of his sovereign, he appears before us under auspices which enabled him to carry his loftiest projects into execution. And he was not slow in seizing the opportunity. Not content with the ordinary engines of intrigue and supple policy, he drew upon the superstitious feelings of the time, and arrogated to himself divine intuition and the power of working miracles. He succeeded in deceiving that unenlightened age, and perhaps also himself.

The foregoing remarks may afford a key to some of the more prominent events of Edgar's reign. A national synod was held, at which the king publicly expressed his sentiments in favour of the Benedictine cause. It followed as a consequence of this, that the unfortunate seculars were ejected if they refused to comply with the enactments made by Dunstan and his party, under the

1 There is no direct proof that this atrocity was perpetrated under the sanction of the Archbishop of Canterbury; and it is impossible to implicate Dunstan in the guilt, for he was in Flanders at the time. The deed, however, was done by the adherents, and praised by the encomiasts, of the archbishop.

sanction of the sovereign; whilst monks were everywhere received with honour, and the erection of monasteries was for a time a royal mania. During the sixteen years of his reign Edgar built no less than forty-eight of these establishments.

In the midst of all this holy zeal, however, he found leisure for the indulgence of his licentious appetites. On one occasion he violently carried off a young lady educated in a convent, and made her his concubine. For this offence he was reproved by Dunstan, and compelled to do penance during seven years; but the mortifications imposed were not of a very severe character. His second marriage was connected with circumstances of a very tragical nature. The beauty of a young and noble lady having been praised to him, he commissioned Ethelwold, a favourite minister, to visit her residence, and report upon her charms. The deputy was himself captivated with the lady. He represented her in an unfavourable light to his sovereign, and married her himself; but Edgar, not being satisfied with the report, paid a personal visit to Elfrida, and, fascinated by her beauty, he procured the destruction of her husband, and espoused the bereaved lady himself.1

In extenuation of these delinquencies, he has been allowed the honourable distinction of having warmly patronized trade with foreigners. His commuting the tribute from Wales into three hundred wolves' heads, and his reformation of the coinage, also redound to his credit. By his orders a numerous fleet constantly guarded the kingdom from invasion, and he regularly visited his provinces in order to countenance the execution of the laws. His reign was glorious, and he seems to have converted his prosperity into ostentatious pomp. It is stated that eight kings, amongst whom were Kenneth of Scotland, and his son Malcolm of Cimbria, did him homage by rowing his barge down the river Dee.

Edgar died in 975, in the thirty-second year of his age, and was succeeded by Edward, surnamed the Martyr, his eldest son. A younger brother, Ethelred, by Elfrida, disputed the crown with Edward; but the latter was finally established upon the throne through the influence of Dunstan. His reign was chiefly occupied with disputes between the two clerical systems before mentioned, Elfrida having, on account of her son Ethelred, espoused the cause of the seculars, in opposition to Dunstan, who headed the regulars, and who was also the means of supplanting her son. The monks gained a complete victory over the seculars, who were now totally expelled from their convents. During this reign occurred that tragical circumstance which has afforded modern historians an opportunity of accusing the primate of murder. A council of nobles had been summoned to meet at Calne. During the proceedings, and just as the wily Dunstan had pronounced these words, "I confess I am unwilling to be overcome; I commit the cause of the church to the decision of God,"

the floor fell instantly down, and numbers of his opponents were killed and wounded. The primate, and probably his partizans, escaped unhurt, a circumstance which can only be accounted for by supposing that their seat remained unmoved. Some historians charge Dunstan with having secretly loosened the floor from the walls, and affirm that during the debate the temporary props which supported it were withdrawn according to his directions. This is very improbable; but there can be little doubt that he interpreted the occurrence as a divine judgment upon his enemies, and thus wrought upon the prejudices of that superstitious age. Several heinous crimes are laid to the charge of the queen dowager, but the last was the darkest and most atrocious of all. Edward, in one of his hunting excursions, visited Corfe Castle, in Dorsetshire, where Elfrida resided with her son Ethelred. He was received with the utmost cordiality, and invited to enter the castle, but declined, requesting at the same time to see his brother, and also the favour of some refreshment. Whilst in the act of raising a cup of wine to his lips, he was mortally stabbed in the back by the orders of his stepmother. On account of his violent death he has been surnamed the Martyr.

Edward was succeeded in 978 by Ethelred, the unconscious cause of his untimely fate. When the latter attained the crown he was only in his boyhood, and throughout a long life he never rose above it. This is one of those reigns which it is painful to narrate. It was the saddest which the descendants of Alfred yet had seen, and presents a strong contrast to that of his father. Edward compelled kings to be his watermen. His son by Elfrida became the sport of traitors; and having five times purchased his crown from the roving Danes, he was forced at last to make an ignominious surrender of it to a foreign invader.

For more than a century the Northmen had formed the chief part of the population of Northumberland and East Anglia, and they now stretched their power to the utmost in order to place one of their chiefs upon the Saxon throne. In 980, and for ten years thereafter, England was insulted by a series of inroads, which, although unimportant of themselves, were calculated to excite some alarm amongst the people, when the latter contemplated on the one hand the power and audacity of the Danes, and on the other a pusillanimous monarch and an unguarded country. But these petty aggressions were followed, in 991, by the appearance of a formidable armament upon the English coast. The invaders advanced without opposition as far as Malden, where they gained a victory, and their retreat was disgracefully purchased by a bribe of ten thousand pounds. Repeatedly afterwards did the Northmen play the same game, and Ethelred make the same debasing submission, by purchasing a momentary respite from their ravages. But the very means which were employed to rid the kingdom of these invaders one year, insured their return the

1 Dr Lingard, in his History of England, vol. i. p. 333, states that he is disposed to doubt this tale as improbable. "Malmesbury," says the learned and able historian, "on the faith of an ancient ballad, has transmitted to us a story probably invented by his (the king's) enemies." The story may possibly have been invented by his enemies, but where is the evidence, direct or indirect, that this was the case? Dr Lingard goes on to say, "It is improbable in itself, and supported by questionable evidence." Now, where lies the improbability? The tragical character of the transaction is in perfect keeping with that of the times in which it was committed; and as for the perpetrator himself, does not the abuse of the nun prove that, in order to gratify his unhallowed desires, even the religion, for the propagation of which he displayed such unbounded zeal, offered no impediment. Was the law of nature with regard to moral evil stronger in his mind than that which religion had imposed? This is much to be doubted. Nay, it may be surmised that the erection of so many monasteries was a voluntary penance which his conscience dictated him to perform, in extenuation of such crimes as those that are laid to his charge. The evidence is also said to be questionable; but if historians, and the learned Doctor along with the rest, unhesitatingly embody as historical facts the events and transactions related in similar compositions, we see no reason for making an exception with respect to the legend before us, because it happens to stand in the way of a favourite hypothesis. If we take one we must take all, exceptions being made where there is direct contradiction by more authentic evidence, which is not the case in the present instance. Sir James Mackintosh observes, "William of Malmesbury, who might have known the counsellors of Edward the Confessor, relates the incident on the authority (not to be despised) of a Saxon song. The same story is told by a later chronicler called Brompton (Dec. Scrip. 865), at great length, and with particulars characteristic of barbaric manners."

next. Treason, famine, and disease, also aggravated the calamities which overwhelmed the nation. Amongst the instances of defection, that of Alfric, earl of Mercia, demands particular attention. On account of his misconduct he had been deprived of his government, but had recovered it again through the influence of his friends. In 992, a meeting of the witenagemote took place at London, where it was resolved to put the kingdom in a posture of defence, by constructing a powerful fleet, and manning it with picked men. This was accordingly done, and the command of it conferred upon Alfric, with another nobleman and two prelates. Their commission was to surprise the Danes at some part where they could be surrounded; but this judicious scheme was foiled by the treachery of the commander, who not only gave the Danes notice of the intentions of the English, but consummated his perfidy by secretly joining them. He urged an immediate flight; but in the pursuit his vessel was taken, though the traitor himself escaped. The king revenged himself upon Alfric, by ordering his son Algar to be deprived of his eyes; an act as barbarous as it was useless.

This bold exertion on the part of the invaded compelled the Danes to transfer their arms from the south to the north of England, where they extended their ravages; but in 994 appeared two new and more powerful chieftains, Sweyn, king of Denmark, and Olave, king of Norway. With ninety-four ships they sailed up the Thames, and, although repulsed at London, they succeeded in ravaging several counties. But another humiliating subsidy redeemed England from their grasp; and, what is more astonishing still, Olave was honourably received at the court of Ethelred, where he pledged his word never to molest England more. This promise is only remarkable inasmuch as it was faithfully kept. The army of his companion Sweyn, however, continued to occupy the country, to which in course of time it became almost naturalized. That it should remain inactive was not to be expected; but that with impunity it should have been allowed to despoil provinces, displays a want of firmness, courage, and national spirit, which seems unnatural to the island, and can only be accounted for by supposing the existence of a weakness almost amounting to imbecility in the sovereign or his counsellors.

In 1002, Ethelred having lost his first wife, who bore him ten children, married a Norman princess, who assumed the name of Elgiva. The same year became memorable in the history of England for the perpetration of a crime of as black a dye as ever darkened the annals of any people. This wicked act, which rose out of a mischievous policy, is known by the name of the Massacre of the Danes. On the 13th of November, the festival of St. Bride, the unsuspecting Northmen, with their wives, children, and all belonging to them, were cruelly put to death by a royal warrant. The details of this fearful transaction are too horrible to be related. Suffice it to say, that no place, however sacred, saved the victims from their pursuers; and that when they fled to the churches for shelter, they were slaughtered in crowds around the altars. One painful episode is interwoven with this tale of blood. Gunhilda, the sister of Sweyn, king of Denmark, who was wedded to an English earl, saw her husband and children massacred before her eyes, and was herself afterwards beheaded. It is related by all historians, that in the agonies of death she foretold the vengeance which would descend upon the English nation for the barbarous act which it had committed; and the prediction was realized, as we shall hereafter see.

The calamities of England seemed now to thicken as the atrocities of its ruler grew darker. Common pity for the failings of humanity would lead us to pardon Ethelred's

pusillanimity; but this dark deed has affixed a blot to his History. scutcheon too deep for time ever to wash away. Sweyn was not slow in revenging the fate of his countrymen; and, through negligence and perfidy on the part of England, he succeeded in ravaging the island, for several years, almost with impunity. In 1007, thirty-six thousand pounds of silver abated his thirst of revenge. Two years afterwards the most powerful armament which had yet obeyed the flag of England was collected at Sandwich; but treason again paralyzed its operations. The captains abandoned their vessels, which were steered up the Thames by the mariners. "Thus," say the annalists, "perished all the hopes of England." The surrender of sixteen counties, and forty-eight thousand pounds, stayed for a short period the rapacity of the Northmen. The picture which the now fallen and devoted England presents, it is painful to contemplate. Accumulated treasuries and defeats had unnerved the courage of the natives; whilst the numerous victories of the Danes had swelled their pride, and inspired them with a preposterous idea of their warlike powers. Many fortified cities withstood all their assaults; but the open country was abandoned to their rapacity. Systematic destruction and spoliation was their principle; and the fields, deserted by the husbandmen, ceased to yield the necessary supplies of food, so that the Danes themselves were compelled to quit the island in search of provisions. Taxation, direct and annual, which must be traced to this period, weighed also upon the energies of the people, and materially increased the now almost universal discontent. In the midst of this ignominious submission and disaffection, it is pleasing to record instances of magnanimity, and painful to reflect that these were so few in number. The Archbishop of Canterbury having been made a prisoner by the Danes, was offered his liberty for a moderate ransom, on condition that he would advise Ethelred to pay them heavy sums of money as a largess. "I have no money," he replied, "and I will not advise the king to dishonour himself." Still they persisted; but the dauntless prelate remained unshaken. The barbarians condemned him to death; and he was immediately assailed with bones, horns, and other remains of a feast in which they had been indulging. "Gold, bishop; give us gold," they exclaimed, as they dragged him forth; but he remained unmoved, and having been felled to the earth with the rude missiles which were showered upon him, he received a mortal stab from the hand of a man whom he had himself baptized.

Sweyn made his last incursion into the country in 1013. Terrified at the universal disaffection, Ethelred fled at last to Normandy, whence he returned on hearing of Sweyn's death, which occurred shortly afterwards. The latter was succeeded by his son Canute; for the Danes would now appear to have put in a claim for the sovereignty of the whole country. Ethelred was recalled by the English chiefs, who exacted a promise from him that he would govern with less tyranny than formerly; and pledges were also interchanged between the Danes and English. But a contest soon ensued between the two parties; and although Ethelred succeeded in repeating upon a small scale that system of treacherous massacre for which he had so severely suffered, yet Canute maintained his superiority in open warfare, and took a barbarous revenge upon the hostages in his hands, for the murder of his friends. Treason again added a fearful contribution to the accumulated evils which surrounded the unfortunate Ethelred. His son Edmund, surnamed, from his hardihood, Ironside, vainly attempted to make head against the Danes; for Canute penetrated to York, where he was joined by the Earl of Northumbria and a number of the people. The country was now a prey to two contending armies; but just at this crisis it was relieved

History. ed from its greatest enemy, Ethelred, who died towards the end of 1016, worn out by care and disease.

Edmund Ironside was immediately chosen king by the English; and if the exertions of one man could have saved the country, this achievement would have been performed by the new king. During his short reign, for it extended to only a few months, he gave proofs of bravery and ability equal to any exigency, and worthy of a happier fortune. The first struggle between him and Canute was for the possession of London, which was held by the English. During the siege Edmund fought two battles in the provinces, one of which took place at Secarston, and is celebrated by our annalists. Twice the darkness of night came to the relief of the exhausted armies, which had both suffered severely; but the dawn of the third morning showed the result to be in favour of the English. Canute, however, had taken advantage of the night, and marched upon London. Not long afterwards another battle was fought, in which Edric, a traitor thrice steeped in infamy by his defection, played the game of victory into the hands of Canute. After this calamitous event the greatness of Edmund's soul became more conspicuous. Although a numerous army had again rallied around his standard, he shuddered to lavish more of his country's blood in this murderous warfare, and challenged Canute to decide their quarrel by single combat. Whether this proposal was accepted or not, is matter of uncertainty; but at all events a pacification was shortly afterwards agreed upon, and England was divided between the rivals; the north being given up to Canute, whilst Edmund retained possession of the south. The latter, however, died shortly afterwards; and there is reason to believe that he perished through the machinations of the perfidious Edric.

Edmund left two sons, infants; but by the unanimous voice of the nation Canute obtained the sovereignty of England. This remarkable prince was only twenty years of age when he assumed the reins of government. His qualities as a monarch were of a very high order, not unalloyed, however, with the ferocity natural to the Northmen of the period. The first object of his policy was the removal of the children of the two preceding kings. Some of the sons of Ethelred were slain, and the rest consigned to banishment; whilst those of Edmund were sent over to Sweden, for the purpose of being dispatched. But their fate was averted by the prince to whom they were conveyed. He sent them both to the king of Hungary, by whom they were educated in a manner befitting their station. One died in his youth, the other married the daughter of Henry, the emperor of Germany; and their issue was Edgar Atheling, who will be mentioned hereafter.

Canute divided the kingdom into four governments. He retained Wessex to himself. East Anglia was conferred on a chief named Thurehil, who had formerly distinguished himself; and Eric and Edric were continued in Northumberland and Mercia. But the latter shortly afterwards received the full reward of his crimes and perfidy. At a Christmas festival celebrated in London, he had the audacity to boast of his services, when Canute ordered him to be cut down, and his body thrown into the Thames. The Danish king had embraced Christianity, and also taken to wife Emma, widow of Ethelred. The profession of the former removed the main barrier between his English and Danish subjects; and his espousal of a royal female was no doubt intended to conciliate the affections of the Saxons; and it seems to have had a considerable effect in this respect. The other events of this reign will be found related under the head of CANUTE. He died at Shaftesbury in 1035, and was interred at Winchester. By his wife Emma he had a son and daughter; the former called Hardicanute, or Canute the Hardy. But previ-

ously to his marriage he had by another lady two sons, named Sweyn and Harold. The former was installed in the sovereignty of Norway, and the latter ascended the throne of England.

Harold was not entitled to the crown; for it had been provided in the marriage settlement of Emma, that the issue of Canute by her alone should reign; yet he being on the spot, succeeded in obtaining the sceptre as well as the treasures of his father. Edward the son of Ethelred, certainly the legitimate sovereign of the kingdom, made an attempt to obtain it, but proved unsuccessful. His brother Alfred renewed the enterprise, which proved fatal to him and to most of his followers. This prince received a letter, which purported to be from his mother, inviting him to come over and take possession of his father's dominions. The proposition was flattering, and in an unlucky moment he yielded to it. Having landed with six hundred followers, he was treacherously made prisoner, along with his companions. Every tenth man was set at liberty, a few more were reserved as slaves, and the remainder were massacred and mutilated with the most capricious cruelty. Prince Alfred himself was deprived of his eyes; and this shocking barbarity soon afterwards terminated in his death. The unfortunate sufferer was the dupe of a forgery; and the whole villainous transaction seems to have been planned by Harold, and executed by his minions, particularly Earl Godwin. This remarkable individual, according to the only account of him which we possess, was the son of a Saxon herdsman. In his youth he had assisted Ulfr, a Danish chieftain, to make his escape to the ships of Canute. The Northman took him under his charge, and by successive steps he rose to the dignity of a Jarl, and to the possession of power little less than sovereign during three reigns. The atrocious deed of blood above related is the only event of importance associated with the name of Harold the First. He died in 1040, and was succeeded by Hardicanute, his brother by the half blood.

This sovereign reigned about two years; and the little that is recorded of him is of a very mixed character. He came over from Denmark, breathing revenge against the murderers of Alfred, and even went so far as brutally to insult the lifeless remains of Harold. Godwin stood prominently forward as an object of punishment, but a splendid present turned aside the shaft of vengeance. Others also escaped by appealing to his avarice, which seems to have been his ruling passion. Edward the son of Ethelred was kindly and honourably received at his court—a noble act of generosity; yet the author of it died of intemperance at the nuptial feast of a Danish lord.

Edward, surnamed the Confessor, the surviving son of Ethelred, was chosen king of England in 1042. He was a weak and feeble prince, and incompetent to the task of vigorous government; yet the commencement of his reign was characterized by an act of severity. He despoiled his mother Emma of her property, and deprived her of her influence. These proceedings were prompted by the antipathy which she bore to the king, and by her lukewarmness in not punishing the murderers of her son Alfred, of whose blood it was even whispered she was not entirely guiltless. The weak and irresolute character of the king threw the power entirely into the hands of the three noblemen who divided the Saxon territory amongst them, Seward earl of Northumberland, Leofric earl of Mercia, and Godwin earl of Kent, whose daughter, Editha, Edward had been induced to marry. Godwin was by far the most powerful of the three; for besides his own territory in Wessex, his two sons, Sweyn and Harold, held large domains northward of the Thames. In 1051 he at last presumed to bid defiance to his sovereign and son-in-

History. law. Edward, who had sojourned a long time in Normandy, where he was well treated, when he ascended the throne invited the guardians and friends of his youth to accompany him to England. They accordingly flocked to him in great numbers, and received ample preferment. One of them, named Robert, obtained the primacy, at that time the station of highest dignity and power. Amongst those who resorted to England was Eustace count of Boulogne, who had married Edward's sister. At Dover, one of Godwin's towns, a foolish affray took place between the followers of the count and the English. This circumstance gave vent to the popular jealousy of the people against foreigners. Godwin assembled a force, and claimed the surrender of Eustace; but the latter was supported by the king, who ultimately succeeded in driving Godwin and his sons into exile. The star of Godwin seemed now to have fairly set; but just at this moment there arose another of far more disastrous omen to the Saxon line. William duke of Normandy came to England with many of his followers, on a visit to his cousin Edward. He was received with great honour, and loaded with presents when he returned to his own country.

Had the illustrious stranger never risen to be ruler of England, his first visit to it would probably have been passed over by historians with a simple relation of the event. But his singular fortune has induced some writers to find in it a clue to his subsequent proceedings. It is impossible to conjecture what may have passed in his mind upon this occasion. On the one hand he saw, that in the course of a few years, the crown would soon become vacant, for its possessor was now stricken in years, and, moreover, childless. On the other hand, there stood in the way of his claim to it, first of all, Edward, the son of Edmund Ironside; then his son Edgar Atheling, a weak prince, however; and afterwards the brothers of Edward's queen. Under such circumstances his vaulting ambition may have led him to indulge in aspirations to the crown; but only a vague probability of ultimate success must have been awakened in a mind possessed of such high reflecting powers as that of William the Conqueror. Too many obstacles stood in the way of his fostering any sanguine hopes of acceding to the throne of England; and it is certain that the objects of his first visit were pacific. It appears highly probable that his politic foresight might induce him to take measures for securing the crown after the death of Edward the son of Ironside, which took place some years subsequently to his visit to England; and a conjecture may be hazarded that it was immediately after the demise of his brother's son that the Confessor made a promise to William of leaving him the crown. That such a promise was given was afterwards alleged by the Conqueror, as we shall see when he comes before us as a claimant of the sovereignty. In about a year after this the Godwins were restored to their honours and estates; and Editha, who had been repudiated by the king, was called from her prison to the throne. She was innocent of any participation in her father's guilt. The analysts of the time represent her in the most amiable light, and as incapable of devising evil either against her husband or any other individual. On his re-installment in his earldom and possessions, Godwin succeeded in inducing the king to outlaw Archbishop Robert and all the Frenchmen; and not long after he died ripe in years and in crimes. In 1055 Siward followed him to the grave; and two years afterwards expired Leofric, the wise and powerful duke of Mercia, who was succeeded in his dukedom by his son Algar. Tostig, brother of Harold, received the earldom of the former; but in a few years afterwards (1065), he was deposed for his cruelties, and his sovereignty conferred upon Morcar, son of the Duke of Mercia.

Soon after these transactions, the pacific monarch of England began to sicken. When he saw his end approaching, he ordered the magnificent church of St Peter at Westminster, which he had built, to be consecrated with solemnity and splendour. He died two days after, on the 4th or 5th of January 1066, in the twenty-fourth year of his reign, and was interred in the church which he had so recently dedicated. He left no issue; for he had taken a vow of continence for life. Edward Atheling, the only surviving son of Edmund Ironside, had landed from Hungary with his wife and children, for the purpose of being proclaimed heir to the crown; but shortly after his arrival in London he expired, bequeathing his claim to his son Edgar.

Edward the Confessor presents himself to us only in one character, that of a royal monk. His piety and gentleness might have adorned a cloister, but, unallied with those sterner virtues which fit a monarch for wielding the sceptre with firmness and energy, they rendered him unfit for ruling, except under the influence of able counsel, which he had the good fortune to possess during the greater part of his reign. Abject superstition will unnerve even a strong mind, and to a weak one it imparts a character of childlike feebleness, and forms such an individual as Edward. But he had many amiable qualities, which would have redeemed even greater weaknesses than those with which he is chargeable. He loved his people much; he was averse to the imposition of taxes, some of which he abolished; and his charities were frequent and extensive. His subjects repaid his attentions by lamenting his loss as a national misfortune, and consigning his memory to the veneration of posterity.

The day which witnessed the funeral of Edward, saw the coronation of Harold, the son of Godwin. A report had been circulated that the Confessor had appointed him his successor, which greatly conciliated the chiefs; indeed the only opposition which he experienced was from his own unnatural family. On Edgar Atheling, the last surviving prince of the house of Cerdic, was conferred the earldom of Oxford, in lieu of the crown. Tostig, the brother of the king, was a competitor for the crown. Harold Hardrada, king of Norway, promised him his support, and the politic duke of Normandy did the same. In Flanders he was permitted to raise an army, with which he landed in Northumberland; but he was defeated by Morcar, on whom the earldom of the province had been conferred. The discomfited Tostig fled to Malcolm, king of Scotland, where he was well received. The Caledonian monarch had himself been sheltered at the English court during the usurpation of Macbeth, and was established on the throne of his ancestors by the aid of England. As a grateful return for the attentions he had received in that country, he always readily welcomed the malcontents who fled from it. The arrival of his Norwegian ally recalled Tostig from his exile. They joined forces at the mouth of the Tyne, and marched upon York, in the neighbourhood of which city the Saxon army sustained a defeat. But this was only a prelude to the grand struggle. Harold, the king, notwithstanding the necessity under which he lay of watching the south-eastern extremity of the island from a still more formidable rival, collected a considerable army, and marched with promptitude and secrecy to meet Tostig and his Norwegian ally. So rapid had been the movements of the king that he took the enemy in some degree by surprise. They, however, retired upon Stamford-bridge on the Derwent, where they drew out their line of battle. The contest which ensued was bloody, and long of doubtful issue. For a while the firm array of the Norwegians bade defiance to all the efforts of the English cavalry, which, accustomed to charge in detached masses,

History. fell in this dispersed state almost harmless upon the bristling rampart of Scandinavian spears. The king of Norway, conspicuous by his blue tunic and glittering helmet, made the most heroic exertions; but victory forsake his standard; a fatal dart pierced his throat, and he fell lifeless to the ground. Tostig assumed the command, and after a desperate effort to turn the fortune of the day, he perished, with the flower of the Norwegian army. This victory, which is memorable on account of the dreadful slaughter that distinguished it, was gained on the 25th of September 1066. It must be recorded to the honour of Harold, that twice he offered peace and pardon to his rebellious brother, once before and once during the heat of battle, when the Norwegian had fallen, but both times these offers were refused. Three days after this conflict William duke of Normandy landed in England, and Harold had to prepare for another desperate struggle to retain the crown. It will now be necessary to examine how far the pretensions of the new competitor for it were legitimate.

This celebrated claimant to the sceptre of England was the descendant of Rollo, a renowned Viking or Sea-King, who flourished at the beginning of the tenth century. Rognvaldr, the father of Rollo, was one of those earls appointed by Harold Harfager, or the fair-haired, to guard his conquests. He had two sons, Thor and Rolf, better known by his more celebrated name of Rollo.1 The progenitor of William the Conqueror was expelled from his country on account of a violation of the law which forbade freebooters, under pain of death, to destroy cattle on the Norwegian shore. Driven from his paternal shores, he resolved to seek for a kingdom elsewhere; and after much successful valour he succeeded in establishing a Scandinavian state in France. Rollo proved himself a prince worthy of a kingdom, and his acquisition in course of time assumed the name of Normandy. His exertions for the improvement of his dominions, the civilization of the rude Northmen, and the humanizing of their minds to the love of order, justice, and the arts of peace, class him with those illustrious individuals who have proved themselves benefactors of the human race. He died in 931, and was succeeded by his son William. After two others, Robert the Magnificent, or the Devil as he was perhaps more appropriately designated, succeeded. He was father to the duke, who now appears before us as a competitor for the English throne. William was an illegitimate child by a damsel of humble condition, of whom his father was enamoured, but could not wed during the lifetime of his duchess, the sister of Canute. Like their northern progenitors, the nobles of the Norman duke were careless of the distinction between concubinage and wedlock, so that on the death of Robert in 1035, William, although then only eight years of age, was triumphantly placed upon the ducal throne, which he filled with renown for fifty-three years.

The circumstance of numerous Norman barons having settled in England during the reign of Edward the Confessor, who was the grandson of a duke of Normandy, has already been noticed; as also the visit paid by William to the childless monarch. It was afterwards asserted by the

Duke of Normandy, that upon one occasion, probably that to which we have already alluded, Edward had bequeathed to him the crown of England. He also alleged a testamentary bequest, as well as Harold. Both were alike destitute of any claim founded on the modern principles of hereditary descent, but both by consanguinity made out a species of right to inherit; William as the grand uncle of Emma the king's mother, and Harold as the king's brother-in-law. The claims of the champions were therefore nearly balanced, and seem to have contented their partizans; the sword alone could decide to whom the real title should belong.

In the mean time the claim of Harold suffered considerably on account of a circumstance which occurred a short time before the demise of the late king. The Saxon had been shipwrecked in France, but obtained leave to proceed to Normandy by alleging that he was intrusted with some communications to Duke William. That prince received him kindly, and imparted to him the hopes which he cherished of obtaining the English crown. He received a promise of aid from Harold, and by an artifice succeeded in making him swear fealty to his cause. Underneath the missal on which the Saxon had sworn were concealed various sacred relics, such as the bones of saints and martyrs, and thus he had unconsciously bound himself by the most solemn oath. When the struggle came, Harold urged the plea of compulsion as releasing him from any obligation to keep his vow. Abhorrence of oath-breakers, however, is characteristic of a superstitious age; and whilst the circumstance materially weakened the cause of Harold, it strengthened in a corresponding degree that of his rival. There is also every reason to believe that it was the principal means of enabling William to obtain from the holy see a declaration in favour of his enterprise. At such a period a bull from the pope was itself worth an army, and this the adventurer not only obtained, but also a consecrated standard, a ring, and a lock of his holiness's hair.

William now set busily to work in preparing the means of offensive aggression. When his purpose was known, he was speedily joined by all the young knights of the neighbouring countries who sought fortune or renown, and by all the freebooters whom the hope of spoil allured to his standard. With an armament more formidable than the western nations had yet witnessed, he accordingly put to sea. Annalists have greatly exaggerated the number of his troops; for altogether they did not probably much exceed twenty-five thousand men. With this army he landed without opposition at Pevensey, in the county of Sussex, as has already been observed. He made no stay at that place, however, but proceeded immediately to Hastings to procure provisions. Harold, apprised of the arrival of his most dreaded enemy, flew to attack him. William, informed of his victory and advance, was counselled by some to remain in his entrenchments, and not to hazard an open engagement. But the mind of the future conqueror was not liable to the agitations of fear. He had thrown his life upon a cast, and was resolved to stand the hazard of the die. In this emergency the conduct of Harold has been severely censured. He appropriated to him-

1 In the History of England by Sir James Mackintosh (vol. i. p. 90), the following sentence occurs:—"One of the sons of Roguevald, called in the Icelandic poems Hropt, better known to us by the name of Rollo, had, for reasons unknown to our authorities, been excluded from all share in his father's domains, and had no resource but piracy." The reason of his exclusion was in all likelihood his being a younger son. We have already noticed, that amongst the Northmen of this period an absurd law obtained, by which all but the eldest son were excluded from any participation in the property left by the father. By this pernicious arrangement the younger branches of families were driven to seek their fortune upon the sea. It is certain that Roguevald left two sons; it is also next to certain that he would observe the law of the land as it then existed. Now, the question comes to be, which of the two was the first born. There is no direct evidence upon the point, but the circumstance of Thor's name having always the precedence when the brothers are mentioned together, and also that of Rollo's piratical exploits, whilst there is no mention made of his brother in that capacity, seem to determine the point that the progenitor of a future royal family of England was the youngest son;—and thus the difficulty is explained.

self all the spoils of the late battle, which added to his unpopularity; whilst the death of his brother was by common report imputed to him. On his march against William, a considerable portion of his army deserted him, and their place had to be supplied by raw and undisciplined levies. When the two rivals were near enough to interchange messages, the Norman offered Harold the choice of abdication, of single combat, or of appeal to the pope. These propositions being rejected, he was then offered Northumberland for himself, whilst Kent would be conceded to his brother Gurth; but the latter proposal shared the fate of the former one; upon which William declared his intention of giving battle to his rival, whom he looked upon and designated as a liar and a perjured wretch, excommunicated by the holy father. He even expressed astonishment that an individual conscious of such guilt as that with which Harold was chargeable should venture his person in battle. We are told that such a feeling also prevailed in the English army, and that the king was advised by his brothers Gurth and Leofwin to withdraw, whilst they would lead on the battle. Harold, however, only smiled at their apprehensions, and expressed his resolution of commanding the army in person.

On the morning of Saturday the 14th of October William advanced to the attack of the Saxons, after having solemnly heard mass and received the sacrament. The previous night is also said to have been passed in devotion, whilst songs and revelry resounded throughout the Saxon camp. The spot which Harold had fixed upon for this important contest was a piece of rising ground about eight miles inland from Hastings. It was open towards the south, and was covered at the back by an extensive wood. On the front of the declivity the troops were arranged in one compact mass, in the centre of which floated the royal banner, with the king and his two brothers near it. On an opposite hill stood William in front of his warriors, with the relics upon which Harold had sworn hung round his neck, and the consecrated standard waving by his side. After a short address to animate his soldiers, he advanced upon the enemy, shouting the national war-cry "God is our help;" whilst the cry of "Christ's rood, the holy rood," rose from the adverse ranks. The impetuous onset of the Normans was received by the English with their battle-axes, with which they broke the lances and cut the coats of mail, on which their opponents placed great reliance. The confidence of the Normans began to waver, and the left wing, both horse and foot, actually gave way. With eager rashness the English pursued, and thus exposed themselves to the hazard of being cut off; for William with dauntless fortitude and presence of mind had succeeded in rallying his fugitive bands. The attack was renewed, and again the English repulsed it. The duke had now recourse to an artifice which ultimately proved the destruction of the enemy's army. By a feigned flight he allured a body of them from their strong position, and, whilst the latter too eagerly pursued, he turned upon them with his cavalry, and hewed them in pieces. Twice was this stratagem repeated, and each time with perfect success. Still the main body of the English presented an unbroken rampart of shields, against which the mass of Norman chivalry for a long time was hurled in vain.

During the conflict both leaders gave proofs of personal bravery and skill worthy of the crown which the one was combating to retain and the other to wrench from his grasp. William had three horses killed under him, and hand to hand he had grappled on foot with his adversaries. A little before sunset Harold, both of whose brothers had already fallen, received an arrow in the eye, which penetrated to the brain. His fall relaxed the vigour of the English. Their lines were penetrated, their standard

taken; and a panic having seized upon them, they broke History. and dispersed through the wood, whilst darkness closed upon the spoils of the field and the hopes of the Saxons.

Thus ended the battle of Hastings, memorable in various respects, first, as introducing a new dynasty of monarchs to rule the southern part of Britain; and secondly, as opening up to the inhabitants of the island the means of a more extensive intercourse with the continent than they had ever yet enjoyed. By this means were introduced into Britain those modes of life, manners, customs, and institutions which were at the time considered as characteristic of civilization and refined society; and henceforth England was destined to take a large share in the transactions and fortunes of the continental powers, perhaps ultimately for the mutual benefit of all parties.

On the morning after the battle, the victors, having stripped the bodies of the slain, pranced wantonly over them with their horses. The mother of Harold, like another Andromache, begged the corpse of her son from the conqueror; but whether her maternal request was complied with or not is a matter of great uncertainty; for upon this point our annalists are either contradictory or ambiguous. By one party it is asserted that the corpse of the fallen monarch was interred upon the beach; by another that it was given up when demanded, its weight in gold having been offered as a ransom. Perhaps both are correct; for it is probable enough that it was first buried on the shore, and afterwards exhumated at the request of the mother. Without entering into any speculation connected with the Norman conquest, we may simply remark, that in order to interest the reader of English history, and excite commiseration and pity for Harold, he has, by a number of historians, been invested with talents, virtues, and accomplishments which he did not possess in a degree sufficient to command the entire affection of his countrymen during his life; whilst his death has also been deplored with unnecessary regret, as a sort of national loss. Where the stakes are equal, and the game a fair trial of strength and dexterity, sympathy will always side with the loser. Over his opponent Harold had the advantage of fighting for his native land against a foreign invader; but it must be observed that his own aggrandisement and the independence of the nation were inseparably connected, and that in pursuing the one he was combating for the other.

Before entering into the subsequent history of the conqueror's proceedings, it will be necessary to pause and take a rapid glance at the Anglo-Saxon institutions before they were supplanted by the system which the successful invasion of the Normans was destined to introduce.

The Anglo-Saxon king, without possessing despotic sovereignty, was in dignity, property, and power elevated far above the level of the rest of the nation. He was elected by the assembly called the wittena-gemote, a meeting of wise or prudent men. This was the great council of the nation, and seems to have resembled what our modern parliament would be if lords and commons mingled together and debated in one house. It was composed of the prelates, earls, and a great many thanes or considerable proprietors of land, a class similar to our modern gentry; so that the Saxons may be said to have possessed the elements of a free and popular government, though as yet in a rude and chaotic state. This supreme judicial and legislative assembly was convened by the king, and held its meetings on the great festival days of the church, such as Christmas. But these were not confined to such seasons, being called together according as circumstances required. Besides electing the king, and presiding at his coronation, they assisted him in making laws and treaties, in military preparations, in administering justice, and the other affairs of government. Their power was considerable, but it de-

History. pended in a great measure upon the character and capacity of the sovereign. The highest officer in the kingdom was the ealdorman: he was chief of a shire, and had great judicial powers. An earl was the next dignity, which remained separate from the former until towards the close of the Anglo-Saxon period, when the title of ealdorman seems to have been superseded by that of earl; under them were other officers, whom it is unnecessary to particularise. There was of course a wittena-gemote to every kingdom; and when all the principalities merged in Wessex, and gave rise to a single one for the whole country, the monarch occasionally held shire-gemotes, or county meetings, where the laws made by the king and his counsellors were proclaimed, and being acknowledged and sworn to, became binding on the whole nation.

The Anglo-Saxons were divided into freemen and slaves. But there was a third class, such as bordars, cottars, and others, who were cultivators of the soil, and, ranking probably in the lowest order of freemen, were scarcely reduced to the degrading level of slaves. As far as has yet been ascertained, the class which was subject to the most complete thralldom was small in comparison with those who enjoyed superior privileges, probably about one in seven. The Anglo-Saxons paid some attention to the cultivation of the land, which was held by various tenures, and liable to certain burdens, which varied in kind and quantity. Military service, which consisted in providing a certain number of armed men when public safety required them, was one of these. The other two great services were the constructing or repairing of bridges, fortresses, and walls. Besides these, the sub-proprietors of land were more or less liable to many other burdens. With regard to their conveyances, we have several of their grants of land without any pecuniary consideration; of their conveyances on purchase; of their deeds of exchange; of their testamentary devises, and their leases. These were, in the early periods of Anglo-Saxon history, short and simple; but in grants of a more recent date the general words are nearly as numerous as in our present deeds.

The supreme legal tribunal was the wittena-gemote, which, like the present House of Lords, was paramount to every other. There were also shire-gemotes and burgh-gemotes, so many yearly meetings of which were strictly enjoined upon those who composed them. Much of their judicial proceedings rested upon oaths, and perjury was therefore severely punished. For the various breaches of the law the punishments were commonly pecuniary. In the case of murder, the amount, which was partly levied by the state as a penalty, and partly granted to the family of the deceased as a satisfaction for the loss of their relative, was proportioned to the rank of the murdered man. Persons accused of crimes had occasionally to pass through an ordeal of hot water or hot iron, of which they had their option.

There were many popular institutions which rendered the king subordinate to the community. The meetings of the people at the various courts, from the folk-mote of the hundred, to the wittena-gemote of the nation, contributed to foster the principles of equal law and of popular government. From the Anglo-Saxons we derive our language, the names of the most ancient officers among us, and those of the greater part of the divisions of the kingdom, and of almost all our towns and villages.

In their domestic habits the Anglo-Saxons were social, and loved the pleasures of the table. Their food was that mixture of vegetable and animal diet which always marks

the progress of civilization. Ale and mead were their favourite drinks, and wine was an occasional luxury. They had become so far acquainted with the conveniences of civilized life as to display both variety and vanity in adorning their persons. Their dwelling-houses seem to have been small and inconvenient, although they were both expensive and magnificent in their ecclesiastical buildings. Amongst the Anglo-Saxons females were very respectfully treated, and occupied the same independent rank in society which they now enjoy. The trades and mechanical arts had made considerable progress, and even foreign commerce was carried on and considered as a highly honourable calling. With regard to their circulating medium, it may be shortly stated, that they had their pounds, shillings, pence, and farthings, exactly as we have at present. Learning, except amongst ecclesiastics, was neglected; and with regard to literature, little can be said with certainty, for the monuments of this kind which they have left us, except what is historical, have not yet been examined with sufficient care.1

The conquest of England did not altogether terminate with the battle of Hastings. London and other important towns were put in a posture of defence, whilst a numerous fleet had assembled at Dover to interrupt the proceedings and distract the attention of the invader. Edgar, the legitimate heir to the throne, appears to have been either crowned or acknowledged as sovereign at London, where the two powerful earls Morcar and Edwin, with the loyal inhabitants, resolved to make a desperate stand against the advancing foe. William, however, instead of attacking the city, chose rather to lay waste the country, which he did most effectually, consigning to the flames what could not be forcibly removed. He now appears before us in a character somewhat new. Formerly he had combatted for the crown against an individual who, according to all modern notions of legitimacy, had no more right to it than himself; but in the present instance he was attempting to snatch it from the brow of him who alone had a hereditary claim to wear it. On this account the atrocities committed by his troops are justly contemplated with horror, whilst the disposition to palliate them is proportionally lessened.

William, however, was the candidate favoured by the see of Rome, and the bishops interfered in his behalf. Stigand, the metropolitan, was the first to throw himself on the mercy of William, whom he met as the conqueror crossed the Thames at Wallingford, and swore fealty to him as his sovereign; others followed his example, as did Edgar, Edwin, and Morcar upon the part of the nobility. The crown was offered to him, and he was formally invested with it in Westminster Abbey, on Christmas 1066. During the ceremony a tumult arose which made the stout heart of the conqueror to tremble beneath its iron mail; and, had an English force, led by any competent commander, and capable of making head against the Normans, appeared at the moment, it might have cost him his crown and his life. Whilst, by loud acclamations, both English and Normans expressed their willingness to have William for king, his troops set fire to the houses, and commenced the plunder of the city. The coronation service was hastily concluded, and the insurrection quelled without much difficulty, although the English looked upon it as a bad omen, and William as a most unfortunate occurrence. It was his interest to propitiate the affections of the people whom he had now been appointed to govern, and he anxiously wished to do so. In explanation of this occurrence, it is usually alleged that the Normans mistook the acclama-

1 Turner's Anglo-Saxons, vol. ii. passim. Mackintosh's England, vol. i. p. 71.

tions of those who shouted within the church for an alarm of the English to rise in revolt. But if this had been the case, why did they not instantly fly to the rescue of their king, instead of spreading themselves about and firing and pillaging the city? His safety was surely their first care; for had he fallen, their fate was inevitable. The whole unquestionably originated in the desire of the troops for sack and pillage.1

Hitherto William had been called the Bastard; from this period he obtained the surname of the Conqueror, a term which at the time was employed to designate a person who had sought and obtained his right, as well as a subjugator. It was necessary for William to maintain a strong military force in order to compel the obedience of his subjects; and he could only feel himself secure surrounded by his trusty Norman barons. But the duration of their services being limited to a certain term, they naturally expected to be released from their engagements, and re-conveyed to their country, when the period of servitude had expired. In order to encourage them to remain, he put into their hands the strongholds and principal towns of the kingdom, whilst all the conquered territory of the English, which he had at his command, was likewise distributed amongst them. Having thus put his dominions in a secure posture, he embarked for Normandy, carrying along with him Morcar, Edgar, and Edwin, and leaving the chief management of affairs in England in the hands of William Fitzosbern, a Norman baron, and Odo, bishop of Bayeux, the son of his mother by a plebeian husband. During the absence of the Conqueror, the Saxons began to mutter threats of vengeance, and even went so far as to enter into a conspiracy to cut off the Normans as their forefathers had done the Danes. It appears, from the testimony of several credible annalists, that the oppression which the English suffered at the hands of the insolent soldiery was most galling, and called loudly for retaliation. These alarming rumours crossed the channel, and reached the ears of William, who hastened from his continental dominions, and, landing in England in December 1067, made a sort of second conquest of that country. The Saxons of Devonshire, joined by the neighbouring Britons in Cornwall, had thrown off their allegiance to him, and against them he first turned his arms. They made a gallant stand; but William having reduced Exeter, succeeded in breaking the spirit of resistance for a time. About this period, Edgar, with his mother and two sisters, having embarked for Hungary, were driven by a tempest upon the coast of Scotland. That country was at the time governed by Malcolm, surnamed Ceanmore, who gladly received the fugitives, and made them a return for that kindness which he had himself experienced under similar circumstances at the English court. Many Saxon nobles followed Edgar, who, with subsequent emigrations of disaffected Normans, founded the greater number of the Scottish noble families. Malcolm afterwards married Matilda, the eldest sister of Edgar.

William the Conqueror now turned his attention to the north, where his authority had not yet been properly esta-

blished. From the heart of Mercia to the confines of Scotland a spirit of open insubordination prevailed, and was fostered by Edwin, who had been at one time promised the hand of William's daughter, but was afterwards refused it. The insurrection became formidable; but it was soon quelled, and this served more and more to confirm the power of the Normans. William penetrated as far as York, which opened its gates to him, scattered the isolated and feeble bands who opposed his march, and reduced all the important towns on his way. During this expedition he also fortified a number of castles. The tranquillity thus produced was, however, of short duration. At Durham the English succeeded in massacring the whole Norman force established there, excepting two men. York followed the example of Durham, and rising upon the garrison, killed the governor, with many of his retainers. Shortly after this event, the sons of Harold, the late king, landed from Ireland with the intention of making an effort to recover the crown; but they were utterly defeated in two engagements, by Brian, son of the Earl of Bretagne.

A new and formidable auxiliary of the malcontents had now however arrived in the Humber; this was a powerful Danish armament. Edgar Atheling, several illustrious Saxons, and crowds of the English, having joined them, they successfully assaulted York; but William, apprised of their descent, hastened to the scene of war. His usual good fortune attended him; and the Danes were compelled to quit the country without crossing arms with the Normans in any conflict worthy the name of a battle. Hints have occasionally been thrown out that they were bribed by the Conqueror; but of this circumstance there is no direct evidence. Upon another point, however, all historians are agreed, namely, that, piqued by these repeated insurrections, the king, in a transport of passion, had sworn to extirpate Northumbria. This merciless vow was performed nearly to the letter. Unbounded license was given to the soldiery, who ravaged the country with fire and sword. The destroying angel could scarcely have left a more desolate wilderness behind. An historian, William of Malmesbury, who wrote sixty years after the event, thus describes it: "From York to Durham not one inhabited village remained; fire, slaughter, and desolation made it a vast desert, which continues to this day." The dead remained unburied; famine, with pestilence in its train, stalked throughout the neighbouring provinces; whilst confiscation brought up the rear of this terrible visitation, and completed the ruin of the country and its inhabitants, gleaning whatever the sword had not destroyed. Such atrocities as these imprint a blot upon the escutcheon of William which it is impossible to obliterate. To his authority the rebel chieftains were compelled to submit; and having thus in the most summary manner crushed rebellion in this quarter of his dominions, he returned southwards, clearing the provinces of the disaffected as he proceeded, and repairing or building castles for the subjection of the country.

William was now undisputed master of England. The conquest of the country, properly speaking, only began

1 Although not mentioned by our historians, contemporary annalists establish and illustrate the fact that the armies of the continent at this period were in a great measure composed of mercenaries, who followed war as a profession, and hired themselves out to the best paymaster. These individuals were different from those who followed the banners of the barons according to the feudal system. They were little better than hired banditti, and were very numerous in the Low Countries, whence William had sprung. That the force with which he invaded England contained vast numbers of these condottieri, is not only probable, but appears nearly certain, when we contemplate the methods of furnishing out an army in those days. The plunder of the provinces which they overran or conquered seems to have been looked upon by them as not only allowable, but as forming part of their reward. That the affair at William's coronation arose from their rapacity for pillage, which they looked upon as a right, there can be little doubt; and they chose the most fitting time for successfully carrying their project into execution: a time when their leaders were withdrawn, and in attendance at the ceremony going on within the church. They had previously broken out in the same way at Dover.

History. with the battle of Hastings. It was not until seven years thereafter, when he carried the terror of his arms to York, that the country was completely subdued. Before that period not one half of England acknowledged his authority. But the spirit of the Saxons was now fairly broken, and finding themselves pursued with such extirpating vengeance, many of them sought refuge amongst the hills and forests, whilst others emigrated to foreign lands. A party of them under Hereward, a resolute chief, attempted to make a stand in the island of Ely, immediately after the northern massacre. This land of fens and marshes was the last asylum of Saxon independence; and Morcar, with some bishops and the remainder of the most conspicuous Saxons, repaired thither. For a while William disdained to notice the efforts of Hereward; but at last he invaded his circumscribed territory, and, scattering his little band, compelled him to fly. This bold and patriotic chieftain afterwards gave in his submission, and being allowed to retain his paternal possessions, the end of his days proved happy. His daring exploits had endeared him to his countrymen, and conferred on him a romantic celebrity. His actions were the theme of many a Saxon song; and even the Normans did homage to his warlike virtues. He was the last of the Saxons who drew the sword in the cause of national independence.

History. kings enjoyed; but they appear to have been considerably increased by the various changes which took place, and also very carefully collected; for from an ancient historian we learn that the king's daily income amounted to above one thousand pounds, a sum almost incredible when we reflect that gold was then three times and silver ten times the value which they possess in modern times.

During the visit of William to his continental possessions, the Norman barons rebelled against him, and were joined by some Saxon chiefs. The king hastened across seas with a band of auxiliaries, and made an easy conquest of the insurgents. The remaining events of his reign are not sufficiently important to require a minute recital. The most remarkable is the revolt of his son Robert, who had been promised the duchy of Normandy when William first invaded England. The French monarch fomented the hostilities between the father and son, which existed for several years, and closed with a most romantic incident. Robert, being besieged in the castle of Gorberoi, engaged a knight enveloped in complete armour, and unhorsed him, at the same time inflicting a wound in his arm. When about to pursue his advantage, Robert recognised in the fallen warrior the voice of his father. A reconciliation was finally effected by the tears and entreaties of Matilda, the mother of this Norman Absalom.

Whilst engaged in a desolating warfare against Philip, king of France, William came before the town of Montes in July 1087, and ordered it to be burned. He rode to view the scene, and galloping among the smouldering ruins, his horse reared and plunged so violently as severely to wound the rider, who was at the time very corpulent and unwieldy. He was carried in a dangerous state to the vicinity of Rouen, where he breathed his last, on the 9th of September. On his death-bed the conscience of the Conqueror appears to have stung him deeply; for he ordered that several prisoners in England, amongst whom was Odo his half-brother, should be set at large; and that restitution should be made for what he had violently destroyed. But these atonements were inadequate to expiate the crimes of which he had been guilty.

The character of William has been drawn in the Saxon chronicle by an Englishman, who was his contemporary, and lived at his court. From this document we learn that the king was very wise, very rich, and "more worshipful and strong than any of his fore-gangers." It is added, that "he was mild to good men who loved God, and stark beyond all bounds to those who withstood his will," and the chronicler goes on to show that he exercised a passionate as well as politic tyranny. That, in fact, he surpassed his contemporary rulers in capacity for command, the events of his life bear ample testimony. All those qualities which fit an individual for directing and controlling the minds of men in troubled times he possessed in an eminent degree. In extenuation of his perfidy and cruelty, it may be urged that these detestable qualities were not more characteristic of him than of the age in which he lived; and that he is conspicuous for them above his competitors only because, from the vigour of his mind, and the great transactions in which he interested himself, he was their superior in every thing else. In a happier state of society, when moral restraint is generally recognised, and influences the development of the mental con-

William having now quieted the tumults at home, turned his attention to Malcolm, king of Scotland, whom he compelled to submit. The affairs of the church also occupied him for a time; and several changes were effected, not, it may well be believed, to the advantage of the Saxon prelates. One of them, the Archbishop of Canterbury, was deposed, and his place supplied by Lanfranc, who, although a worthy man, was the creature of William, and in bondage to Rome. In the meanwhile, Edgar Atheling had sought and obtained the friendship of the Conqueror, who, to his honour, ever afterwards maintained this weak and almost imbecile youth in ease and affluence at his court.1 William now ventured upon another visit to Normandy, where we shall leave him engaged in petty contests, and take a view of the state of England after its subjugation.

By the introduction of a foreign sovereign, a foreign hierarchy, and a foreign nobility, the native population suffered severe depression. To supply the liberal grants of land and places of honour and trust to his followers, the English were of course sacrificed; and thus they were compelled to become the servants or dependents of their conquerors. Contempt and oppression became their heritage. Their farms were pillaged, their females violated, their persons imprisoned, and other indignities heaped upon them, at the caprice of the petty tyrants who were set over them. The principal favourites of the Conqueror had another distinction conferred upon them in addition to the grants of land. This was the earldom or command of the several counties. Two legal revolutions occurred or were completed during the reign of William; the separation of the ecclesiastical from the civil judicature, and the introduction or consummation of the feudal system, for an account of which the reader is referred to the proper head. He effected various other judicial changes which were ultimately beneficial to the community. The crown revenues were a continuation of those which the Anglo-Saxon

1 Sir James Mackintosh, in his History of England (vol. i. p. 108), gives a somewhat different account of this youth, but upon what authority is not stated; ours is Mr Turner, who quotes from William of Malmesbury. There is considerable ambiguity in the passage; for Sir James (p. 102 of the same work) says that Malcolm Cennmore "married the Princess Margaret, after the death of her brother Edgar." Now the king of Scotland espoused this princess several years before the events noticed in p. 108, so that one or other of these statements must be erroneous; for none of our historians makes mention of two contemporary princes named Edgar belonging to the royal house of Wessex.

History. stitution of man, his glories would not probably have appeared more stained with blood than those of Cromwell and other warriors who have attained the seat of successful ambition and uneasy power. Neither these palliatives, however, nor his death-bed penitence, can atone for irrevocable crimes, or erase from the page of history such deeds as the Northumbrian massacre.

Much has been written concerning the Norman conquest, for it is a subject of inexhaustible interest. That it became ultimately of incalculable benefit to the country, whatever may have been the suffering immediately consequent upon the event itself, no one can doubt who reflects upon the fluctuating condition of England, its oscillation between foreign bondage and native independence, its internal broils and never-ending distractions, previously to the invasion of the Normans, with the consolidated strength which it internally displayed, and the dignified bearing which it outwardly assumed, after it was conquered by them. Insurrections, though not unknown afterwards, were of less frequent occurrence, and far less alarming, than before; and from the period of the invasion of William, no foreign enemy dared to set his foot upon the soil with impunity. Amongst the financial innovations of his reign was the composition of the Doomsday Book, for an account of which the reader is referred to the article under that head.

The Conqueror left three sons by his wife Matilda. Robert, the eldest, was installed in the duchy of Normandy; whilst William, surnamed Rufus or the Red, from his complexion, obtained the throne of England, and was crowned on the 26th of September 1087. An attempt was made by his half-uncle Odo to dethrone him, and to set up his brother Robert in his stead. But William, alarmed at the formidable demonstrations which were made against him, appealed to the English for aid, and his call was most loyally obeyed. The Normans who had invaded England were compelled to fly, and William carried the war into Normandy, where a reconciliation was effected in the year 1091. The king of England had acquired several continental fortresses, of which he was still to retain possession. It was also stipulated between the brothers, that on the decease of either, the survivor should succeed to the dominions of the other. Henry, the younger brother, who suffered by the treaty, held out several strong places in Normandy; but they joined their forces together, and besieged him in St Michael's Mount, whence he was compelled to fly from want of water.

Robert accompanied his brother to England, where he had been promised possessions as an equivalent for the fortresses which he had yielded up in Normandy. But William did not find it convenient to fulfil the terms of the treaty; upon which his brother, who had again crossed the channel, sent over two heralds for the purpose of declaring him a false and perjured knight. In order to defend his honour, the king followed them into Normandy; but his transactions there belong rather to his own individual history than to that of the country which he governed. The possession of his brother's dominions was a leading object of William's ambition; and he gradually acquired an ascendancy in Normandy, which he repeatedly invaded, obtaining new cessions at each adventure. Robert finally mortgaged the whole country to him for three years, at an equivalent of ten thousand marks.

The other events of William's reign were, an invasion of Wales, which was crowned with the usual success; and a war with Scotland, in which the monarch of that country was slain. His government of England was most unpopular. For the gratification of his own appetites, and the enriching of worthless favourites, he plundered the country with impunity. During the life of Lanfranc, his un-

disciplined rapacity was checked by the wisdom and influence of that excellent prelate. His death, however, removed every restraint, for the king supplied his place by the appointment of an able but remorseless counsellor, who, according to the king himself, was capable of braving the execrations and the vengeance of mankind, in order to gratify his master's desires. Many bishoprics, including amongst these the see of Canterbury, were kept vacant by the king for several years, until a severe illness convinced him of the necessity of appointing a primate. The individual whom he fixed upon was Anselm, one of the most learned and meritorious men of his age. This individual at first demurred to accept the archbishopric, dreading the violence of the king; but the earnest solicitations of his friends at last induced him to comply, and he thus became primate of England. William, as long as his illness was of a dangerous character, showed himself penitent and submissive. He commanded all his prisoners to be released, all his debtors to be forgiven, and all offences to be remitted; and he solemnly vowed that if he recovered he would govern the land in righteousness. But no sooner was he convalescent than he showed that his profession of amendment was only a matter of convenience, and extorted from an unforgiving spirit by the terrors of death. Anselm, as was usual in such cases, brought a voluntary present to his master as an acknowledgment for the dignity which had been conferred upon him; but the gift, not corresponding to the avaricious views of the monarch, was refused, and the unfortunate primate was ever afterwards persecuted by him with the most unrelenting tyranny. Anselm at last sought shelter in Rome, where he continued until William's demise.

The death of the monarch, like his life, was violent. Whilst hunting in the New Forest, he was accidentally struck by an arrow, which buried itself in his breast, and he expired on the spot. The shaft is believed to have been shot at random, and to have come from the bow of Walter Tyrrel, a French knight, who immediately made his escape. This event happened on the 2d of August in the year 1100.

Henry the First, surnamed Beauclerk or the Scholar, ascended the throne of England three days after the death of his brother, the preceding monarch. The compact which had been made between William and Robert was set aside; but the latter, considering himself as aggrieved, invaded England. The formidable demonstrations made by his brother, however, intimidated him, and a pacification was at last effected at the accession of Henry; and the latter propitiated the favour of his subjects by many wise acts. He removed the unpopular agents of his unfortunate brother, particularly Flambard, the obnoxious minister formerly alluded to, and also abolished the oppressive exactions which the latter had enforced. Anselm was recalled, and the clergy conciliated, whilst the people had restored to them the Anglo-Saxon laws and privileges as amended by Henry's father. He also gratified the nation by espousing Matilda, or Maud, daughter of Malcolm, king of Scotland, by Margaret, the sister of Edgar Atheling.

The king now turned his attention to the punishment of the outlaws who had thrown off his authority. Amongst these were included several noblemen, and particularly Robert de Belesme, the most powerful subject in England, and a man haughty, rapacious, and deceitful. He had secured himself within the walls of Shrewsbury, but at the arrival of Henry before this place he made a humiliating surrender, upon which his life was spared, but he was condemned to perpetual exile. Some time after these events Robert unexpectedly arrived in England, where he was received with apparent affection by his brother,

History. but very soon discovered that he was in reality a captive. The purpose of his visit was to intercede with Henry in favour of the rebels; but instead of compounding for their liberation, he was reduced to solicit his own, which he obtained by consenting to pay an annuity of three thousand marks. After his return to Normandy he entered into terms of friendship with the outlaw Belesme, who possessed numerous castles in the country. Intelligence of this having reached Henry, he renounced the alliance by which he had bound himself to keep the peace with Robert. This compact was similar to that which had subsisted between William and Robert, and a second time the latter became a brother's dupe. Henry invaded Normandy, and a decisive conflict before the walls of Tinchebrai, on the 27th of April 1106, decided the fate of Robert. His army was completely routed, and he himself taken prisoner and sent to England, where he remained in close confinement till his death, which happened in 1135. The cruel fate of this prince has served as a foil to the virtues which he possessed, and shed over them an artificial or spurious lustre. There can be no doubt, however, that his qualities as a warrior were brilliant, and his mind would seem to have been forgiving and conciliatory. Perhaps an amiable weakness in the latter respect was the ultimate cause of his misfortunes. Amongst the prisoners taken at Tinchebrai was Edgar Atheling. Either from his inherent weakness precluding any thing like fear on his account, or from a desire to retain the golden opinions of the Saxons, Henry pardoned him, and from this period the descendant of Alfred intrudes himself no more upon the page of English history.

Robert had a son about five years of age named William, whom a faithful vassal succeeded in conveying to the French court. As the age of this prince advanced, the hopes of his partizans proportionally increased. Henry, after obtaining possession of Normandy, had succeeded in tranquillizing it, and restoring peace and order; but as his nephew grew up, the claims which he possessed to the duchy of his father became more and more popular, and disturbed the quiet both of his uncle and the country. Henry should have at once yielded his paternal inheritance to the young prince; and the withholding of it was an act of injustice which harassed his life and dishonoured his name. The Norman barons, along with the king of France, took part with the injured youth; but this coalition terminated with the battle of Breville, which was fought in the year 1119. Louis, the French king, had four hundred, and Henry of England five hundred knights. Both princes displayed great bravery during the engagement, which ended, with comparatively but little bloodshed, in favour of the English. William of Normandy made his escape; and the pope, who paid a visit to Henry at Gisors, effected a reconciliation between him and Louis, without touching upon the main cause of quarrel, namely, the difference between the English monarch and his brother Robert, or rather his nephew William, the father being now politically dead.

Matters having been once more pacifically arranged, and the ambition of Henry gratified, he set sail for England towards the end of November 1120. Upon this occasion a most calamitous event occurred in his family, namely, the loss of his only son William. The prince, with a large retinue of gay young knights and noblemen, embarked shortly after his father. Festivity, riot, and intoxication prevailed on board; but in the midst of this feasting and debauchery, the care of the vessel being forgotten altogether, she struck upon a rock near Harfeur, and went down. Of three hundred individuals who were on board, only one escaped to record the dismal fate of his companions. Prince William would have been saved but for

the shrieks of his natural sister, which recalled him to the wreck with the boat in which he was proceeding towards shore; and it sunk under the multitudes who crowded into it.

This sudden calamity revived the hopes of Henry's nephew William, and disturbed all the arrangements of the king in Normandy. A new war was kindled in that country; but it terminated in 1124 in favour of the English monarch. The discomfited youth, however, received a new favour of fortune. Louis of France bestowed upon him the hand of his sister-in-law; and along with her he received several of the provinces nearest to Paris, which had been united to Normandy by conquest. Soon afterwards he was invested with the earldom of Flanders, which had been left vacant by the assassination of Charles the Good in 1127. In the meanwhile, Henry had endeavoured to perpetuate the succession in his own family, by marrying a second time, after the death of Matilda, his first wife, who had brought him a son and daughter. The premature fate of the former we have already noticed; and the latter, named Matilda, had espoused the Emperor of Germany. The marriage of the king proved to be without issue; and his daughter having recently become a widow, was invited to England, for the purpose of settling upon her the succession to the throne. In a general assembly of the prelates and chief tenants of the crown she was proposed by her father and acknowledged by the meeting as heiress presumptive; and shortly after this transaction her father privately married her to the Count of Anjou. This secret negotiation drew forth loud complaints from the barons; and many of them declared that the duplicity of the king had released them from the obligation of their oath. This doubtless disturbed the serenity of the king's reign; but another and more important cause of disquietude arose from the increasing power and fame of his nephew in Flanders. However, the death of that prince soon afterwards removed all uneasiness on his account, and restored at least the prospect of tranquillity. But this was not realized; for a quarrel with his son-in-law retained him in Normandy, and embroiled the last years of his reign, which was now drawing towards a close. Robert, the unfortunate duke of Normandy, died at Cardiff Castle in Wales, in the eightieth year of his age and twenty-eighth of his captivity, a great part of which had been spent in total blindness; for an unsuccessful attempt to escape had provoked his brother to deprive him of sight. All the historians of the period do not mention this circumstance, and some state that the prisoner enjoyed every indulgence; so that the point is doubtful, and for the honour of humanity we leave it in this state. In about a year thereafter, he was followed to the grave by king Henry, who died of a surfeit of lampreys, on the 1st of December 1135, in the sixty-seventh year of his age and thirty-fifth of his reign.

The character of Henry has been drawn by both friends and enemies, his contemporaries. The former extol him as wise, rich, and brave; and the latter execrate him as cruel, avaricious, and incontinent. By joining the two characters together, we will form a pretty fair estimate of the monarch. He was undoubtedly an able statesman and a courageous soldier, whilst his resolute attack upon the popular system of rapine which disgraced Europe at the time is entitled to very high praise. He punished offences severely; but his administration of justice was highly beneficial to the country; and hence arose his title of the Lion of Justice. On the other hand, the immorality of his private life, his exactions, his cruelty to his brother and others; his dissimulation, for even his favourites distrusted him; and his avarice, for he hoarded gold like a miser; render his character exceedingly equi-

History. vocal as a man, whatever estimate we may form of him as a sovereign. His reign offers little worthy of praise, excepting what has been noticed above. It was moreover so agitated, that he passed only five years of untroubled tranquillity in England.

It was the darling plan of Henry that his beloved daughter Maud should be his successor. By her second husband she had three sons, one or other of whom their uncle no doubt looked upon as the future monarch of England. But the claims of the ex-empress of Germany were waived, and Stephen earl of Boulogne, son of Adela, the daughter of William the Conqueror, succeeded to the throne. He was crowned upon the 26th of December 1135, and soon made himself very popular. According to custom, he immediately issued a charter, which promised of course good government and ample redress of grievances. His courts at the solemn festivals were held with extraordinary magnificence. He repulsed the invasion of David king of Scotland, who received a severe defeat at the Battle of the Standard, which was fought near Northallerton; he subdued his enemies in Normandy; and, by a yearly pension, he pacified the husband of the lady whom he had supplanted upon the throne. Robert earl of Gloucester, natural son of Henry, and the great supporter of Maud's rights, perceiving all hostility to be unavailing, at last swore fealty to the king. For the first two or three years of his reign, Stephen sat secure upon the throne; but he was doomed to be overtaken by a series of calamities. These arose partly from the inevitable consequences of his usurpation, and partly from his defects as a sovereign. That passion for depredation and conflict which the preceding monarch had subdued, again broke out. Every one built his own castle and maintained his own band of mercenary ruffians, who sallied forth day and night to plunder the surrounding country, and drag into dungeons such as they expected would give a high ransom for their freedom. A contemporary chronicler has drawn a horrible picture of the atrocities thus committed with impunity; for the mildness of Stephen's character, and probably the recollection of his own conduct in obtaining the crown, induced him to be forbearing and indulgent. His popularity rapidly declined; and in the fourth year of his reign it appears to have altogether ceased. In 1139 Matilda, with a few attendants, landed in England, for the purpose of recovering her lost inheritance. She was joined by Robert earl of Gloucester, with a hundred and fifty knights, who commenced a warfare which nearly hurled Stephen from the throne. After many conflicts, which were only characterized by the misery attendant upon them, the army of the Empress Matilda or Maud defeated that of Stephen near Lincoln, in the year 1141. The king was captured after a brave resistance; and Matilda was soon afterwards crowned queen of England at Winchester. The clergy, although they countenanced the accession of Stephen, now acknowledged her prior claim; and the queen, proceeding to London, was joyfully hailed by the citizens.

But her popularity was of short duration. By her arrogance and contemptuous conduct towards the friends of Stephen, she soon alienated the affections of the people, and was at last compelled to fly from the city and to establish her head-quarters at Oxford. In one of the numerous struggles which followed, the Earl of Gloucester was taken prisoner, which put the fortunes of the belligerents nearly upon a level. The king and the earl were exchanged for each other; and as both parties had now a commander upon whom they could depend, the conflict was perpetuated, with increasing misery to the nation. For some years the balance of power hung nearly in equipoise between them. Stephen reduced Oxford, but Ro-

bert defeated him at Wilton; and this miserable warfare continued, until, on the death of her brother Robert, Matilda returned to Normandy in 1147, when a breathing time of two years intervened.

In the meanwhile Henry, the son of Matilda, was advancing in years and in fortune. By his uncle David, king of Scotland, he had been knighted at the age of sixteen; a year thereafter he obtained from his father the cession of the duchy of Normandy; and at the death of that prince he succeeded to the earldom of Anjou. In 1152, by a politic marriage, he annexed the extensive duchy of Aquitaine to his dominions. This aggrandizement of her son's power having elevated the hopes of Matilda and those of her partizans, Prince Henry landed in England; but in consequence of the death of Eustace, the oldest son of Stephen, the two parties agreed to terms of peace. Stephen adopted Henry, and appointed him as his successor, one of the best acts of his troubled reign. They lived in harmony with each other for about a year, when Stephen died on the 25th of October 1154. He reigned nineteen years, during the greater part of which time England exhibited a scene of misery unequalled since the invasion of the Danes. The cause of these calamities we have already alluded to. The character of Stephen is not so deeply stained with atrocities as that of some of his predecessors, probably because it was not so determined. In comparison with them, the grasp which he held of the sceptre was as feeble as his right to seize it at all was equivocal.

Henry II. or Plantagenet, the son of Matilda, ascended the throne without a dissenting murmur. He was crowned, along with his queen Eleanor, at Westminster, on the 19th of December 1154, in presence of an immense concourse of people. The prospect which opened up to this young sovereign was more glorious than that of any of his forerunners in England, or his contemporaries in other countries. An unprecedented mass of power was concentrated in his hands. A third part of France, including almost the whole western coast from the borders of Picardy to the mountains of Navarre, acknowledged his authority. These possessions, along with England, comprehended the most warlike portion of Europe; and had the ambition of the individual who ruled over them been commensurate with his power, the humiliation, if not entire subjugation, of France would not have been reserved for the Henries and Edwards of after times. Although by no means destitute of a passion for power, Henry possessed a love of literature, which led him to eschew the cloudy and troubled atmosphere of war. The civil discord which prevailed during the reign of his predecessor had inflicted numerous evils on the nation, and to the alleviation of these Henry devoted the first years of his reign. He issued a new coinage, of standard weight and purity; he drove beyond seas the foreign mercenaries who had harboured in England during the reign of Stephen; he seized the royal castles which had been usurped, and demolished those which had been reared for the purpose of systematic plunder. By these vigorous steps of reformation Henry secured the effective administration of justice in his English dominions. One of the leading features of his character was restless activity. On foot or on horseback he was perpetually in motion; and the moments which he could spare from more important concerns were usually devoted to the chase.

Some of the leading events of Henry's reign are associated with the name of Thomas a Becket, who has been portrayed as a saint and martyr, or a hypocrite and traitor, according to the religious bias of the historian who happened to draw the picture. Under the article BECKET an account of this celebrated prelate will be found; and it is only necessary in this place to allude to those events of his life which are identified with the history of his

History. country. One of Henry's first measures was the promotion of this individual to the chancellorship of England, in which capacity he vigorously seconded the measures of reform which the king had undertaken. His administration has been characterized as alike beneficial to the country and to the sovereign, who loaded his favourite minister with honours and emoluments. By the advice of Becket, Henry proposed a treaty of marriage between his eldest son and the daughter of Louis king of France. On this occasion the chancellor undertook a journey to Paris, displaying upon the occasion a pomp and parade transcendently elaborate. Henry himself followed; and although a rupture ensued between the sovereigns about the city of Toulouse, which belonged of right to the king of England, their enmities terminated with the marriage of their children whilst the infants were as yet in the cradle. We have now arrived at that period of Becket's life in which his conduct has been the subject of a kind of historical crusade. In 1161 Theobald the archbishop of Canterbury died, and Becket was recommended as his successor by the king. The clergy of England, however, resisted the nomination, declaring it to be unseemly for a man who was rather a soldier than a priest, and whose life had been devoted to hunting and falconry, to be appointed an archbishop. More than twelve months elapsed between the nomination and appointment, during which time Becket still retained the chancellorship, and evinced no change in his feelings or way of living, which was eminently worldly. He even went so far as to smile at the idea of metamorphosing the gay and pompous Chancellor of England into the Archbishop of Canterbury; and he appears himself to have thought that the choice arose from Henry's confidence that he would become the pliable instrument of his will in ecclesiastical affairs. If the king anticipated such a consummation, never were the hopes of man more miserably disappointed. For no sooner was Becket invested with the primacy, than a change took place in his manners, more strongly contrasted with his former life than were the two offices which he had held. Instead of a train, which in splendour and fastidious pomp had rivalled the retinue of kings, he chose a few monks the most conspicuous for their humility and mortification. Instead of the oriental magnificence and gorgeousness of apparel with which he loved to dazzle the eyes even of courtiers, he selected as his chosen garment the roughest sackcloth. His sports and revels were exchanged for deeds of penitence and humiliation. And thus far his conduct appears to have been commendable; but did his future behaviour warrant a belief that this sudden change was attributable to the sincere conviction of a pure and lofty spirit, which had changed its views regarding the relative value of earthly and heavenly things, or to the policy of a deep and designing hypocrite? The remaining particulars of his life will best enable the reader to form his own judgment as to this, which is one of the most disputed points in our history.

The first step which Becket took after his promotion was to return the seals of his former office to Henry, on the ground of his incompetency to hold two such offices. This measure is said to have at first excited the indignation of the king, who had never before heard Becket object to the prelacy on that account. But it was not until 1163, when hostilities commenced between the church and the state, that Becket and the king came fairly into collision. Previously to the Norman conquest, ecclesiastical affairs had, like others, been decided before the hundred, with the addition of the metropolitan sitting as one of the judges. The Conqueror, however, had instituted a separate tribunal, where the clergy were judged by a court composed of themselves, and from that time they were inde-

History. pendent of secular jurisdiction. Becket upheld this claim with firmness, as he ought to have done, until it was formally set aside by the king and his counsellors. This, however, did not justify the decisions which were pronounced, and which had now become notoriously partial. Crimes of the darkest description had frequently been perpetrated by ecclesiastics with the most scandalous impunity; for the judges could not inflict capital, nor indeed any adequate punishment. An abominable instance of seduction having attracted the notice of the king, he determined that those chargeable with such atrocities should be tried before the criminal tribunals of the state. For this purpose he summoned a great council at Westminster, where he demanded that ecclesiastics, whenever convicted of such offences, should be degraded, and handed over to a secular judiciary. His question was, Would they agree to observe the ancient customs of the realm? Becket answered yes, saving his order; an ambiguous reply, which was echoed by the conclave of bishops present, with only one exception. But, although not at this assembly, he was afterwards compelled to yield the point without any reservation respecting his order. This formal assent was obtained at the celebrated council of Clarendon, which took place on the 25th of January 1164. At this great or common council of the realm, for the word parliament had not yet been introduced, Becket was compelled to yield compliance to the demands of his sovereign. At first he peremptorily refused his acquiescence; but the king, incensed at his obstinacy, menaced him with exile or death, whilst several individuals of rank present entreated him with genuflections and tears to submit; by which means a compliance was at last reluctantly wrung from him. These customs and usages, the recognition of which was thus so vehemently urged, were contained in sixteen articles, which were afterwards well known under the name of the Institutions of Clarendon, by which it was enacted that clergymen accused of any crime should be tried in civil courts; that laymen should not be tried in spiritual courts, except by legal and reputable witnesses; that no ecclesiastical person should quit the realm without the king's license; that all causes not ecclesiastical should be finally determined in the king's court; that all ecclesiastical persons who were tenants in capite of the crown should follow the king's customs, sue and be sued respecting their fiefs before his justices, and attend, like other barons, at his courts; that vacant dignities in the church should be in the king's hands; and that he should also receive the profits of his seignorial dues. These, with some others, to the number of sixteen, were subscribed by all the ecclesiastics present, including Becket himself. He was now not only mortified in the highest degree, but, pretending extreme contrition for what he had done, did open penance for his supposed delinquency. He attempted to make his escape to France, but was arrested for an offence against the institutions which he had recently signed. Henry was now exasperated beyond all bounds at the archbishop, and assembled a parliament at Northampton, obviously for the purpose of crushing him. Becket was accordingly summoned to account for rents and profits connected with his primacy. He arrayed himself in his sacerdotal vestments, and, with the cross in his hand, proceeded to the place appointed. The king complained to the council of the insolent behaviour of Becket, and the whole assembly joined in condemning his inconsistency. The suit regarding rents, which was only intended as a menace, he attempted to free himself from, by pleading a release by Henry the king's son; but this was overruled. After being condemned as a perjured traitor, he left the palace, his eyes fixed upon the cross, which he held uplifted in his hands; and, travelling in disguise, he

History. reached the port of Sandwich, whence he immediately embarked for the Continent.

Becket was received with marks of esteem by the king of France, and likewise by the pope, whose cause he had so strenuously defended in England. When Henry learned the flattering reception which the obnoxious exile had received, he dispatched an embassy to expostulate with Louis, and sent another to Rome, to justify his conduct to the pontiff. But the ambassadors were received with coolness, if not with something which bordered upon contempt. The judgment of the barons and bishops was annulled by the pope, and those who should invade the property of the church were declared to be cut off from the society of the faithful. Henry's irritation had now reached its climax, and he resolved upon taking a bold step, which, had the human mind been ripe for such a measure, might have ended in the separation of the English church from that of Rome; but this achievement was reserved for the Henry of a future day. He gave orders to his justices, prohibiting, under severe penalties, all appeals to the pope or the archbishop, and forbidding any person to receive mandates from them, or to apply to their authority; and he declared it treasonable to bring over from either any interdict against the kingdom. On the other hand, the pope was not slow in issuing his fulminations. Becket was ordered to excommunicate Henry's chief ministers, and put the see of Canterbury, including about three fourths of the kingdom, under an interdict. But Henry stood firm, and looked with indifference upon the papal lightnings which played around him. At last, however, he began to dread the powers of his victim, chiefly on account of his continental dominions, and proposed a reconciliation. The treaty of accommodation, although more than once broken off, was finally concluded, and Becket returned to the see of Canterbury without having been compelled to make any express submission to the institutions of Clarendon.

But the wounds had been too deep to be thus suddenly healed, and, though closed at the surface, the venom still rankled underneath. The arrogance and presumption of the primate returned along with his dignity. He refused compliance with the terms of the general amnesty, and would not submit to take the oath of homage for his barony; neither would he withdraw the whole of the ecclesiastical censure from the prelates who lay under it on account of their obedience to the king's commands. Several very imprudent excommunications soon followed, and so provoked Henry that he is said to have dropped certain passionate expressions, intimating something which was interpreted into a desire that Becket's life might be taken away. The supposed will of the king was instantly accomplished by four knights of distinguished rank, who repaired to the church of Canterbury, where the primate then officiated, and barbarously slew him at the foot of the altar. See BECKET.

Thus perished by foul murder, in the fifty-third year of his age, Thomas a Becket, who, every thing considered, was probably the most remarkable man of his time. That he believed he was all the while conscientiously performing his duty, in preserving the immunities of the church, there seems little reason to doubt; for he would not have met his fate with such heroic and martyr-like firmness unless this had been the case. His virtues were of an austere character, and wanted that amiable attractiveness which we usually associate with the character of one who is profoundly inspired by the morality of the gospel. His vices, on the other hand, were the reverse of mean and groveling; for his spirit was lofty and aspiring, and his designs were invested with a dazzling grandeur, and pursued with a fearless firmness much more calculated to ex-

cite awe than detestation, far less contempt. That Henry did not intend the murder of Becket, appears certain from his subsequent conduct. He was thrown into the utmost consternation on hearing of it, knowing well that the primate's death would accomplish what his most violent opposition during his lifetime could never have effected. He abandoned himself to sorrow and mortification, and for some time refused to take any nourishment. The pope was with some difficulty made sensible of the king's innocence; but declined to grant him a pardon, except on condition that he should make every future submission, and perform every injunction which the holy see thought proper to prescribe or impose. He was likewise enjoined to perform a humiliating penance at the tomb of Becket, who was in due time canonized as a saint and venerated as a martyr. The assassins, despairing of pardon, sought refuge in a distant castle. By the pope they were enjoined to make a pilgrimage to the Holy Land, where they all died, and were buried before the gate of the temple at Jerusalem.

We come now to a very important event in the reign of Henry II. that is, the annexation of Ireland to the English crown; but the details of his invasion it is unnecessary to relate here, as they will come in due order to be treated of under the head IRELAND.

The king was scarcely freed from the Irish war, and the dangerous controversy in which he had engaged with the church of Rome, when he found himself involved in the most unnatural contests with his own children, to whom he had always behaved in the most tender and affectionate manner. He had ordered Henry, his eldest son, to be anointed king; and he had destined that prince as his successor in the kingdom of England, the duchy of Normandy, and the counties of Anjou, Maine, and Touraine, territories which lay contiguous, and which might thus easily afford mutual assistance to each other when necessity required. Richard, his second son, was invested with the duchy of Guienne and the county of Poitou; Geoffrey, his third son, inherited, in right of his wife, the duchy of Brittany; and the new conquest of Ireland was destined for John, his fourth and youngest son. The last sixteen years of Henry's life were embittered by family hostilities. A mighty confederacy was secretly formed against him, in which his three eldest sons participated. Louis VII. king of France, fed the discord; for the power of the English monarch had now become so formidable as to excite alarm and kindle up jealousy in the breasts of the continental sovereigns. The young prince was persuaded to demand of his father some of the dominions which he had been promised, and of which he was nominal sovereign; but he was refused. Upon this the prince made his escape, and put himself under the protection of the king of France. The French monarch then invaded Normandy; and Richard and Geoffrey, the sons of King Henry, severally raised the standard of revolt in Guienne and Bretagne. William the Lion, king of Scotland, considering this as a favourable opportunity for invading England, advanced into the northern counties, destroying all he met with. A great force of foreign mercenaries, called Brabançons, landed in Sussex, under the command of the Earl of Leicester, whilst Prince Henry collected another army in France in order to co-operate with them. To meet this formidable coalition against his authority, King Henry made the best preparations which circumstances admitted of; and if we may judge of these by the results which followed, he must have taxed his constitutional activity to the utmost in collecting forces, and in opposing a barrier to the tide of war which thus rolled onward from every quarter, threatening to overwhelm his throne. Few of his own barons could be depended upon, and he had

History. recourse to the foreign mercenaries so largely employed by his adversaries. Twenty thousand of these auxiliaries enlisted under his banners, and with them were united such of his own nobles and retainers as could be trusted.

The enmity of the young princes against their father had been in no inconsiderable degree excited and fostered by Eleanor their mother, whom the incontinent and licentious life of Henry had for ever estranged from her affections. She attempted to make her escape; but was taken prisoner, and consigned to close imprisonment, where, with the exception of a short interval, she remained till the death of her husband.

In the meanwhile, the plan devised by the allies began to be acted upon, as already indicated; but Henry of England proved himself superior to the emergency. His foreign enemies were on all sides discomfited, and William of Scotland having accidentally fallen into the hands of Henry, the Scottish army broke up and dispersed. Their sovereign afterwards obtained his freedom by the humiliating surrender of his authority as king of Scotland; for conceding to Henry the title of lord paramount of his kingdom was virtually casting his crown at the feet of his enemy. A pacification was brought about at Falaise, on the 28th of September 1174, by which the princes were pardoned and enriched with new liberalities.

King Henry, however, was permitted to enjoy but a few years of repose. The dissensions between him and his children again broke out. The latter also quarrelled amongst themselves, and a most unnatural war ensued, in which neither party gave quarter. But the death of Henry, the eldest son, for a time suspended these disputes. This unfortunate prince died in 1183, of a fever brought on by vexation and fatigue. Three years afterwards Geoffrey perished beneath the feet of a horse in a tournament at Paris, so that the subjects of discord were diminished. The widow of Geoffrey, soon after his decease, was delivered of a son, who was named Arthur, and invested with the duchy of Brittany, under the guardianship of his grandfather, who, as duke of Normandy, was also suzerain lord of that territory. Philip, as lord paramount, disputed the title of the English king to this wardship; but he was obliged to yield to the wishes of the Bretons, who preferred the government of Henry. Some other causes inflamed the dissension between these monarchs, and Philip once more seduced Richard from his duty. He insisted that the marriage of that prince with Adelais, his sister, should be immediately completed, and threatened to enforce his demands with a formidable army. This lady had been confined for a long time in a castle by Henry, who procrastinated the nuptials, until a suspicion arose that he intended to appropriate her to himself. At the conclusion of the truce which had followed the death of Geoffrey, Richard finally forsook his father, and did homage to the king of France for his continental dominions.

For some time the eyes of the monarchs of Christendom had been turned to Palestine, which the Sultan Saladin was overrunning with his mighty hosts. Henry of England was desirous of taking the cross and proceeding to Syria, but his perpetual contests with his family detained him until the holy city was taken by the infidels. The news of this event awakened feelings of regret and indignation throughout Christendom. The Emperor of Germany marched his bravest knights towards Asia. Philip of France and Henry agreed to follow, but the union of the former with Richard the son of the latter compelled the king of England, in the first place, to look to the de-

fence of his own territories, which were once more invaded by the confederates. The war proved very unfortunate for Henry, who lost several towns, and very narrowly escaped falling into the hands of the enemy. A treaty was at length agreed to, but the terms of it were very humiliating to the English monarch. With a heart overwhelmed with grief, he returned to the castle of Chinon, where he soon afterwards expired, on the 6th of July 1189, in the thirty-fifth year of his reign and the fifty-seventh of his age. Upon his death-bed he was sedulously attended by one of his natural sons, the fruit of an amour with Rosamond, whom popular romance and tradition have surnamed the Fair, and invested with every virtue but one. Henry was interred with little pomp in the convent of Fontevraud, in the presence of his rebellious son Richard, and a few knights; but Eleanor, his queen, survived him many years, having been liberated by her son Richard. The character of Henry II. has been already detailed at sufficient length. During his reign important changes in ancient law and usage were matured, and became conspicuous, on which account they have been ascribed to the administration of this monarch; but it is more probable that they resulted from the slow growth of circumstances, with little aid from rulers, who were perhaps unconscious that any change had occurred.1

Richard I. succeeded to the throne without opposition, and was crowned on the 3d of September 1189. The reign of this monarch, the Achilles of modern Europe, is interwoven with events which are more akin to romance than to real history. His life is made up of the adventures of a knight-errant. His character was a singular compound of qualities noble and mean; of the grand and the groveling, the sublime and the grotesque. It has been thus drawn by Mr Turner, in his History of England: "Haughty, irascible, and vindictive, a towering and barbaric grandeur, verging sometimes into barbarian cruelty, distinguished his actions. Valiant beyond the common measure of human daring, unparalleled in his feats of prowess; inferior to no man in hardihood, strength, and agility; stern and inflexible in his temper; rapacious and selfish, yet frequently liberal to profusion; gorgeous to ostentation, yet often gay, familiar, satirical, and jocular; unshaken by adversity; resolute to obstinacy, furious in warfare, fond of battle, and always irresistibly victorious; his life seems rather the fiction of a poet's imagination than the sober portrait of authentic history." But this character for martial prowess and heroism was softened by a love of literature, particularly Provençal poetry; and although the specimens of his compositions which have been transmitted to us scarcely deserve the name of poetry, still they evince the presence of the passion in his mind. It was the same sentiment which thus penetrated the tempestuous atmosphere so congenial to his soul that imbued his exploits with the spirit of genius and romance. An overweening love of praise added its inspiration to his feelings, and contributed to render his actions pre-eminently conspicuous even in the high and palmy age of chivalry. He had no sooner ascended the throne than he began to make arrangements for joining the new levies of crusaders preparing to embark for the Holy Land. In such a sphere nature had fitted the king of England to shine without a rival. His landing in Palestine was destined to mark an era, when the Moslems were to encounter a warrior superior even to the most distinguished of their own in lofty daring and proud contempt of danger, and when the brows of their bravest chieftains were to darken at the name of Richard.

1 Mackintosh's History of England, vol. i. p. 172.

At his coronation an event occurred which it is painful to mention, and too shocking to give in detail. The Jews, eager to express their fealty to the new sovereign, approached him in numbers, bearing rich presents of gold and silver, commodities which they well knew would be peculiarly acceptable to the king. In their endeavours to press forward towards the hall door during the state dinner, a scuffle ensued. The Jews resisted the ill treatment they received, which so inflamed the passions of the English mob that they arose upon the defenceless strangers, and drove away or destroyed them. This example of violence spread not only over the city, but throughout the country; and the unfortunate Israelites were massacred and plundered without mercy. It was in vain that the king attempted to allay the tumult; the sanguinary rabble would not desist until its ferocity and rapacity were completely satiated.

Richard having equipped his armament, and acquired the necessary treasure by every means in his power (and from his natural impatience he was never scrupulous upon that point), joined Philip of France and marched with him to Lyons. As the principal events connected with this expedition are already embodied in the article CRUSADES, we shall not recapitulate here the whole details, but only notice such as have not been there introduced. On his way Richard relieved Portugal, by joining the sovereign of that country with five hundred knights, and bidding defiance to the Moors or Saracens. This was an evil omen for the followers of the Prophet. After landing at Messina, he remained there six months, which were chiefly occupied in warm disputes with Tancred, who had usurped the Sicilian crown. On the 10th of April 1191 Richard set sail from this place; but his fleet having been dispersed by a storm, and the ship in which were his sister Joan, and his betrothed wife Berengaria, being driven into Cyprus, he landed on that island for the purpose of chastising the governor, who had treated the royal ladies with some discourtesy. Richard reduced the whole island, and after marrying Berengaria, and causing her to be crowned queen of England, he set sail for St Jean d'Acre, which afterwards surrendered to him. (See ACRE.) The fall of this place opened the way to Jerusalem, towards which he now advanced, performing on his way those chivalrous deeds which taught the infidels to shudder at the apparition of his name. (See CRUSADES.) In October 1192 Richard set sail from the Holy Land for England, with a fleet, which contained his wife and sister, who appear to have reached their destination in safety. But a storm having dispersed the ships, Richard was driven near Marseilles. Having learned, however, that plans were in agitation to seize his person (for Philip of France and other continental sovereigns, together with his brother, were leagued against him), he formed the unfortunate resolution of passing through Germany in disguise.

He landed at Zara, and after a variety of adventures and hairbreadth escapes, he was at last arrested by Leopold, duke of Austria, who immediately ordered him to be loaded with fetters. This prince had served under Richard at the siege of Acre, where he received, or imagined he had received, some injury at his hands, and took this base method of revenging himself. Henry VI. emperor of Germany, was then equally an enemy to Richard, on account of his having married Berengaria, the daughter of Tancred king of

Sicily. He therefore required the royal captive to be delivered into his hands, and stipulated to pay a large sum of money to the duke as a reward for his services.

The disaster which had befallen the English monarch could not be long concealed. The news of his captivity spread general indignation at home; a feeling which was responded to by the disinterested portion of Europe. Richard's mother, along with the clergy of Germany, appealed to the pope; and the emperor, finding that his conduct was condemned as disgraceful, made an attempt to justify it, by charging his prisoner with several weighty crimes. These were, his behaviour in Sicily, his conquest of Cyprus, and the alleged murder of Conrad, who was assassinated whilst contending for the Christian kingdom of Palestine. The latter charge being by far the most serious, every effort was made to vindicate Richard from the guilt of the alleged crime. At home the ministry exerted themselves to the utmost; and the most able prelates set out for the Continent to bargain for his ransom. He was removed from a dungeon in the Tyrol to the residence of the emperor at Haguenau, and was taken from thence to Worms, for a final adjustment of differences.

In the meanwhile, his brother John, with Philip of France, were busily prosecuting their plans for his destruction. Their design was to effect the utter ruin of Richard; and every method was tried to accomplish their purpose. John made his feudal submission to Philip for his brother's continental possessions; and having assembled an army, he returned to England with the intention of seizing the crown, whilst his colleague invaded Normandy. Both the confederates were completely unsuccessful. John, by circulating false reports of his brother's death, attempted to give a gloss of right to his projected usurpation; but his duplicity was too well known, and his armament of foreign mercenaries was repulsed from the coast.

The negotiations for Richard's liberation ended at last in the agreement that a ransom of one hundred thousand marks of silver should be paid for it. It was in vain that his mortal enemies, Philip and John, protracted his imprisonment. By a general tax the sum was raised; and soon after his emancipation he set out for England, where he arrived on the 13th of March 1194. The remainder of his reign is very unimportant; it was chiefly occupied with a species of petty bickerings with Philip of France. The money required for the crusade, and the ransom of Richard, had so exhausted the finances of England, that the king found himself unable to undertake war upon a grand scale. If we contemplate the character of the individual who found himself thus fettered by pecuniary necessities, this was a fortunate circumstance. It would be difficult to estimate the amount of human misery which was thus saved. After various undecisive battles and equivocal victories, Richard was mortally wounded before Chaluz, an obscure castle in the province of Limousin, held by a rebellious vassal, and expired on the 6th of April 1199, in the forty-second year of his age and the tenth of his reign.

Thus perished, in the prime of life, one of the most romantic characters to be met with in real history.1 His character we have already given; and with respect to his reign, we cannot discover any thing in which it added to the civilization or prosperity of the country. For the immense sums of money which he drew from it, the only

1 The lines which Dr Johnson applies to Charles XII. of Sweden are literally true of Richard Cœur-de-Lion of England:

His fate was destined to a foreign strand,
A petty fortress, and a dubious hand:—
He left a name at which the world grows pale,
To point a moral or adorn a tale.

room, worthy of notice, was an equalization of weights and measures throughout the realm.

John, the brother of the late king, and the youngest legitimate son of Henry II, succeeded to the throne without opposition; for although the hereditary right, according to the modern interpretation of the letter, was vested in his nephew Arthur, son of John's elder brother Geoffrey, the uncle had likewise a hereditary claim, as being nearest of kin to the deceased monarch, and the subject declared in his favour. His coronation took place on the 27th of May 1199. The character of John is perhaps more strongly marked, and possesses more individuality, than that of any other monarch on the list of English kings. He was truly villain, in perfect and majority, in his ingratitude, in unprincipled cruelty, in guilelessness of appetite, in weakness, weakness, and every vicious infirmity, this prince figures in the pages of history almost without a stain. Other kings there have been whose vices are then enough to call forth the execution of posterity, but the halo of talent which enshrouds their names serves to mitigate the severity of censure. John, however, stands before mankind invested of any such quality; his character is illustrated by one solitary deed, the reign is illustrated by one solitary good action performed without pretence on. He is altogether the lowest and most abject state that ever wore a crown.

Richard had destined Arthur as his successor, and on his death, Mow, Clare, and Aylmer, assumed the youth, then Earl of Devonshire, &c. On the accession of the crown of England and the dukedom of Normandy by John, Constance, the mother of Arthur, gave her son over to the care of Philip, king of France, as he claimed for him her continental possessions. A struggle ensued between the nobles of France and England. Philip, who, it would appear, used Arthur entirely as a tool to suit his own purposes, sent him with a military retinue into the difficulties in which he had claims. He took the town of Miremont, giving a tower, which held out under Eustorg, the widow of Henry II., but on the night between the 23rd of July and 1st of August 1200, John arrived, and compelled the Bretoners to surrender. The prisoners were treated with a much truly demoniacal, and worthy of the room; but this was only the opening scene of the tragedy. Prince Arthur was brought to Melbury, where he was confined for some time. He and all of a sudden disappeared, and contemporary history has ascribed to John the guilt of his murder. That the hapless youth met with a violent death is evident, and that he fell either by his uncle's own hand, or by his orders, there seems no reason to doubt. Even in that semi-lunatic age, there was scarcely an individual capable of committing such an atrocity, excepting the wretched who, a few years afterwards, took a dramatic pleasure in starting to death the wife and children of a nobleman who had offended him, and hanging twenty-eight Welsh hostages besides other atrocities too horrible to be named.

By this soul dead, a third part of John's dominions were separated from his grasp. Philip Augustus summoned John, as Duke of Normandy and Aquitaine, to answer before a court of peers in the charge of having murdered Arthur Duke of Brittany. But he dreaded the tribunal, and having refused to appear, he was branded as a traitor, condemned to death, and adjudged to lose all his French territories. The King of France turned towards him to request in conquest, and one by one the provinces of the English monarch were seized and annexed to the dominions of Philip; Touraine, Maine, and Anjou in 1203, the duchy of Normandy in 1214, and the county of Poitou in 1215.

Another important event in the reign of John was his war with

the pope, the only contest indeed in which history has ever displayed any thing of this spirit which had fired the bosoms of his ancestors. The clergy had for some time acted as a community independent of the civil power, giving obedience to the pope alone, by which their elections were usually undermined. The election of the Archbishop of Canterbury had been a subject of contention between the vassal archbishops of the provinces, and the monks of St. Augustin's Abbey in that city. Each party claimed the right of choosing; but under this question was concealed the more important one, whether the king or the pope had the power of confirmation; for the bishops were accessible to the influence of the crown, and the councils, in consistency with the genius of their order, were blamed by Rome. In the mean time the archbishop died, and the monks privately elected Reginald their superior in his room. The bishops remonstrated against this as an innovation on their prerogative, and the king took part in the contest, with the assistance of ruling the Bishop of Norwich in the province. The cause was referred to Rome; and Pope Innocent III., eager to extend his power in England, commanded the election of Stephen Langton, a most unexceptionable individual, and not only, in the request, joined himself exclusively to the highest station. John, however, listened to this proceeding, violently expelled the monks from their convent, and possession of a certain girl seized upon the occasion. The

cause, however, was not to be thus contemporaneously treated. The letters were then opened, and a compliance with the wishes of the pope court was immediately yielded. In vain the parties in the other countries of Europe treated the king as a tyrant, and the question with that entire confidence or belief which prevailed in England, caused no disturbance there, but largely and the nation should have the necessary attention. The reason that it is somewhat expedient, to make known the whole clergy, and excommunicate them, and the pope, however, laughed the question to scorn, and published that terrible sentence, which in three ages and generations is made the basis of a nation's trouble. It was not immediately put to the test, however, but the circumstances of the state of religion, church, kingdom, and the condition, situation, and condition of the king. The church doors were shut, and the power of the pope suspended. The dead were buried Christian burial, and the state pronouncedly into alliance with the barons, without any material advantage. Other expedients, openly before, were included in this demonstrative war; and John, by force, persuaded the clergy, with supporting signs, that his intentions and purposes were proved manifest. Innocent remained calm, and in two years thereafter, 1209, launched his last thunderbolt at the English monarch. He excommunicated John, removed his subjects from their oath of allegiance, and soon afterwards deposed him. He also excommunicated the king of France to take his crown; and published a crusade all over Christendom against King John, exhorting the chivalry of Europe to take up arms against him, and enlist under the French banner. Philip was not less active on his part. He summoned all the nobles of the crown to attend him at Rome; and having collected a fleet of 1700 vessels, was ready in 1216 to invade England.

But the fulminations of the pope were alike disconcerted by John and his subjects, who had now become familiar with them. His strength does not appear to have been exhausted, for the only successful expeditions of his reign, those against Ireland and Wales, were undertaken during the period of his proscription by the earl of Rouen. In order to meet the king of France, he assembled a vast army; but it was not the interest of his subjects to allow summer

As the crusade had never commenced, it is possible to imagine, and too shocking to give in detail, the horror which the English felt to the loss of their most cherished king in numbers, bearing the insignia of such exclusive chivalricities which they had accustomed to proudly acceptible to the king, to their nobility to press forward towards the hall where they had then dined, a noble example. The loss seemed to be due to their received, which in themselves, the nature of the English such that they could not do otherwise. The crisis, and drove every one to his duty. With elements of violence against enemies, and the loss of the country, and the chivalric virtues were unsacrificed and remained unsacrificed. It was in vain that the king's authority could be found in the temporary rabble which had gathered in the streets and squares were completely destroyed.

It was a terrible and terrible moment, and the loss of the country was a heavy blow to the nation. But from the loss of the king he was never forgotten, and that which he had done for France and remained with him to be found in the general events connected with this expedition, are clearly connected in the minds of the people, and not forgotten even the whole details, but only some such as have been already mentioned. On his way, Richard relieved Portugal, by sending the sovereign of that country with the hundred knights, and holding distance to the Moors or Saracens. This was an evil course for the followers of the Prophet. After landing at Messina, he remained there six months, which were chiefly occupied in warm disputes with Tancred, who had usurped the Sicilian crown. On the 15th of April 1191 Richard set out from this place; but his feet having been dispersed by a storm, and the ship in which were his sister Joan, and his brother-in-law Berengaria, being driven into Cyprus, he landed on that island for the purpose of visiting the governor, who had created the most hatred with some of his enemies. Richard visited the other coast, and after entering Jerusalem, and making his way to the eastern coast of Egypt, he set out for the land of Asia, which afterwards surrendered to him. (See below.) The fall of this place opened the way to Jerusalem, a city which he now advanced, performing on his way those Christian deeds which taught the infidels to shudder at the execution of his name. (See CRUSADES.) In October 1192 Richard set out from the Holy Land for England, with a fleet, which contained his wife and sister, who agreed to have remained their destination in safety. But a storm having dispersed the ships, Richard was driven over Mallorca. Having learned, however, that places were in agitation, so were his enemies (the Pabbies of France and other continental sovereigns, together with his brother, were engaged against him) he formed the unfortunate resolution of passing through Germany in disguise.

He landed at Dover, and after a variety of adventures and wretched escapes, he was at last secured by Leopold, duke of Austria, who immediately ordered him to be made his friend. This prince had received from Richard at the siege of Acre, which he restored, as promised he had recovered, some of his lands, and took this time the means of strengthening himself. Henry VI. emperor of Germany, was then exactly as secure as Richard, on account of his being married to Berengaria, the daughter of Tancred king of

Italy. He therefore required the royal captive to be delivered into his hands, and demanded to pay a large sum of money in the duke as a reward for his services.

The disaster which had befallen the English monarch could not be long concealed. The news of his capture spread general indignation at home; a feeling which was respected by the disinterested portion of Europe. Richard's mother, along with the clergy of Germany, appealed to the pope, and the emperor, demanding that his son should be considered as a disgraceful, made an attempt, in 1193, by charging the prisoner with several serious crimes. These were, his behaviour in Sicily, his occupation of Cyprus, and the alleged murder of Gualdo, who was associated whilst contending for the Christian Kingdom of Palestine. The latter charge being by far the most serious, severe efforts were made to vindicate Richard from the guilt of the alleged crime. At home the ministry excused themselves to the utmost; and the most able prelates set out for the Continent in behalf of his innocence. He was removed from a dungeon in the Tyrol to the residence of the emperor at Regensburg, and was taken from thence to Worms, for a final settlement of differences.

In the meanwhile, his brother John, with Philip of France, were rapidly prosecuting their plans for his destruction. Their design was to effect the utter ruin of Richard; and every method was tried to accomplish their purpose. John made his feudal submission to Philip for his brother's continental possessions; and having assembled an army, he returned to England with the intention of seizing the crown, whilst his enemies invaded Normandy. Both the conspirators were completely unsuccessful. John, by circulating false reports of his brother's death, attempted to give a gloss of right to his projected usurpation; but his duplicity was too well known, and his attempt at foreign intervention was repulsed from the coast.

The negotiations for Richard's liberation ended at last in the agreement that a ransom of one hundred thousand marks of silver should be paid for it. It was in vain that his mortal enemies, Philip and John, prosecuted his imprisonment. By a general tax the sum was raised; and soon after his emancipation he set out for England, where he arrived on the 15th of March 1194. The remainder of his reign is very unimportant; it was chiefly occupied with a species of petty bickerings with Philip of France. The money required for the crusade, and the ransom of Richard, had so exhausted the treasures of England, that the king found himself unable to undertake war upon a grand scale. If we contemplate the character of the individual who found himself thus fettered by pecuniary necessities, this was a fortunate circumstance. It would be difficult to estimate the amount of human misery which was thus saved. After various undecisive battles and equivocal victories, Richard was mortally wounded before Chalus, an obscure castle in the province of Limousin, held by a rebellious vassal, and expired on the 15th of April 1199. In the forty-second year of his age and the tenth of his reign.

Thus perished, in the prime of life, one of the most romantic characters to be met with in real history. His character we have already given; and with respect to his reign, we cannot discover any thing in which it added to the civilization or prosperity of the country. The enormous sums of money which he drew from it, the only

* The story which the Italian applied to Charles XII. of Sweden are literally true of Richard Count-de-Lieu of England.

He was a man of a bold and a daring mind.

He was a man of a bold and a daring mind.

To point a moral is better than a tale.

History. return worthy of notice was an equalization of weights and measures throughout the realm.

History. he ever displayed any thing of that spirit which had fired the bosoms of his ancestors.

John, the brother of the late king, and the youngest legitimate son of Henry II., succeeded to the throne without opposition; for, although the hereditary right, according to the modern acceptance of the term, was vested in his nephew Arthur, son of John's elder brother Geoffrey, the uncle had likewise a hereditary claim, as being nearest of kin to the deceased monarch, and the nation declared in his favour. His coronation took place on the 27th of May 1199. The character of John is perhaps more strongly marked, and possesses more individuality, than that of any other monarch on the list of English kings. In cowardly villany, in perfidious malignity, in base ingratitude, in unprincipled cruelty, in grossness of appetite, in meanness, weakness, and every vicious infirmity, this prince figures in the page of history almost without a rival. Other kings there may have been whose vices are black enough to call forth the execrations of posterity; but the halo of talent which emblazons their names serves to mitigate the severity of censure. John, however, stands before us utterly divested of any such quality; his character is unredeemed by one solitary virtue; his reign is unillustrated by one solitary good action performed without compulsion. He is altogether alone, the lowest and most abject slave that ever wore a crown.

Richard had destined Arthur as his successor, and, on his death, Mons, Tours, and Anjou, appointed the youth, then Earl of Bretagne, their lord. On the assumption of the crown of England and the dukedom of Normandy by John, Constance, the mother of Arthur, gave her son over to the care of Philip, king of France, who claimed for him his continental possessions. A struggle ensued between the monarchs of France and England. Philip, who, it would appear, used Arthur entirely as a tool to suit his own purposes, sent him with a military retinue into the dominions to which he laid claim. He took the town of Mirabeau, saving a tower, which held out under Eleanor, the widow of Henry II.; but on the night between the 31st of July and 1st of August 1202, John arrived, and compelled the besiegers to surrender. The prisoners were treated with a cruelty truly demoniacal, and worthy of the man; but this was only the opening scene of the tragedy. Prince Arthur was brought to Falaise, where he was confined for some time. He then all of a sudden disappeared, and contemporary history has ascribed to John the guilt of his murder. That the hapless youth met with a violent death is evident, and that he fell either by his uncle's own hands, or by his orders, there seems no reason to doubt. Even in that semi-barbarous age, there was scarcely an individual capable of committing such an atrocity, excepting the wretch who, a few years afterwards, took a diabolical pleasure in starving to death the wife and children of a nobleman who had offended him, and hanging twenty-eight Welsh hostages, besides other atrocities too horrible to be named.

By this foul deed, a third part of John's dominions were wrenched from his grasp. Philip Augustus summoned John, as duke of Normandy and Aquitaine, to answer before a court of peers to the charge of having murdered Arthur duke of Brittany. But he dreaded the tribunal, and having refused to appear, he was branded as a murderer, condemned to death, and adjudged to lose all his French territories. The king of France moved onwards from conquest to conquest, and one by one the provinces of the English monarch were seized and annexed to the dominions of Philip; Touraine, Maine, and Anjou in 1203, the duchy of Normandy in 1205, and the county of Poitou in 1206.

But the fulminations of the pope were alike disregarded by John and his subjects, who had now become familiar with them. His strength does not appear to have been lessened, for the only successful expeditions of his reign, those against Ireland and Wales, were undertaken during the period of his proscription by the see of Rome. In order to meet the king of France, he assembled a vast army; but it was not the interest of his holiness to allow matters

History. to be carried to extremities. He accordingly sent over two legates, Pandulf and Durand, who, in a meeting of parliament holden at Northampton, ventured to declare to John that he was bound to obey the holy see as much in temporal as in spiritual affairs. After shuffling, according to custom, John, at the head of an army capable of bidding defiance to any invader, surrendered himself to the will of the pope, and acceded to all the terms which Pandulf had exacted. With a meanness of spirit almost exceeding belief, he laid his crown at the feet of the haughty legate, resigned England and Ireland into the hands of the pope, swore homage to him as his liege lord, and took an oath of fealty to his successors. The terms of this remarkable oath deserve a place in every history.

"I John, by the grace of God king of England and lord of Ireland, in order to expiate my sins, from my own free will and the advice of my barons, give to the church of Rome, to Pope Innocent and his successors, the kingdom of England, and all other prerogatives of my crown. I will hereafter hold them as the pope's vassal. I will be faithful to God, to the church of Rome, to the pope my master, and to his successors legitimately elected. I promise to pay him a tribute of 1000 merks; to wit, 700 for the kingdom of England, and 300 for the kingdom of Ireland." This memorable submission took place on the 15th of May 1213.

This oath was taken by the king before all the people, kneeling, and with his hands held up between those of the legate. Having then agreed to install Langton in the primacy, he received the crown which he had been supposed to have forfeited; whilst the legate, to add to his former insolence, trampled under his feet the tribute which John had consented to pay, but afterwards stooped to gather it up. The king of France was enraged at this behaviour of the pope, and resolved to execute his project of conquering England in spite of him and his censures. His fleet, however, was attacked in their harbours by the English, who took three hundred vessels, and destroyed about a hundred more; whilst Philip, finding it impossible to prevent the rest from falling into the hands of the enemy, set fire to them himself, and thus abandoned the enterprise. This naval action is memorable as being the first which took place between the fleets of France and England, and was a good omen for the latter.

John being thus delivered from all danger, continued to follow the same cruel and tyrannical measures which had hitherto rendered him odious to his subjects. His scandalous subjection to the clergy now gave the barons an opportunity of exerting themselves, in order to reduce the enormous prerogatives of the crown. Their designs were greatly facilitated by the concurrence of Langton the primate, who on all occasions showed a sincere regard for the interests of the kingdom. At a synod of his prelates and clergy, convened in St Paul's on pretence of examining into the losses of some bishops who had been exiled by John, he privately conferred with a number of barons, to whom he expatiated upon the vices and injustice of their sovereign. He showed them a copy of Henry I.'s charter, the only one in the kingdom, having been found amidst the rubbish of an obscure monastery. Langton exhorted the barons to insist on a renewal thereof; and this they solemnly swore to perform. The same agreement was afterwards renewed at a more numerous meeting of barons summoned by Langton at St Edmundsbury. Here it was resolved that at Christmas they should prefer their common petition in a body, and in the mean time they separated, intending to put themselves in a posture of defence, to enlist men, and to make other warlike preparations. In the beginning of January 1215 they repaired to London, accoutred in the military garb and with their equipage, and

presented their petition to the king, alleging that he had promised to grant a confirmation of the laws of Edward the Confessor, at the time when he was absolved from his excommunication. John resented their presumption; and required a promise under their hands and seals that they would never demand or attempt to extort such privileges in future. But this they refused with such unanimity and resolution, that the king desired time to consider of their petition; at the same time promising that, at the festival of Easter, he would give a positive answer. He also offered securities, which the barons accepted, and thereafter withdrew.

John, however, had no intention of complying with their demands, for it is evident that his promise was extorted from him by fear. He had recourse to the clergy, whose favour he propitiated by promising many things which he had not the slightest intention of ever performing. The pope was likewise appealed to, who threw the weight of his authority into the scale of his vassal, and exhorted the barons to abandon their treasonable enterprise. At the same time his holiness also agreed to consider their petition, and to endeavour to obtain for them the concession of those demands which appeared to be just. But, happily for English liberty, the confederates disregarded the injunctions of Innocent III., who by his decision had now more embroiled the fray. Both parties gave up all hopes of a peaceful negotiation at the ensuing festival, and made the best preparations they could for war, in which the barons had an unequivocal superiority.

After waiting until Easter, when the king promised to return them an answer, they met by agreement at Stamford. There they assembled a force of above two thousand knights, with a prodigious number of foot, and thence marched to Brackley, about fifteen miles from Oxford, then the court residence. John, hearing of their approach, sent the Archbishop of Canterbury, the Earl of Pembroke, and others of his council, to know the particulars of their request, and what those liberties were which they so much importuned him to grant. The barons delivered a schedule containing the chief articles of their demands, founded on the charters of Henry and Edward, but which were in the highest degree displeasing to the king. He burst into a furious passion, and, asking the barons why they did not also demand his kingdom, swore that he would never comply with such exorbitant requests. The confederates then as their general chose Robert Fitzwalter, whom they dignified with the title of Mareschal of the army of God and of the holy church. They laid siege to Northampton, but were repulsed; they, however, took Bedford, and were joyfully received into London.

The concurrence of the metropolis proved decisive of the contest. It was in vain that the pope fulminated a bull in favour of his vassal John; the many were unanimous, and the few were compelled to yield the point. The king, with a court now reduced to seven attendants, retired to Odiham, where, seeing the necessity of submitting, he agreed to a friendly conference. The barons named, as a proper place for meeting, Runnymede. It was a meadow situated between Staines and Windsor, and, like the holy ground of the Hebrews, it is still held in veneration as the spot where the standard of English freedom was first unfurled. On the 15th of June 1215, both parties met there; and having taken up separate stations, a long discussion ensued, which terminated in the king signing the charter, called, by way of pre-eminence, Magna Charta. For a particular account of the great charter, which for centuries afterwards was looked upon as the palladium of our national freedom, the reader is referred to the article MAGNA CHARTA.

This charter, however, at the time when it was granted,

history. secured liberty to the clergy, the barons, and the gentlemen, much more than to the bulk of the people, who did not for a long time obtain any privileges of importance. Freedom of elections was secured to the clergy; and it was determined that fines imposed on them for any offence should be laid on in proportion to their estates, and not the value of their benefices. The privileges secured to the barons were, either abatements in the rigour of the feudal laws, or relief from arbitrary and ambiguous decisions before the courts. It was also decreed that barons should recover the lands of their vassals, even though forfeited by felony, after having been in the possession of the crown for a year and a day; and no tax was to be imposed without consent of the great council of the nation, excepting in case of the captivity of the king, the knighting of his eldest son, or the marriage of his eldest daughter. No land belonging to any baron was to be seized for a crown debt, except when the possessor had not personal property enough to pay it; neither was any vassal to be allowed to sell so much of his land as to incapacitate him from performing the necessary service to his lord. It was also determined, that when the great council of the nation was called, the prelates, earls, and barons should be summoned by a particular writ, and that the lesser barons should receive a summons from the sheriff. In favour of the people it was stipulated, that they should receive from the barons all the immunities and privileges granted by the king to the former. Merchants were to be allowed to carry on their business without any arbitrary tolls or impositions, and to go out of the kingdom and return at pleasure. The goods of every freeman were to be disposed of according to his will; or if he died intestate, the nearest heir was in that case to succeed him. No carts, horses, or wood were to be taken by the crown officers without the consent of the owner. The king's courts were to be stationary; no delay was to take place in doing justice to every one; and no freeman was to be taken or imprisoned, dispossessed of his free tenement, outlawed, or banished, unless by the legal judgment of his peers. It was likewise stipulated that London should remain in the hands of the barons, and that the Tower should be consigned to the primate, till the 15th of August following, or till the articles contained in the charter were fulfilled. In order to secure the accomplishment of this, the king allowed them to choose twenty-five of their own number, to whose authority no limits were assigned. If any complaint were made of a violation of the charter, either by the king or his officers, any four of the barons might admonish the king to redress the grievance; and if satisfaction were not obtained, they might assemble the whole council of twenty-five and, in conjunction with the great council, compel him to fulfil the charter. In case of his resistance, they had liberty to levy war against him, attack his castles, and use every kind of violence, except against his person, or those of his queen or children. All men throughout the kingdom were bound, under the penalty of confiscation, to swear obedience to the twenty-five barons; and the freeholders of each county were to choose twelve knights, whose business it was to report such obnoxious customs as ought to be redressed in terms of Magna Charta.

But although John had thus been obliged to recognise the liberty of his subjects, he had no mind that they should in reality enjoy it. The sense of his subjection to his own vassals sunk deep into his soul, and he became sullen, silent, and reserved. He shunned the society of his former friends, and retired into the Isle of Wight, as if to hide his disgrace in solitude, but, in reality, to meditate plans of revenge. He sent to the Continent in order to enlist a large body of mercenary troops, and made heavy complaints to the pope on account of the insurrections of the

barons against him. The pontiff, as might be expected, warmly espoused his cause; a bull was sent over annulling the whole charter; the principal barons were excommunicated by name, and declared to be worse than Saracens; and at the same time the foreign troops arriving, the king once more found himself in a condition to demand his own terms from his untractable subjects.

The barons had made no preparations for war, not suspecting the introduction of a foreign army. The king, therefore, was for some time undisputed master of the field, and the most horrid cruelties were committed by his army. The nobility who had been most active in procuring the great charter accordingly fled with their families to Scotland, where they obtained the protection of King Alexander by doing homage to him. The barons, finding themselves totally unable to raise an army capable of contending with that of John, resorted to the equivocal and perilous expedient of calling in foreign aid. They applied to their old enemy Philip of France, offering the crown to his eldest son Louis, upon the condition of their being protected from the fury of John, and the unprincipled mercenaries whom he commanded. The French king eagerly accepted their proposals, and dispatched his son with a powerful army to England. He was received by the barons with great acclamations, and having united their forces, they secured all the southern counties. Essex and Sussex were soon after added; and they advanced successfully into Norfolk, spreading around them all the devastations of civil war. The forces of John occupied the northern districts, where the king of Scotland harassed him by an invasion of Northumberland. But these hostilities, which might ultimately have ruined the independence of the country, by sinking it to the level of a French province, were happily terminated by the death of John, in the forty-ninth year of his age, and seventeenth of his reign. His demise took place at Newark, on the 19th of October 1216. The death of this monarch was as much a public blessing as his reign had been a national misfortune. The signing of Magna Charta is the only event of his life which is worthy of being recorded in history. He, however, deserves no credit for that act, which was the result of compulsion. As well might we consider honesty the actuating principle or motive of the malefactor who consents to deliver up the treasure of which he had possessed himself, when he comes in sight of the wheel upon which, in case of refusal, he is to be broken alive.

John left six legitimate children, namely, three sons and three daughters. The eldest of the former, Henry of Winchester, was only ten years of age when he found himself in possession of the title, although not entirely of the power, of king. He was crowned as Henry III. upon the 28th of October 1216, nine days after he succeeded to the inchoate right to the throne. The care of his person was entrusted to the Earl of Pembroke, earl-marshall, with the style and title of guardian of the kingdom. Through the instrumentality of this nobleman the great charter of liberties was revived, and the claims of the crown were reconciled with those of the subject, to the satisfaction of the adverse barons. Besides the eldest son of John, there was another competitor for the crown, namely, Louis of France, who had been called over by the barons of Rannymede, in order to take possession of the English throne. For some time Louis kept the field, and not without success; but he was defeated at Lincoln; and a fleet which his father had sent to him with succours having been totally destroyed by the English, he was compelled to abandon the enterprise, and to make an honourable retreat.

A peaceful king is looked upon either as imbecile or as pusillanimous by an age which feels the intoxication of military glory, and considers the principal duties of a mo-

History. march to be "to go out and in before his people, and fight their battles." The reign of Henry III. is but little adorned with the triumphs of war; and, if we are not mistaken, it has been too much depreciated on this account. But this fact, as well as his monarchical character, we will be enabled to ascertain with more certainty after we have passed in review the principal events of his reign. Its early history exhibits only some of those evils incident to an injudicious, but not, strictly speaking, wicked administration. In 1225 the great charter was a third time confirmed, upon the occasion of Henry assembling a great council, and urgently demanding aid against a pretended invasion of the French. In consequence of this, it has ever since retained its place at the head of English statutes. The wardship of the young king had now solely devolved upon Hubert de Burgh, the grand justiciary, and a man of ability and spirit, but nurtured under Richard and John. For several years he ruled as the favourite without control, repressing the disorders of the times with a vigorous, but, in the eye of an enlightened age, cruel policy. In 1227, Henry was declared in parliament to have attained to the years of discretion; and two years afterwards he resumed the project of conquering France, and landed there with a considerable army. The expedition proved most disgraceful to the English arms; and in a year after he returned to his country not a little humbled in its estimation, as well as his own. The next event of importance which we meet with is the disgrace of De Burgh, who was accused of negligence and treachery in the discharge of his duties; with what degree of truth it is difficult now to determine. He was imprisoned for some time, but afterwards restored to liberty, honours, and emoluments.

In 1236, Henry espoused Eleanor of Provence. This event gave rise to a new immigration of foreigners of higher rank and more specious pretensions than those who usually flocked to the soil of England. One of the queen's uncles became prime minister, a second was made primate, and a third Earl of Richmond. This favouritism excited much discontent both amongst the native barons and the people. The other events of this long reign consist of petty wars and bickerings with France, Scotland, and Wales. The prodigality of the king was extreme, and he was repeatedly compelled to lay his necessities before parliament and solicit supplies. These were as often afforded; but notwithstanding these grants, he had frequent recourse, under specious pretexts, to the most unjust exactions. Meanwhile England rapidly increased in wealth, and widely extended her commercial relations with other countries.

In the year 1254, at the instance of the pope, Henry accepted of the crown of Sicily for his son Edmund. It had been formerly offered to his brother Richard, who was wise enough not to accept of it, probably because he felt himself unable to compete with the other powerful princes who aspired to it. In order to raise the money necessary to carry his foolish project into execution, Henry had recourse to every expedient which the regal or papal ministers could devise. The principal burden fell upon the clergy, who, by the menace of excommunication on the one side, and of forfeiture on the other, were compelled to submit. This oppression widened more and more the breach between the king and his people; and he found it necessary at last to look to the security of his own crown, instead of fighting for a foreign diadem to grace the brow of his son.

Amongst the foreigners of distinction who established themselves in England during the reign of Henry III. was Simon de Montfort, earl of Leicester. He was the younger son of the Count de Montfort, celebrated in the annals of religious warfare for his cruel crusade against those dissenters from the Roman faith called Albigois or Albigen-

ses. Simon the younger received the hand of King Henry's sister in marriage, and very early began to act a conspicuous part in the civil commotions which agitated the country. He was a bold and ambitious man; and placing himself at the head of the disaffected barons, he formed a powerful confederacy against the king. In the year 1258, a famous parliament was summoned at Oxford, in order to digest the new plan of government, and to elect to the chief authority such individuals as were deemed worthy of trust. This assembly, afterwards celebrated in our annals by the derisive name of the mad parliament, went very expeditiously to work in the business of reformation. Twenty-four barons were appointed, with supreme authority, in order to reform the abuses of the state; and Leicester was placed at their head. Twelve of these barons were chosen by the king's council, and twelve by the parliament. Their first step was to order four knights to be chosen out of each county, who should examine into the state of their respective constituents, and attend at the ensuing parliament to give information of their complaints. They ordained that three sessions of parliament should be regularly held every year; that a new high sheriff should be elected annually; that no wards nor castles should be entrusted to foreigners, no new forests made, nor the revenues of any counties farmed out. Thus far these provisions were good, and an approximation to popular representation, although some modern writers have designated the whole transaction as a revolution.

The twenty-four barons continued to conduct the affairs of government for several years; but they at last began to quarrel amongst themselves. The Earls of Gloucester and Leicester pursued opposite interests, and formed opposite parties, who eyed each other with mutual jealousy. Leicester, perceiving that his rival was likely to gain the ascendancy, retired to France; but the balance was again restored in his favour by the union of Prince Edward with his friends. A short time after this event, the rival parties seem to have assumed, if not the reality, at least the appearance of unanimity. In 1262, Henry made a fruitless attempt to escape from the authority of the barons; but his son Edward remained firm to their cause, on account of his having sworn to observe the provisions of Oxford. After other ineffectual attempts upon the part of the king, he agreed that the twenty-four noblemen should continue to govern, not only during his own reign, but also during that of his successor. By this stipulation, Edward joined his father, which restored vigour to the royalists, and more equally balanced the power of the parties. It was proposed that the differences between them should be submitted for arbitration to Louis IX., and both swore to abide by his decision. That excellent monarch enjoined the restoration of all castles, possessions, and royal rights enjoyed by the crown before the parliament of Oxford, upon condition of universal amnesty, and of the full enjoyment of all the privileges and liberties granted by the charter. The award was confirmed by the pope, who empowered the Archbishop of Canterbury to excommunicate all who refused to submit to it.

The moment the decision was made known to the barons, they declared it to be contrary to truth and justice, and immediately took the field. The contest was at first favourable to the royal prerogative; but in 1264 Prince Edward lost a great battle by his impetuosity in pursuing too far one of the wings of the enemy's army, which he had defeated. His father and uncle were taken prisoners, and placed in the castle of Lewis, where he contrived to join them. They acceded to the propositions submitted to them, and the administration of the kingdom fell into the hands of the Earls of Gloucester and Leicester, and the Bishop of Chichester.

History. The situation to which the kingdom was now reduced proved at last the means of settling the government upon a more proper foundation. Leicester, in order to secure himself, was obliged to have recourse to an aid, till now entirely unknown in England, namely, that of the body of the people. He called a parliament, where, besides the barons of his own party, and several ecclesiastics who were not properly tenants of the crown, he ordered returns to be made of two knights from every shire; and also deputies from the boroughs, which had been hitherto considered as too inconsiderable to be allowed any share in the legislation. This parliament was called on the 22d of January 1265; and here we find the first outline of an English House of Commons; an institution which has ever since been considered, and justly, as the bulwark of British liberty.

The new parliament was far from being so compliant to Leicester as he had desired or expected. Many of the barons who had hitherto steadfastly adhered to his party were disgusted with his boundless ambition; and the people, who found that a change of masters was not a change of circumstances, began to wish for the re-establishment of royal authority. Leicester at last, making a virtue of necessity, released Prince Edward from his confinement, and had him introduced at Westminster-hall, where his freedom was confirmed by the unanimous voice of the barons. But though Leicester had all the popularity of restoring the prince, he was yet politic enough to keep a strict watch over him. Edward was nominally free, but in reality a prisoner. At last, however, he found means to effect his escape. The Duke of Gloucester, being disgusted with Leicester, left the court, and retired to his estates upon the borders of Wales. His antagonist pursued him thither, and, in order to give the greater authority to his arms, carried the king and Prince Edward along with him. This afforded young Edward an opportunity which he had long desired of making his escape. Being furnished by the Earl of Gloucester with a horse of extraordinary speed, he took leave of his attendants, or rather his guards, under pretence of trying the mettle of his steed. He was hotly followed; but an end was put to the pursuit by the appearance of some of Gloucester's troops.

No sooner was the prince at liberty than the royalists joined him from all quarters, and an army was soon assembled which proved more than sufficient to meet the forces of Leicester. The latter now found himself in a remote quarter of the kingdom, surrounded by his enemies, and shut out from all communication with his friends by the river Severn, the bridges on which Edward had broken down. In this extremity he wrote to his son to hasten to his assistance from London, with a considerable body of troops which the latter had under his command. With this view his son advanced to Kenilworth; but here he was surprised by Prince Edward, and the greater portion of his followers were made prisoners. The young prince immediately advanced upon Leicester himself, whose last anchor had given way with the defeat of his son. He was by no means able to cope with the royalists; his men were inferior both in numbers and resolution to their antagonists. In the battle which ensued, the royalists gained a signal victory over their opponents, defeating them with great slaughter. Leicester himself was slain, together with his eldest son Henry, and about a hundred and sixty knights and other gentlemen. The body of the fallen earl was mutilated in a frightful manner, and portions of it sent to various places. His memory was long revered by the people, who looked upon him as a martyr to the liberties of the realm. But a vigorous reign ensued, and the national feeling was suppressed, or directed to other objects. He

left, however, an imperishable name, as the first who had called together a parliament of which the lower house composed part. History.

The victory of Evesham restored the fortunes of the royalists. The followers of Leicester were proscribed, and their lands distributed amongst the victors. With the death of Montfort the spirit departed from the baronial party, whose members hastened to give in their submission, and to open the gates of their castles to the king. Several places, however, still held out; but by the activity and valour of Prince Edward they were all finally reduced. The country submitted, and the royal authority was completely re-established throughout the realm. The good sense of Edward, however, infused a wiser and more popular spirit into the conduct of government. So judicious appears to have been his administration, indeed, that, in a few years after the battle of Evesham, he felt himself in a capacity to take the cross, and enlist under the banners of the crusaders. This step of the heir apparent to the crown of England may appear somewhat extraordinary, when we consider the advanced period of life to which his father had now attained, and the civil commotions from which he had so recently emerged. But in an age when it was common to ascribe any sudden transition of fortune from one extreme to another, to the immediate interposition of providence, it is less to be wondered at. The recent deliverance of himself and his father from their enemies had incurred a debt of gratitude to heaven which it was now his desire to pay off. His expedition to the Holy Land was of little importance, and was moreover in no way connected with the history of his country, although it was distinguished by those romantic adventures and chivalrous feats of arms peculiar to the age, and more especially to the wars in Palestine.

The remaining events of Henry III.'s reign afford no materials for history. He died on the 16th of November 1272, in the fifty-seventh year of his reign. The character of Henry is not strongly marked either by good or by evil. During its long continuance we see no premeditated crime, no deep laid plot involving the liberties of his subjects, with which to impeach his memory. The evils which grew and prospered whilst he held the sceptre did not arise from vices in the sovereign, but from the unsettled state of society and the turbulent spirit of the times. His virtues, however, were not very conspicuous; they were rather of a passive than of an active kind; rather the negative of vice than positive moral greatness. With regard to intellect, he appears to have been below mediocrity; and it is usual with historians to describe him as deficient in capacity to govern. This was probably the case, but it was productive of inconvenience to himself rather than misery to his subjects. Under his pacific rule, as we have already observed, the nation grew more rapidly in wealth and prosperity than it did under the more dazzling sway of his military progenitors.

Edward, upon hearing the news of his father's death, and feeling himself secure of the throne, returned slowly from the Holy Land. He arrived in England in August 1274, and was crowned at Westminster on the 19th of the same month. Two years afterwards he undertook an expedition against Lewellyn, prince of Wales, who had refused to do homage for his crown. The conquest of that country cost him some trouble, and was not completed until the year 1283. After this period the principality of Wales was annexed to the crown of England, and thenceforth conferred a title upon the king's eldest son. In 1286, Wales had been so entirely broken into subjection, that Edward undertook a journey to the Continent for the purpose of mediating a peace between Alonzo of Aragon and Philip the Fair of France. These two monarchs had differed

History. about the kingdom of Sicily; but a negotiation was effected, and the king of England returned to his country after an absence of three years, during which period much disorder had been introduced into his dominions. Robbery and violence had become frightfully prevalent, and the corruption of the judges had poisoned the fountains of justice. In order to remedy these evils, Edward summoned a parliament, and cited the delinquents to appear and take their trial. All of them, except two clergymen, having been convicted of flagrant acts of corruption and bribery, were accordingly fined, and deposed from their office.

The next great event of Edward's reign was an attempt to subjugate Scotland. This he never altogether effected, although he succeeded in reducing the country to great distress, and in even nominally attaching it to the English crown as a conquered province. For an account of these transactions, see the article SCOTLAND. Edward was at the same time engaged in expensive contests with France; and these multiplied wars, by obliging him to have frequent recourse to parliamentary supplies, became the remote causes of great and important changes in the government. The parliament was modelled into the form which it has ever since retained. As a great part of the property of the kingdom, by the introduction of commerce and by improvements in agriculture, was transferred from the barons to the lower classes of the people, so their consent was thought necessary in order to raise the supplies. For this reason the king issued writs to the sheriffs, enjoining them to send to parliament, along with two knights of the shire, two deputies from each borough within their county; and these, too, provided with sufficient powers from their constituents to grant such demands as they should think reasonable for the safety of the state. The charges of these deputies were to be borne by the boroughs which sent them; and so far were they from considering this deputation as an honour, that nothing could be more displeasing to any borough than to be thus obliged to send a deputy, or to any individual than to be thus chosen. The authority of these commoners, however, increased in course of time. Their union gave them weight; and it became customary among them, in return for the supplies which they granted, to prefer petitions to the crown for the redress of grievances. The more the king's necessities increased, the more he found it necessary to give them an early hearing, until, from requesting, the commons proceeded to demanding; and having all the property of the nation, they by degrees began also to be possessed of a considerable share of the power.

Edward I. died of a dysentery, near Carlisle, on the 7th of July 1307, as he was leading a great army into Scotland, against the inhabitants of which he had vowed the most dreadful vengeance. Edward ranks amongst the greatest monarchs of England. In military talents, in sound judgment, in vigour, decision, irascibility, and vindictiveness, he bore some resemblance to the Conqueror. Like him too he possessed an unsatiable ambition, and his unholy crusade against the independence of Scotland must be regarded as an indelible blot upon his memory. He was succeeded by the eldest of his surviving sons, who bore his father's name, but inherited nothing of his capacity, and who was crowned on the 8th of July 1307, with great magnificence. His father had charged him upon his death-bed to prosecute the war against Scotland until he had finally subdued the kingdom; but war had few attractions for Edward II., and he withdrew his army ingloriously from the country which his father went to subjugate. The first years of Edward's reign are distinguished for nothing but bickerings with his barons, who finally extorted from him a reformation of abuses in full parlia-

ment. The Scots in the mean time gradually recovered their power; and Edward having invaded their country with a prodigious force, was met by Robert Bruce at Bannockburn, near Stirling, who totally defeated the puissant army of the English on the 24th of June 1314. See SCOTLAND.

The reign of Edward II. was one continued series of quarrels with his turbulent subjects. His favourites were the most general causes of discontent. The first of these was one Pierce Gaveston, the son of a Gascon knight of some distinction. The latter had honourably served the late king, and, in reward for his services, had obtained an establishment for his son in the family of the Prince of Wales. To be the favourite of any king whatsoever is no doubt in itself a sufficient offence to the rest of the courtiers. Numberless faults were therefore found with Gaveston by the English barons. When the king went over to France to espouse the Princess Isabella, to whom he had been long contracted, Gaveston was left guardian of the realm, with more ample powers than had usually been conferred in such cases. But upon the arrival of the queen, who was of an imperious and intriguing spirit, Gaveston had the misfortune to fall under her displeasure, on account of the ascendancy he had acquired over the king. A conspiracy was soon formed against the favourite, at the head of which was the queen and the Earl of Lancaster, a relation of the king's, and the most powerful nobleman in England. Edward found himself unable to protect his favourite against such a formidable combination, and was compelled to banish him. His recall some time afterwards again spread alarm over the country, and kindled a civil war. The nobility were successful in obtaining possession of the obnoxious Gaveston; and, in order to free themselves for ever from uneasiness on his account, they put him to death.

After the defeat of Bannockburn, King Edward chose a new favourite named Hugh le Despencer. He was a young man of a noble English family, and possessed some merit, and engaging accomplishments. His father was a person of apparently unimpeachable character, but he also enjoyed the king's favour, and that was a sufficient crime. The king imprudently dispossessed some lords of their estates, in order to bestow them upon young Despencer. This afforded a sufficient pretext to the barons for openly attacking both the father and son. The Earls of Lancaster and Mortimer, chief of the Welsh marshes, flew to arms; and sentence of perpetual exile against the two Spencers, with a forfeiture of all their estates, was procured from parliament. At last the king took the field, and obtained a signal victory over the other party at Boroughbridge. The Earl of Lancaster was made prisoner, and beheaded a few days afterwards at his own castle of Pomfret. This individual was canonized in 1389. Many other noblemen suffered the same punishment without having the same respect paid to their memory, whilst Mortimer was condemned to perpetual imprisonment.

The triumph of the Spencers was now complete; but the partiality with which the king regarded his two favourites had the effect of alienating not only the affections of his subjects, but also those of his queen. Other charges are brought against Edward as having contributed to effect this estrangement, and Isabella sought an opportunity of escaping from her husband. The palace of her brother at Paris was her natural place of refuge. A rupture having commenced between England and France, the queen proceeded to the court of the latter as negotiator, and concluded a peace humiliating to her husband. But she had another object in view in visiting her native country. Her residence became a sanctuary for the English malcontents, who flocked to her in great numbers; and

History. amongst these came Mortimer, who had contrived to effect his escape, and for whom she has been charged with entertaining a stronger passion than that of friendship. The cause of quarrel between the two powers was the county of Guienne, for which the monarch of France required Edward to do homage and fealty. The disputed territory was resigned to the young Prince of Wales, who joined his mother, and made the necessary submissions. When Isabella considered that matters were sufficiently matured for executing her purpose, she landed in England on the 22d of September 1326, where she was universally welcomed, and immediately joined by the most potent barons. The unfortunate king found that the spirit of disloyalty had spread over the whole kingdom. Some dependence was placed upon the garrison of Bristol, which was commanded by the elder Spencer; but the soldiers rebelled against their governor, and delivered him into the hands of the barons, by whom he was cruelly put to death. Young Spencer did not long survive his father. Along with some others who had followed the fortunes of the wretched king, he was made prisoner in an obscure convent in Wales; and the queen having no patience to wait the formality of a trial, gave orders for his immediate execution.

In the mean time the king was discovered and delivered up to his adversaries, who loaded him with insults. He was conducted to the capital, and consigned to the Tower. The charge against him exhibited no other crimes than his incapacity to govern, his indolence, his love of pleasure, and his accessibility to evil counsel. His deposition was quickly voted by parliament; he was assigned a pension for his support; his son Edward, a youth of fourteen, was appointed to succeed him, and the queen was nominated regent during the minority. But the deposed monarch did not long survive his disgrace. He was at first put into the custody of the Earl of Lancaster; but this nobleman having shown some marks of respect and pity for the misfortunes of his sovereign, the latter was taken out of his hands and delivered over to the Lords Berkeley, Maltravers, and Gournay, who were entrusted alternately, each for a month, with the charge of guarding him. Whilst he was in Berkeley's custody, he was still treated with some degree of humanity; but when the turn of Maltravers and Gournay came, every species of indignity was practised upon him, as if they had designed to accelerate his death by accumulating his mental sufferings. As his persecutors, however, saw that his death might not speedily arrive, even under every cruelty which ingenuity could devise, and as they were daily afraid of a revolution in his favour, they determined to put their fears to rest by destroying him at once. Mortimer, therefore, secretly gave orders to the two keepers to dispatch the king; and these ruffians contrived to render the manner of his death as barbarous as possible. Taking advantage of Berkeley's sickness, in whose custody he then was, and who was thereby incapacitated from attending to his charge, they came to Berkeley Castle, and obtained possession of the king's person. They threw him on a bed, and held him down with a table which they had placed over him. They then ran a horn pipe into his bowels, through which they conveyed a red-hot iron; and thus deprived him of life without disfiguring his body. The murderers fled on the perpetration of this horrible enormity; for the dying agonies of the king created suspicions which ended in the discovery of the crime. One of the fugitives was taken at Marseilles, and beheaded on his way to England. The other concealed himself for some years in Germany; but having found means of rendering some services to Edward III. he ventured to approach the person of that monarch, and by his humiliating submission received a pardon.

History. By the death of Edward II. the government fell entirely into the hands of the queen and Mortimer, who had now the disgraceful pre-eminence of royal paramour. The parliament, which had raised young Edward to the throne, had indeed appointed twelve persons as his privy council, to direct the operations of government. Mortimer excluded himself, under a show of moderation; but at the same time secretly influenced all the measures which came under their deliberation. As this influence began very soon to be perceived, and the queen's criminal attachment to Mortimer was universally known, the administration soon became obnoxious to the people. It had continued four years, when a circumstance occurred which added greatly to its unpopularity. The Scots having made an irruption into England, were met by an overwhelming force under young Edward, or rather Mortimer. The results of this mighty expedition were most ludicrous. By their superior skill and activity, the Scots foiled the English commanders, and made their escape into their own country. Soon after this inglorious campaign, a solemn treaty of peace was concluded, in which Edward, for a sum of money, renounced every claim of superiority over Scotland. This, although a commendable act of moderation, was not calculated to propitiate the favour of the English people. It was not long before another stroke of Mortimer's power and policy startled the nation from its propriety, and paved the way for his own destruction. Amongst those who began to betray indignation against the encroaching spirit of Mortimer, was Edmund earl of Kent, who, deceived into a belief that his brother Edward II. was still alive, wrote a letter to that prince, which was betrayed into the hands of Mortimer, now Earl of March, by the individual who had undertaken to deliver it. The writer of the epistle was immediately tried for high treason, condemned, and executed. There is little doubt that the whole affair of the letter was a plot laid for the destruction of Kent, not only to get him out of the way, but to show that there was no one too high not to be struck down by the vengeance of Mortimer.

Edward finding the restraint under which he was retained becoming irksome, resolved to shake it off, and to rid himself and the nation at once of an authority which had now become alike odious to both. The queen and her paramour had repaired to Nottingham, where a parliament was then held. They had chosen the castle as a place of residence, and taken every precaution to ensure their safety; for fear follows guilt like its shadow. The enemies of Mortimer, however, found means to obtain admission at dead of night; and having seized him as he lay in an apartment adjoining to that of the queen, he was taken prisoner to London, tried before his peers for various crimes, convicted, and executed.

The queen, who was perhaps the most culpable of the two, was screened from capital punishment by the dignity of her station, but stripped of all power, and confined for life to the castle of Risings. From this imprisonment she was never liberated, but during her life the king paid her an annual visit of ceremony.

Edward III. proved one of the greatest warriors who had ever sat on the English throne. His first attempts were to raise Edward Baliol to the throne of Scotland: this however he failed in effecting. But his mind now began to be diverted to loftier and more ambitious speculations. The crown of France became the object of contest between Edward, the son of Philip the Fair's daughter Isabella, and Philip of Valois, the son of the brother of Philip. The question was, whether the crown was descendible only through males, or whether it might be claimed by the nearest male although his descent was by females. Charles the Fair died in 1328, and left the crown of France with-

History. out direct male descendants to inherit it. The three last kings were the sons of Philip the Fair, and they all reigned successively, but died without issue. According to the English law, the son of the daughter precedes the nephew in inheritance; but the French Salic law excluded females. Edward contended that the feudal laws of France forbade females to inherit who could not perform the feudal duties, yet that their male heirs were not debarred by the spirit of this law, because they were competent to discharge all the military services required. On the other hand, it was insisted by the French advocates for Philip de Valois, that the exclusion of the female in the first instance was an exclusion of all the descendants of either sex. If it had been a question of succession to the English crown, it would have been rightfully determined by the parliament and law of England; but as it concerned the crown and law of France, it was clearly a matter for the French state and lawyers to decide. They decided in favour of Philip de Valois, and he was accordingly crowned king of France. In this decision they displayed the soundest principles of national policy, and Edward ought undoubtedly to have acquiesced.1 The king of England, however, thought otherwise, and accordingly began to make preparations for an invasion of France.

By doing homage to Philip for the duchy of Guienne, Edward gained time to collect such an army and treasure as were necessary for the enterprise. Two powerful continental allies appeared in his favour; namely, Robert of Artois, who had been excluded from the county to make way for his aunt Matilda, a nearer relative by blood to the preceding count; and James von Artaveldt, a famous brewer of Ghent, and leader of the democratical party among the Flemings. It was at the suggestion of the latter that Edward assumed the title of king of the French, as a pledge that he would pursue his undertaking with inflexibility of purpose. The king of England landed at Antwerp in July 1338; but it was not until more than a year thereafter that he reached the confines of France. His first campaign was unimportant, but in the second he achieved a considerable naval victory on the 22d of June 1340. Flushed with this success, he marched to the siege of Tournay at the head of 100,000 men. Near this town the king of France had encamped himself in a situation so strong as to bid defiance to attack. Edward challenged him to single combat, but this was refused; and the English were at last compelled to raise the siege, and to retire sullen and discontented from the place.

The efforts of Edward began now to be much crippled for want of money. The exchequer of England was unable to satisfy his demands, and his allies had become clamorous for their arrears. Some of his courtiers having instilled into his mind suspicions of the fidelity of his ministers, he suddenly returned to London, where he landed about midnight at the Tower. Next morning he displaced the chancellor, treasurer, and master of the rolls, confined three of the judges, and ordered the arrest of most of the officers employed in the collection of the revenue. Archbishop Stratford, however, boldly opposed his career of resentment and cruelty, and vindicated the cause of the ministers. The king was compelled at last to abandon his process against the primate, for the urgency of his wants admitted of no delay.

The failure of his first two campaigns did not wean Edward from his attachment to foreign alliances. By a disputed succession to the duchy of Brittany, in which he took the part of the individual who opposed Philip of France, a new road was opened up to him into that country. He collected a vast army, with which he landed near

Cape la Hogue about the end of July 1346. His career in History. France was a series of triumphs most glorious to the English arms. On the 26th of August 1346 was fought the decisive battle of Cressy, which is still memorable after the lapse of many centuries. In this celebrated conflict, Edward the Black Prince, a youth only sixteen years of age, gained unfading laurels. The siege of Calais followed, and the place was reduced after an obstinate defence. The first fruit of the reduction of this place was a truce, which lasted till 1355, when Edward the Black Prince, who governed his father's dominions in France, undertook an expedition into the neighbouring provinces, and in the following year carried his arms into the heart of France. The victory of Poitiers was another mortifying humiliation to the French. John their king was taken prisoner, and treated with noble hospitality and respect by his renowned conqueror. He was conveyed to England, where his reception resembled rather the return of a victorious prince than the humiliation of a captive monarch. For a particular account of these and other transactions of the English in France, the reader is referred to the article FRANCE.

During the absence of the king of England on the Continent, his country was harassed by the Scots, who invaded it, but experienced a defeat at Neville's Cross. In 1355, Edward himself invaded Scotland; and the havoc caused by this expedition was long remembered by the natives. The death of Edward Baliol in 1364 left David Bruce without a rival to the Scottish throne; and the pretensions of the Plantagenets to Scotland were terminated by Edward III.'s recognition of his brother-in-law. See SCOTLAND.

In the mean time Edward the Black Prince, after a Spanish campaign, in which he gained the celebrated battle of Navarette, returned to England in pursuit of health and quiet. But thirty years of toil and war had exhausted his robust frame, and he expired at Canterbury on the 8th of June 1376, in the forty-sixth year of his age. He left behind him a lofty reputation for bravery and skill as a commander, generosity as a knight, and wisdom and vigour as a statesman. His father Edward III. did not long survive his loss. He died on the 21st of June the year following. The reign of this monarch is generally considered by Englishmen as the most illustrious period of their ancient annals. "The victories of Cressy and Poitiers," says Mr. Turner, "may have produced the popular sentiment; but the reflective mind will adopt the opinion as steadily, when it observes, during this reign, that our navy established its preponderance over the most celebrated fleets that were then accustomed to navigate the British channel; that our parliament enjoyed, in full and upright exercise, those constitutional powers which the nation has long learnt to venerate as its best inheritance, but which weaker sovereigns have too eagerly contested; that our manufactures and commerce began to exhibit an affluence and an expanding growth, and to be conducted on the true principles of public improvement; that our clergy evinced a disposition to emancipate themselves from the papal despotism, and some to exercise a just freedom of thought on the most important of all human concerns; that the lineaments of our prose literature became distinctly discernible; that the pursuit of the mathematical and natural sciences, and of the art of reasoning, at one or both of our venerable universities, was ardent and successful; that our poetry assumed the attractive form with which its life, sympathy, utility, and immortality are most surely connected; and that our manners displayed a moral sentiment, which, though somewhat fantastic, and al-

1 Turner's History of England, vol. ii. p. 144.

ways pure, yet contributed to soften the horrors of war, and has led to that more cultivated feeling which, continually increasing and refining, has made Englishmen distinguished for their generosity, magnanimity, and honour." It may be added, on the authority of Sir Mathew Hale, that during this reign the law was greatly improved, and nearly attained its meridian. The monarch himself kept pace with the progress of the time, and his reign was sufficiently protracted to afford opportunities for the development and consolidation of all improvements. He left his country ennobled in the eyes of Europe, and possessed of gigantic energies capable of realising the glorious destinies which awaited her.

Edward III. was succeeded by Richard II. son of the beloved Black Prince. He commenced his reign, being only eleven years of age, on the 22d of June 1377, with many expressions of congratulation from his subjects. His coronation took place on the following year, and parliament was opened with a speech from the Archbishop of Canterbury, which, being "soothing and gracious," was meant to propitiate the favour of the representatives of the nation in behalf of the young sovereign. The Dukes of Lancaster, York, and Gloucester, uncles to the king, with some other noblemen, were appointed regents during Richard's minority. The war, which was still prosecuted in France on a small scale, and the expenses necessary for retaining the towns already taken, required supplies of money, which could not be raised without additional taxation; and this gave rise to much discontent amongst the people. An imposition of three groats upon each person of both sexes and every condition who had passed the age of sixteen, particularly excited the minds of the common people against the government. The manner, too, of collecting this tax, soon furnished an occasion of revolt. The insurrection began in Essex, where a report was industriously spread that the peasants were to be destroyed, their houses burned, and their farms plundered. At Dartford, an individual, well known by the name of Wat Tyler, was the first who excited the malcontents to arms. The tax-gatherers proceeded to this man's house whilst he was at work, and demanded payment for his daughter. He refused to comply, on the ground that she was under the age stipulated in the act; upon which one of these fellows offered to prove the contrary in a very indecent manner, and for this purpose laid hold of the maiden. Such insolence, however, roused the spirit of the father, and with one blow he laid the ruffian dead at his feet. A shout of applause burst from the bystanders, who declared themselves prepared to protect Wat from the vengeance of his enemies. The cry of the men of Kent was responded to by those of the neighbouring counties, and Wat soon found himself at the head of an enormous body of insurgents. They advanced to Blackheath in the month of May 1381, and proceeded to enforce their counsels by an attack upon London, in which they succeeded. The king, finding that resistance was vain, agreed to listen to their demands. On this they made a very humble remonstrance; requiring a general pardon, the abolition of slavery, freedom of commerce in the market-towns, and a fixed rent instead of those services required by the tenure of villenage. The king granted all these requests; and charters were made out by which the grant was ratified. In the mean time, another body of these insurgents had broken into the Tower, and murdered the chancellor, the primate, and the treasurer, with some other officers of distinction. They then divided themselves into parties, and took up their quarters in different parts of the city. At the head of one of these was Wat Tyler, who led his men into Smithfield, where he was met by the king, who invited him to a conference, under pretence of hearing and redressing his grievances.

Tyler ordered his companions to retire till he should give them a signal, and boldly ventured to begin a conference with the king in the midst of his retinue. His demands were, that all slaves should be set free, that all commonages should be open to the poor as well as to the rich, and that a general pardon should be granted for the late outrages. During the interview, the rebel kept playing with his dagger, and at last he is said to have laid his hand on the bridle of his sovereign's horse; upon which Walworth, lord mayor of London, alarmed for the king, plunged a basillard in the throat of Tyler, and at the same moment another esquire dispatched him with his sword. This is the tale told by the writers of the victorious party, for the partizans of Wat Tyler had no historian to give their version of the story. The insurgents who witnessed the fall of their leader bent their bows with the design of revenging his death. But Richard, though only sixteen years of age, with admirable presence of mind galloped up to them, exclaiming, "What are you doing, my lieges? Tyler was a traitor. Follow me, and I will be your leader." With sullen and wavering discontent they followed him into the fields at Islington, where a body of troops had been collected for the protection of the young king. The insurgents were ordered to return to their homes instantly, and under the penalty of death they were forbidden to skulk about the city during night. But the whole of the rebels did not thus escape, and the revolt was not finally extinguished without much bloodshed and cruelty.

The courage, address, and presence of mind which the king had discovered in quelling such a dangerous tumult, gave great hopes to the nation: but, in proportion as Richard advanced in years, these hopes began to wither; and his want of capacity, or at least of solid judgment, appeared in every enterprise which he attempted. The king had unluckily lost the favour of the common people after the insurrection just mentioned. He allowed the parliament to revoke the charters of enfranchisement and pardon which had been granted; some of the ringleaders in the late disorders had been severely punished, and others were put to death without any form or process of trial. Thus the popular leaders were greatly exasperated by this cruelty, though probably the king did not in this follow the dictates of his own mind so much as the advice of his counsellors. But having thus lost the favour of one party, he quickly afterwards fell under the displeasure of the other also. Conceiving himself to be in too great subjection to his uncles, particularly the Duke of Gloucester, he attempted to shake off the yoke, by raising others to an equal share of rank and favour. Accordingly one of his favourites, Michael de la Pole, was created Earl of Suffolk, and raised to the chancellorship; whilst another, Robert de Vere, earl of Oxford, a young man of an agreeable person, but dissolute in his behaviour, soon acquired an absolute ascendancy over him. This nobleman was first created Marquis of Dublin, and afterwards Duke of Ireland, both preposterous and invidious titles. The duke having soon become the dispenser of all the king's favours, a conspiracy was formed against him by some of the most powerful nobility in the kingdom. The Earl of Suffolk was impeached in parliament, and, being convicted of certain charges brought against him, was condemned to pay a suitable fine. Soon afterwards the king was prevailed upon to vest the government in the hands of eleven commissioners along with the three great officers of state. This measure was carried into effect by the Duke of Gloucester, who stood at the head of the committee; and the king could not without regret perceive himself thus totally deprived of authority. He first endeavoured to gain over the parliament to his interests, by

4 z

History. influencing the sheriffs of each county, who were then the only returning officers; and this measure failing, he next applied to the judges, who declared that the commission which had deprived the king of his authority was unlawful, and that those who procured or advised it deserved condign punishment; but their sentence was quickly opposed by declarations from the lords. The Duke of Gloucester armed his partizans, and appeared at the head of a body of men sufficient to intimidate both the king and his adherents. These insurgents, sensible of their own power, began by demanding of the king the names of those who had advised the adoption of the late rash measures. A few days afterwards they appeared armed in his presence, and accused by name the Archbishop of York, the Duke of Ireland, the Earl of Suffolk, and Sir Robert Tresilian, one of the judges who had declared in his favour, together with Sir Nicholas Brembre, as public and dangerous enemies to the state. The parliament which met on the 3d of February 1388 condemned the five accused persons to suffer the death of traitors. The Duke of Ireland escaped to Flanders, where he expired four years afterwards; De la Pole died at Paris in the same year; Tresilian and Brembre were put to death, and the Archbishop of York became a Flemish curate, and died in that humble capacity. The other individuals who had subscribed the bold opinion were condemned to perpetual imprisonment; with the exception of Black, who had drawn up the questions, and Usk, appointed under-sheriff to arrest the Duke of Gloucester, who were both executed.

But the king became restive in the traces with which his uncle restrained him. In a meeting of parliament he declared himself competent to manage his own affairs, as he had by this time attained his twenty-second year. This bold announcement was followed by his ordering Thomas Arundel, whom the commissioners had recently appointed chancellor, to give up the seals, which, on the following day, he delivered into the hands of William Wickham, bishop of Winchester. The council was next cleared of the Duke of Gloucester, the Earl of Warwick, and other opposition lords; and the great officers of the household, as well as the judges, were changed for more pliable instruments.

Being now his own master, Richard notified by proclamation that he had taken the reins of government into his own hands; and, whether it was owing to the king or his ministers, it must be owned that for some years his administration was tranquil and happy. During this halcyon period he made a journey into Ireland, in order to divert the melancholy with which he was afflicted on account of the loss of his wife Anne. Soon afterwards he espoused Isabella, a princess of France, then in her eighth year, which contributed to an armistice with that kingdom for twenty-five years.

This alliance with the royal family of France encouraged Richard to execute a scheme of vengeance which he had long nourished in his bosom against Gloucester and others who had been instrumental in the punishment of his favourites. The duke, with the Earls of Warwick and Arundel, were appealed for treason; in consequence of which the former was sent prisoner to Calais, and the two latter committed to the Tower. Here the head of Arundel was shortly after struck off, and Warwick was banished; but the fate of the Duke of Gloucester is involved in some obscurity. On the 21st of September 1397 a writ was issued to Thomas Mowbray, earl marshal, governor of Calais, commanding him to bring the body of his prisoner, the Duke of Gloucester, to answer before the king in parliament to the appeal of treason against him. The reply of the governor of Calais was, that the prisoner had died in his custody. At a subsequent period circumstances

transpired which indicate that the duke perished by the foulest murder, doubtless at the instigation of his own nephew. It remains to be mentioned, that at the meeting of parliament, in which these noblemen were impeached, all the acts in which Gloucester had taken a share were annulled, the commission of government was cancelled, the opinions of the judges were declared to be legal, and the judgment against Michael de la Pole was reversed.

After the destruction of Gloucester and the heads of his party, a misunderstanding arose amongst the noblemen who had joined in the prosecution. The Duke of Hereford, son to John of Gaunt, appeared in parliament, and accused the Duke of Norfolk of having uttered treason in a private conversation. Norfolk denied the charge, and offered to establish his innocence by single combat. The challenge was accepted; but the king interrupted the duel, and commanded both the parties to leave the kingdom. The Duke of Norfolk was banished for life, but the Duke of Hereford only for ten years. The former retired to Venice, where he died shortly afterwards. Hereford displayed so much resignation to the will of his sovereign, that the latter commuted the period of his exile to four years. The king had obtained the object of his wishes, namely, the civil destruction of those whose power he dreaded. Even his uncles, either through affection or fear, seconded all his measures, which were now deeply tainted with despotism. On the death of John of Gaunt, "time-honoured Lancaster," the crown claimed his immense estates, to the exclusion of the banished Earl of Hereford, who was pronounced incapable of inheriting them after the judgment which had been pronounced against him in parliament.

By these and other impolitic acts, the king overstrained the bow, and excited a spirit of discontent, which finally hurled him from the throne. The resentment of Hereford had been inflamed by the injury which he had received, and he only waited for a favourable opportunity of retaliation, which soon afterwards occurred.

The Earl of March, presumptive heir to the crown, having been appointed the king's lieutenant in Ireland, was slain in a skirmish with the natives of that country; and Richard, regardless of his precarious situation at home, went over to Ireland with a considerable army, in order to revenge the death of his relative. Hereford, now duke of Lancaster, took advantage of the king's absence. Solicited by the discontented lords, and aware of the alienation of the people from Richard, he embarked at Nantes, and, with a retinue of only sixty persons in three small vessels, landed at Ravenspur in Yorkshire. The Earl of Northumberland, who had long been a malcontent, together with Henry Percy, his son, surnamed Hotspur on account of his impetuous valour, immediately joined him with their forces; and the people flocked to him in such numbers that in a few days he found himself at the head of sixty thousand men.

Richard in the mean time continued in fancied security in Ireland. Adverse winds for three perilous weeks together prevented his receiving any news of the rebellion which had broken out in his native dominions; but when the intelligence arrived he was overwhelmed with dismay. Some advised him to sail immediately and face the danger; others recommended that he should first send over the Earl of Salisbury, for the purpose of collecting all who were disposed to support his interests, which plan was adopted. A numerous army joined the earl, but the king protracted his stay in Ireland so long, that on his arrival the whole of this force had melted down to less than an hundred men. To take the field against Henry of Lancaster was consequently out of the question. He therefore proceeded in disguise to the fortress of Conway, where

History. Salisbury had taken up his quarters. It was the policy of Henry to show symptoms of negotiation, in order to allure the king into his own hands. This he effected in a very deceitful manner. The Earl of Northumberland was dispatched to Richard with a thousand men, who concealed themselves at some distance, whilst the earl proceeded to the fortress where the king was lodged, and by fair promises induced him to quit his stronghold and go along with him to Henry for the purpose of effecting a reconciliation. But during the journey Richard was made prisoner, and finally committed to the Tower to await the judgment of parliament. On Monday the 29th of September 1399, a deputation of lords and commons waited upon the king, and having reminded him of a declaration which he had formerly made at Conway Castle, of his unfitness to govern, and readiness to resign the crown, required his resignation of the regal power. To this he consented, according to the ancient chroniclers, "with a cheerful countenance." During his whole reign, Richard held the sceptre with a wavering grasp, and in the paralysis with which he was now stricken, he as it were unconsciously relinquished it. He likewise recommended Henry his nephew as a fitting successor to the throne.

Before proceeding with the reign of Henry IV. we shall follow the deposed monarch through the few sad weeks of his unhappy life. By parliament he was adjudged "to a perpetual prison, to remain there secretly in safe custody." Richard was accordingly consigned to close confinement, and shortly afterwards came to his end, there can be little doubt in an unnatural manner. His fate seems to have been accelerated by a conspiracy amongst his friends to restore him to the throne. The Earls of Kent, Huntingdon, and Salisbury, laid a plot for the destruction of King Henry; but the secret was betrayed, and the confederated noblemen were executed. The death of Richard seems to have immediately followed this unsuccessful enterprise, but the manner of it is involved in impenetrable mystery. According to some chroniclers, several ruffians were sent to the castle of Pomfret, where he had been removed, for the purpose of dispatching him. They rushed unexpectedly into his apartment; but he succeeded in wresting a pole-axe from one of the murderers, with which he killed several of them, but was at length overpowered and slain. Others relate that he was starved in prison, and that he lingered fifteen days before he expired.1 According to some accounts, he was condemned to suffer this miserable and protracted death; whilst others state that it was a voluntary abstinence, to which he was impelled by despair. He died in the thirty-fourth year of his age, and twenty-third of his reign. It was during the life of Richard II. that Wickliff, the celebrated reformer, promulgated his doctrines in England. See WICKLIFFE.

After the throne had been vacated by its legitimate occupant, Henry duke of Lancaster stepped forward and claimed it in right of his being a descendant of Henry III. He was descended from this monarch both by father and mother, but he could not claim by the father's side, because the young Earl of March was sprung from the Duke of Clarence, the elder brother of John of Gaunt, nor by the mother's side, because she was sprung from Edmund of Lancaster, a younger brother of Edward I. It was pretended that Edmund was the elder brother, but it was never

proved. By the law of succession it belonged to the descendants of Lionel, the third son of Edward III. That prince died without issue male, and his possessions and pretensions descended to his daughter Philippa, wife of Roger Mortimer, the male representative of the powerful baron who was attainted and executed for the murder of Edward II. the grandfather of the Duke of Clarence. The son of that powerful delinquent had been restored to his honours and estates at a late period of the reign of Edward III. The fourth in descent from the regicide was Roger Mortimer, lord-lieutenant of Ireland, who was looked upon as heir to the crown during the early part of Richard's reign; but his son Edmund Mortimer was only ten years of age when Richard was deposed, so that his claim was easily set aside. Mortimer died in 1425 without male issue, and the pretensions which he inherited through the Duke of Clarence fell to his sister Anne Mortimer, who espoused Richard of York, earl of Cambridge, the grandson of Edward III. by his fourth son Edmund of Langley, duke of York. But from the foregoing pedigree it is clear that during the life of the Earl of March no right to the crown had descended to any branch of the house of York. Henry, however, notwithstanding the inferiority of his title, was unanimously acknowledged by both houses, and was crowned within a fortnight after the deposition of his predecessor. He was the idol of the populace, the master of parliament, and the heir of the fame and possessions of John of Gaunt.

The reign of Henry IV. was little else than a continued series of insurrections. In the very first parliament which he assembled, a great number of challenges were given and accepted by different barons; and though Henry had ability and address enough to prevent these duels, it was not in his power to avoid continual combinations and revolts against himself.

The most formidable of these disorders was that under the Earl of Northumberland. Various causes are assigned for this insurrection. One is, that the resentment of the Percies had been excited by the king denying them the privilege to liberate or ransom their prisoners; for at the battle of Homildon, where the Scotch suffered a defeat, a number of noblemen had fallen into the hands of Hotspur, who commanded the English. The insurgents themselves assigned another cause for the quarrel, and this was probably the real one. In the course of a war with the Welsh, the Lord Grey of Ruthyn and Sir Edmund Mortimer had both fallen into the enemy's hands. The former being a friend to the king, was allowed to be ransomed by his relations; but the latter, who was uncle to the young Earl of March, the lawful heir to the throne, and of course an object of jealousy to Henry, was denied the privilege of being liberated. This fired with resentment the inflammable spirit of Hotspur, who had married the sister of Sir Edmund; his father the Earl of Northumberland, and his uncle the Earl of Worcester, shared his discontent; and amongst them they projected nothing less than the dethronement of the king.

With this view they formed an alliance with the Scots and Welsh, who were to make an irruption into England, at the same time that the Percies were to raise what forces they could in order to join them. The Earl of Northumberland, by a sudden fit of illness, having been incapa-

1 It was at first believed that Richard had effected his escape into Scotland, and that he lived there twenty years. This ancient tradition has been revived by Mr Tytler, in his History of Scotland, and he supports his views with considerable ingenuity. The chief evidence upon which he relies consists in charges made by the regent of Scotland for the expenses of the king of England. But Sir James Mackintosh, in a note at the end of the first volume of his History of England, gives several cogent, and we think unanswerable reasons for differing from Mr Tytler upon this point, and adhering to the common narrative. Those who feel an interest in this subject are referred to the work above mentioned, and to the appendix to the third volume of Mr Tytler's History of Scotland.

History. cited for active warfare, young Percy took the command, and marched to Shrewsbury for the purpose of joining the Welsh. But the king had assembled a small army, with which it was his intention to act against the Scots; and, knowing the importance of celerity in civil wars, instantly hurried to meet the rebels. He approached Shrewsbury before a junction could be effected with the Welsh; and by his headstrong impatience Percy was impelled to risk an engagement, which at that time he ought to have declined. The evening before the battle he sent a manifesto to Henry, in which he renounced his allegiance, set the king at defiance, and enumerated all the grievances of which he imagined the nation might justly complain. Amongst the charges with which he reproached the king, were those of perjury, murder, and usurpation of rightful property. All this vituperation was productive of no other effect than that of exasperating to the utmost both the king and his adherents.

The armies were fairly matched, consisting of about fourteen thousand men each, and both leaders were men of approved valour. The action, which took place on the 21st of July 1403, was obstinate and bloody. After a chivalrous display of his characteristic valour, Percy was slain by a random arrow, and with his fall the courage and the confidence of his followers evaporated. They were completely routed, and driven from the field with great loss. Lord Worcester and two other conspicuous individuals were beheaded on the field. The Earl of Northumberland, however, notwithstanding his connection with the rebels, was mercifully treated by Henry. But this lenity does not appear to have quieted the country; for various insurrections, particularly amongst the Welsh under the celebrated Owen Glendower, disturbed the remaining years of Henry's reign. Owen, under the title of Prince of Wales, gained so many remarkable successes over the royal troops, that the king himself publicly attributed them to necromancy. The unconquerable spirit of the Welsh leader actuated all classes of his countrymen, who flocked to his standard from every part in England where they had taken up their abode. Owen remained free and unsubmissive to the English yoke till the close of his career, and the last glimpse which history affords of his patriotic course is as bright as the first.

The reign of Henry was much disturbed, and the language which our great dramatist makes him employ, "un-easy lies the head that wears a crown," is remarkably appropriate from the lips of such a monarch. The swell with which the nation heaved when he ascended the throne never subsided during his lifetime. The position in which he stood with regard to the succession seems to have caused him much concern; for the case was a difficult one. In his first parliament his eldest son Henry was created Prince of Wales; and in 1404 the right of that prince's brothers to reign, in the event of his dying without issue, was recognised by parliament. The most disgraceful feature of Henry's reign was his deadly persecution of those who entertained the new religious doctrines. In his second year was passed that sanguinary act, the first that stains the English statute-book on the subject, which orders heretics to be burned; and many an unfortunate Lollard suffered for his faith during the sway of the Bolingbroke. A remarkable circumstance occurred in 1405, namely, the capital punishment of a clergyman of the highest rank. Scroop, archbishop of York, was an enthusiastic defender of the claims of the Earl of March, and, being taken in arms against his sovereign, was beheaded without trial, conviction, or defence.

Notwithstanding the act against the Lollards, the doctrines of Wickliff gained ground; and the support which Henry gave the hierarchy did not preclude his parliament

from attempting its reformation, and even from despoiling it of part of its possessions. History

In 1405 the Commons, who had been required to grant supplies, proposed to the king to seize all the temporalities of the church, and employ them as a perpetual fund to meet the exigencies of the state. When this address was presented, the Archbishop of Canterbury, who then attended the king, objected that the clergy, though they went not in person to the wars, sent their vassals and tenants in all cases of necessity; whilst at the same time they themselves who staid at home were employed night and day in offering up their supplications for the success of the enterprise and the prosperity of the state. The speaker answered with a sarcastic smile, that he thought the prayers of the church but a very slender supply. The archbishop, however, prevailed in the dispute; the king discouraged the application of the Commons, and the Lords rejected the bill which the lower house had framed. The Commons were not discouraged by this repulse; in 1410 they returned to the charge with renewed zeal and determination.

A Lollard had been burnt, and the lower house of parliament, as if in retaliation of this atrocity, presented a schedule to the king, showing that he might have from the temporal possessions of the bishops, abbots, and priors, that were then uselessly wasted, 15 earls, 1500 knights, and 6200 esquires. But the reply of the king was severe, and he forbade them to discuss such topics for the future. They then petitioned that the clergy should be subjected to the civil tribunals, but this was also refused; and a request that the statute against the Lollards might be mitigated shared the same fate.

The reign of Henry was now drawing towards a termination. The last years of his life were darkened by disease, and undistinguished by vigour. He had been subject to eruptions in his face and to attacks of epilepsy. By one of these he was carried off, at Westminster, on the 20th of March 1413, in the forty-seventh year of his age and fourteenth of his reign. Henry owed the English sceptre, not, in the first instance, to his own plotting or ambition, but to a popular revolution against the authority of his predecessor. He landed in England for the avowed purpose of only seizing his own possessions, of which he had been most unwarrantably deprived; but finding Richard a most unpopular sovereign, and his own reputation very high, whilst his affinity to the blood royal was, though not so near as that of the Earl of March, sufficiently so to give him a plausible pretext for standing forward as a candidate for the crown, he accordingly did so, and proved successful. He united in a high degree watchfulness and circumspection, with a bold and decisive policy. For his arbitrary measures he brought forward the plea of necessity, "which," says Sir James Mackintosh, "prevented them from growing into precedents subversive of the constitution." As he owed his throne to popular revolt, so he was in some measure compelled to adopt popular principles. Under his reign the House of Commons advanced with a steady pace towards importance and authority. It assumed a higher and more decisive tone than had hitherto characterized its proceedings, and pushed its inquiries into all the affairs and departments of government.

Henry of Monmouth, eldest son of the preceding monarch, ascended the throne immediately after the death of his father. With the early life of Henry V. we usually associate acts of frivolity, insubordination, and even low vice. But to the creative genius of a powerful poet must in a great measure be attributed this almost universal impression. That he was guilty of delinquencies beneath the dignity of the heir apparent to the English throne, may be true; but there is no satisfactory evidence

History. either to confirm or refute the traditional stories which are told of him. At an early age he discovered talents of no common order. He was only sixteen years of age when the battle of Shrewsbury was fought, and on that occasion he displayed equal firmness and ability. Afterwards, when intrusted with the guardianship of the Welsh marches, he conducted himself in a manner so highly creditable, that he more than once received the thanks of the House of Commons for his conduct. On his accession to the throne, he made himself popular by several wise and generous measures. He liberated his cousin the Earl of March from the constraint under which that prince, undoubtedly the heir of Edward III., had been held by the jealousy of Henry IV. The Percies, who were exiles in Scotland, he restored to their possessions, and even to a command over their martial vassals. Those ministers of his father who had recommended themselves by their uprightness and decision, were retained in the offices which they held. The chief justice, in particular, who had formerly imprisoned the king, whilst Prince of Wales, for his misconduct, was not only pardoned, but received into high favour. He expressed deep regret for the fate of Richard II., and performed his funeral obsequies with becoming pomp and solemnity. That Henry had a mind which towered above the level of his contemporaries, his remarkable triumphs in France are evidence; but that in some respects he was not in advance of his age, the severities which he practised against the Lollards afford ample proof. The head of that party was Sir John Oldcastle, an individual alike distinguished for his valour and military talents, and who had acquired the esteem both of the late and present king. His high character pointed him out as a proper object of ecclesiastical fury, and he was accordingly denounced to Henry, who, at a private interview, attempted to make him recant his faith; but in vain. Oldcastle was therefore condemned to suffer the death of an heretic; but having effected his escape, he raised an insurrection, which was soon crushed. He succeeded however in eluding pursuit for four years, but he was at last taken and executed as a traitor. After the suppression of the revolt, the most severe laws were passed against the unfortunate Lollards. It was enacted, that whoever should be convicted of Lollardy, besides suffering capital punishment according to the laws formerly established, would also forfeit his lands and goods to the king; and the officers of government were likewise bound by oath to use their utmost endeavours to extirpate the heresy.

The restoration of tranquillity afforded Henry an opportunity of turning his attention to France, the miserable condition of which offered a fair prospect of success to his arms. The claim of his family to the crown of that country was revived; and on the 15th of April 1415 he assembled a great council at Westminster, to whom he announced his determination of making a "voyage in his own proper person, by the grace of God, to recover his inheritance." He appointed his brother, the Duke of Bedford, lord lieutenant of the kingdom during his absence. When about to set sail for Normandy, a rash conspiracy broke out, which detained him for a little time; but it was soon suppressed, and Henry embarked at Southampton with an army of about thirty thousand men, the greater proportion of whom were archers. He entered the Seine, and having reduced Harfleur, he challenged the dauphin to meet him in single combat, and decide the contest for the crown of the country which he had invaded. But this was destined to be competed for on a far wider arena than that which two combatants could occupy. Henry crossed the Somme, and was proceeding on his road towards Calais, when he came up with the enemy at a small vil-

lage, called by the French Azincourt, and by the English Agincourt. Here was fought a great and decisive battle, which ended in the total defeat of the French army, estimated at not less than four times the strength of that of the English. (See AGINCOURT.) Henry did not immediately pursue his victory, and returned to England, where he was received with the utmost enthusiasm; but he soon afterwards rejoined his troops in France. The claimants for the crown of that kingdom were so numerous, that had he boldly prosecuted his own schemes, the opposing factions might have leagued together against him as a common enemy. It was therefore his policy to remain inactive, and, by tampering with them separately, to foment the discord which prevailed amongst the French leaders. On the 21st of May 1420, a treaty was at length concluded at Troyes, which promised to crown the hopes of the Plantagenets with success, and establish them on the throne of France. The principal articles stipulated the marriage of Henry with Catherine, daughter of the French king; that Henry should be regent of France whilst Charles remained alive; and that he should succeed that monarch after his decease. Henry accordingly espoused the French princess; but he was not long permitted to enjoy his connubial happiness or his good fortune. A fatal malady seized him at Paris; and having been conducted by his own orders to Vincennes, he expired there on the 31st of August 1422, in the thirty-fourth year of his age, and the tenth of his reign.

The name of Henry V. is adorned with all the splendour of brilliant conquest and successful ambition. By a single victory he brought the crown of France within his reach, if not within his grasp. But he had other qualities besides those of a warrior; he was a statesman of consummate skill, as his conduct after the victory of Agincourt sufficiently testifies. His mind was altogether of a superior order, and there seems nothing to prevent his being ranked with the greatest of English monarchs, except the countenance which he gave to ecclesiastical persecutions.

By Catherine of France Henry had a son who succeeded him when not yet a year old. The whole of his long reign is occupied with a war for the French crown, and a disastrous civil war in England between the houses of York and Lancaster. At the accession of Henry VI. parliament ordered a new royal title, in which he was recognized as king of France and England, and lord of Ireland; appointed his father's eldest brother, the Duke of Bedford, protector, defender, and chief counsellor of the kingdom and of the English church; and in his absence invested the Duke of Gloucester, his younger brother, with these honours. A council was named, and certain articles enacted, for the purpose of limiting the power of the protector. The kingdom of France was now in the most deplorable situation. By the solemn investiture of the infant king of England with the royal prerogative in that country, Charles VII. succeeded only to a nominal kingdom; for the greater portion of it adhered to the interests of Henry. But notwithstanding all these advantages, the English daily lost ground, and in the year 1450 they were finally expelled from the country. See the article FRANCE.

It may be easily conceived that such a train of bad success was likely to be productive of discontent at home. Continual animosities were kept up amongst the king's counsellors during the first thirty years of his nominal rule. This tended to plunge the nation in convulsions, and prepare it for becoming the theatre of a sanguinary civil war. Humphrey duke of Gloucester was envied by many on account of his high station. Amongst these was Thomas Beaufort, bishop of Winchester, afterwards cardinal, the legitimate son of John of Gaunt, brother to

History.

Richard II. This prelate, to whom the care of the king's education had been committed, was a man of some capacity and experience, but of an intriguing and restless disposition. He had frequent disputes with the Duke of Gloucester, over whom he gained several advantages. The Duke of Bedford employed both his own authority and that of parliament to reconcile them, but in vain; their mutual animosities served for several years to embarrass government, and to lay it open to its enemies. The sentiments of the two leaders were particularly divided with regard to France. The bishop laid hold of every prospect of accommodation with that country; and the Duke of Gloucester was for maintaining the honour of the English arms, and regaining whatever had been lost by defeat or delay. Both parties, therefore, called in all the auxiliaries they could command. The bishop resolved to strengthen himself by procuring a proper match for Henry, at that time twenty-three years of age, and then by bringing over the queen to his interests. Accordingly, the Earl of Suffolk, a nobleman whom he knew to be steadfast in attachment to him, was sent over to France, apparently to settle the terms of a truce which had then been contemplated, but in reality to procure a suitable consort for the young king.

The bishop and his friends had turned their attention to Margaret of Anjou, daughter of Regnier, titular king of Sicily, Naples, and Jerusalem, but who was destitute of either real power or possessions. She was looked upon as the most accomplished princess of the age, both in mind and person; and it was thought the abilities which she possessed would supply the want of them in her husband, to whom maturity of years had brought no maturity of understanding. He was a child from the cradle to the grave. The treaty was therefore hastened on by Suffolk, and soon afterwards ratified in England. Previously to the king's marriage, however, a conspicuous blow was struck at the protector's greatness. In that age a charge of sorcery was capable of blasting any character, however spotless or pure; and even of throwing odium upon all who were related to the individual accused. It was an irresistible weapon made use of by churchmen for the destruction of their enemies, and it was wielded by the prelate against his political opponent with tremendous force. He brought forward an accusation of sorcery and treason against Elinor Cobham, wife or concubine of the Duke of Gloucester. She was charged with having made an image of the king in wax, which being placed before a gentle fire, gradually dissolved; and it was expected that as the wax wasted away, the strength of the king would also disappear, and that his death would take place when the whole of the image had melted. Three other individuals were implicated in this accusation, which was readily believed. The prisoners were pronounced guilty; the duchess was condemned to do penance and suffer perpetual imprisonment; one priest was hanged, and another died in prison; whilst, to consummate the affair, Margaret Jourdemayn, a reputed witch, was burnt at Smithfield.

The Bishop of Winchester was resolved to carry his resentment against Gloucester to the utmost. He procured a parliament to be summoned, not at London, which was too well affected towards the duke, but at St Edmundsbury, where the prelate's adherents greatly preponderated. As soon as Gloucester appeared, he was accused of treason, and thrown into prison. On the day appointed for him to make his defence, he was found dead in his bed, though without any signs of violence upon his body. This, however, is no proof that he came not by a violent end.

The death of the Duke of Gloucester was universally ascribed to the cardinal of Winchester, who himself died six weeks thereafter, without leaving behind him so good

a name as his political adversary. The Lancasterian party was thus deprived of its chiefs: no male Plantagenet of that lineage remained except the king, who was at best but an apology for one.

After the demise of the cardinal of Winchester, Suffolk governed with uncontrolled sway. But his conduct was obnoxious to the rest of the nobility, who now concerted measures for his destruction. In the year 1447 he was impeached of high treason on various charges. He was accused of exciting the French to invade England, in order to depose Henry and place on the throne De la Pole's son, who was to marry Somerset's daughter, considered by the Lancasterian party as the next in succession to the crown. He was also charged with the loss of France by his negotiations in that country, and with revealing state secrets to the French ministers. Other illegal acts were ascribed to him in the bill of impeachment; and so strong did the current of opinion run against him, that, whether guilty or not, the king was compelled to banish him from the kingdom. But this did not satisfy his enemies, who looked upon expatriation as a sheltering from justice rather than as a punishment. The captain of a ship was therefore employed to intercept him in his passage to France; and, having been seized near Dover, his head was struck off in a small boat, and his body consigned to the waves.

The complaints against Henry's government were heightened by an insurrection, headed by an individual of equivocal descent, but who has been transmitted to posterity by the name or nickname of Jack Cade. He assumed the honourable name of John Mortimer; and having assembled a great body of the peasantry of Kent, he marched to Blackheath. A message was sent to him by the king, demanding the cause of the insurrection. The audacious Cade answered in the name of the community, that their purpose was to punish evil counsellors, and to obtain a redress of grievances. Henry assembled a force; but part of it having been defeated, the remainder refused to fight, and the king retired from the field. Lord Say, the treasurer, was committed to the Tower, in order to satisfy the revolters. In the mean time, the citizens of London opened their gates to the victorious rebel, who made a triumphant entry into the city arrayed in the shining armour and gilt spurs of a knight. For some time he maintained great order and regularity amongst his troops. He always led them out into the fields in the night-time, and published several edicts against every kind of plunder and violence. His followers, however, were not to be thus restrained. Lord Say, without any trial, was beheaded; and soon afterwards, the insurgents, having committed some irregularities, were shut out of the city by the inhabitants. Cade endeavoured to force his way back to his quarters, when a bloody scuffle ensued, which was only terminated by the approach of night. The Archbishop of Canterbury, and the chancellor, who had taken refuge in the Tower, hearing how matters stood, drew up an act of amnesty, which was privately circulated amongst the rebels. This had an electrical effect upon them, and in the morning Cade found himself totally abandoned by his followers. He effected his escape, but was afterwards captured and slain. A number of circumstances now contributed to revive the long dormant pretensions of the house of York to the throne. France had been lost; the arms of England had been disgraced; Margaret the queen, by violence and arrogance, was most unpopular; the king himself was a perfect cipher; whilst, in strong contrast to him, appeared the Duke of York, a man of popular virtues, and the legitimate heir to regal power, according to the English laws of real inheritance. All the males of the house of Mortimer were now extinct; but Anne, the sister of the last Earl of March, having

espoused the Earl of Cambridge, who had been beheaded for treason in the reign of Henry V. had transmitted her latent but unforgotten claim to her son Richard. This prince, descended by his mother from Philippa, only daughter of the Duke of Clarence, third son of Edward III. stood plainly in order of succession before the king, who derived his descent from the Duke of Lancaster, fourth son of that monarch. The duke was a man of valour and abilities, as well as of some ambition; and he thought that the weakness and unpopularity of the present reign afforded a favourable opportunity for asserting his title. The ensign of Richard was a white rose, and that of Henry a red one; circumstances which gave names to the two factions who were now about to deluge the kingdom in blood.

The Duke of York was in Ireland during the proceedings against Suffolk and the sedition of Cade. In September 1450 he returned to England, a circumstance which excited considerable alarm at court. He advanced upon London; and, proceeding to the palace at Westminster, knelt before the king, and, deploring the state of the kingdom, entreated him to summon a parliament. The queen appears to have evinced her usual arrogance upon this occasion; but York succeeded in extorting a promise from the king that he would comply with his request, upon which he retired to his castle at Fotheringay. He was scarcely gone, however, when the Duke of Somerset returned from France, and was chosen favourite adviser of the king. The session of parliament proved unquiet and stormy. York presented a complaint against the administration of Somerset, and in the year following exhibited several articles of impeachment against him. But the power and influence of the queen rendered his efforts fruitless. Legal prosecutions became thus inadequate to suit the feelings of the enraged York, and he accordingly assembled an army. The king, doubting his ability to triumph by opposing force to force, affected to acquiesce in the demands of the duke, and put Somerset under restraint. Upon this York disbanded his troops, and retired unattended to the royal pavilion, where he was immediately made prisoner, and compelled to take an oath of allegiance to the king. Somerset rose higher in favour than ever, and completed his ascendancy in the government by obtaining the entire confidence of the king and his consort.

On the 13th of October 1453 Queen Margaret presented her husband with a son and heir, the ill-fated Edward prince of Wales. Not long afterwards the king sunk into a state of mental as well as bodily incapacity, and the star of York again appeared above the horizon. The total imbecility of the king having been ascertained, the Duke of York was chosen protector and defender of the kingdom. Previously to this event Somerset had been removed from the palace of the queen to the Tower. The king's malady was not permanent, and on his recovery he put an end to the protectorate, released Somerset from his confinement, and reinstated him in his honours. This was a mortal blow to the peace of York; and having conferred with the powerful Earls of Warwick and Salisbury, who united themselves to his interests, he took the field with the declared intention of only expelling Somerset from the government. But this nobleman's fate involved that of the house of Lancaster. It was in vain that the king attempted a reconciliation of interests; he was compelled to have recourse to arms, and meet the Yorkists in open warfare. A battle took place at St Albans, in which the royalists were totally defeated; Somerset, the immediate cause of the conflict, having fallen in the action.

The king relapsed into his former state, and the Duke of York was a second time chosen protector; but the queen, who could not brook the idea of his continuing at the head

of government, procured his dismissal. She is even charged with having conspired his destruction, and that of his most conspicuous adherents. A temporary reconciliation was effected, but discord was again introduced; and the parties having irrecoverably lost confidence in each other, prepared for the deadly struggle of arms.

The forces of the Duke of York under the Earl of Salisbury gained an advantage over the royalists at Bloreheath; but a fatal desertion on the part of York's troops at Ludlow turned the balance in favour of the king; and York fled to Ireland, where he was joyfully received.

But this disaster, though in appearance it suppressed the party of York, was far from being fatal to its power. The snake was scotched, not killed, and it only waited a favourable opportunity for darting on its victim. This soon presented itself. Warwick, who had retained the government of Calais, landed in Kent, and, being joined by a number of barons, advanced upon the capital, which he entered amidst the acclamations of the people. The number of his troops had now so much increased that he found himself in a condition to encounter the royal army. Early in July 1460 he came up with them at Southampton, and a bloody battle ensued, in which the king was taken prisoner, and his army utterly dispersed. Meanwhile the Duke of York having returned from Ireland, openly laid claim to the crown. In the House of Lords the cause of Henry and the Duke of York was solemnly debated; and the latter, though a conqueror, did not absolutely gain his cause. It was determined that Henry should possess the throne during his life, and that the Duke of York should be appointed his successor, to the utter exclusion of Henry's offspring.

Though the royal party now seemed destitute of every resource, the queen still retained her intrepidity, disdaining every arrangement which implied the dethronement of her child. Wales seemed the natural place of refuge for the mother of him who was called its prince, and thither accordingly she fled. This warlike dame assembled a considerable army to rescue her pusillanimous husband, and marched to the northern provinces, where Northumberland and Clifford joined her with their borderers. This union having alarmed the victorious party, York and Somerset hastened to anticipate their designs, and, having assembled a sufficient force, succeeded in reaching the strong castle of Sandal before Christmas. Actuated by the pride of prowess and the impatience of inaction, York engaged the queen's army with one of inferior force. The conflict took place at Wakefield on the 30th of December 1460, and terminated in the total defeat of the Yorkists. The duke himself was either slain in the action, or put to death after it; whilst the Earl of Salisbury was taken during the night, and decapitated next day. But no one was so much lamented as the young Earl of Rutland, the son of York, a boy in the twelfth year of his age. He was made prisoner, and coolly stabbed to the heart by Clifford, in revenge for the death of his father, who had perished at the battle of St Albans.

After this victory Margaret marched towards London, in order to set the king at liberty; but the Earl of Warwick, who had now put himself at the head of the Yorkists, led about the captive king in order to give a sanction to his proceedings. Except by the countenance which his presence seemed to give to the transactions of the Yorkists, he was as inert an instrument in their hands as the royal standard which waved above their lines. Warwick engaged the queen's forces at St Albans; but, through the treachery of Lord Lovelace, who deserted with a considerable force during the heat of the action, Warwick was defeated, and the pageant king fell once more into the hands of his own party.

History.

The submission of the city of London seemed now to be all that was wanting to complete the queen's success; but Warwick had secured it in his interests, and the citizens refused to open their gates to the royal victor. In the mean time, young Edward, eldest son of the late Duke of York, put himself at the head of his father's party. He was now in the bloom of youth, remarkable for the beauty of his person and for bravery; and he was, moreover, a very great favourite with the people. He defeated Jasper Tudor, earl of Pembroke, at Mortimer's Cross in Herefordshire; the earl himself being taken prisoner, and immediately beheaded by Edward's orders.

Meanwhile he was joined by the remainder of Warwick's army, and the united forces entered the metropolis amidst the applause of the people of the city and of the surrounding provinces. Edward laid his claim before a council of lords, and on the 4th of March 1461 he was proclaimed king by the style and title of Edward IV.

But notwithstanding all her disasters, the queen remained inflexibly devoted to her purpose. She retired to the northern counties, where such numbers flocked to her standard that her army very soon amounted to sixty thousand men. Edward IV. was a voluptuary, but he never allowed his activity and vigilance to slacken. With Warwick and an army of forty thousand men he commenced his march to the north. The hostile forces met at Towton, in the county of York, on the 29th of March 1461, and an obstinate engagement ensued, which continued during the night, and was renewed with the utmost fierceness on the following morning. The queen's army was totally defeated, and, as quarter was given on neither side, the slaughter was dreadful. Between thirty and forty thousand persons perished in these two bloody days. After this disaster the queen with her husband took refuge in Scotland, whilst Edward returned to the metropolis, where he was crowned on the 29th of June 1461. For three years Edward IV. possessed the throne without any serious insurrection having taken place on the part of the Lancastrians. But during this period Queen Margaret was making strenuous exertions both in France and Scotland to raise a force capable of taking the field against Edward. Having collected a small army, she made an incursion into England, but after several indecisive skirmishes she was totally defeated at Hexham, in Northumberland, on the 17th of May 1464. The Duke of Somerset, who commanded for her, was beheaded; and a number of gentlemen were also executed at York, with little form of law or justice.

By these repeated misfortunes the house of Lancaster became so effectually reduced that Margaret was obliged to separate from her husband, and both were compelled to seek their safety in individual flight. The king was still protected by some of his friends, who conveyed him to Lancashire, where he was at last discovered, and consigned to the Tower as a prisoner. The queen made her escape through Scotland into France, along with her son, and his famous preceptor Sir John Fortescue.

In the mean time King Edward vigorously applied himself to the affairs of government. Feeling secure on the throne, he now also began to give way to the gratification of his amatory passions, to which he was exceedingly prone. In order to divert his mind from such debasing indulgences, the Earl of Warwick, hitherto his steady friend, advised him to marry. Edward consented, and the earl was appointed to negotiate a match with the Princess Bonne of Savoy. He was successful in his mission, but before the conclusion of the marriage treaty the king privately espoused a lady of whom he had become enamoured, and who resisted all his efforts to form an illicit connexion. This lady was Elizabeth, daughter of Sir Philip

Woodville, and relict of Sir John Grey, a Lancasterian, who had fallen at the second battle of St Albans. The parties were solemnly united in marriage on the 1st of May 1464, and the bride was acknowledged and in due time crowned. This transaction highly displeased Warwick, who afterwards became still more disgusted at the favour shown to the queen's party, his own and his sovereign's natural enemies. A plan of revenge was therefore set on foot, and a most powerful conspiracy was also formed against Edward. To accomplish his aim, Warwick not only employed his own influence, which was very extensive, but likewise that of the Duke of Clarence, Edward's brother, on whom the earl had conferred the hand of his daughter without the king's permission. The effects of Warwick's secret combination with Clarence, his own brother Montague, and the discontented nobility and gentry, soon began to appear. Sedition was fomented throughout the country, and a popular insurrection at last broke out in Yorkshire, where Robin of Redesdale, a hero amongst the moss troopers of the border, appeared at the head of sixty thousand men. The articles of their manifesto were principally directed against the king's counselors and the church.

Henry earl of Pembroke was sent against them with a body of seven or eight thousand men. He was joined by Lord Stafford with five thousand more troops, and the two commanders prepared to meet the insurgents. They at first received a repulse, but it was of no material importance. An unfortunate dispute, however, between Pembroke and Stafford, caused the latter to march off the field with his troops; and in a battle which immediately afterwards ensued, the royalists were cut to pieces, and their commander taken prisoner and beheaded.

The king, enraged at this, caused Stafford to be executed in a like summary manner. This event completed the disaffection of the king's followers, who now deserted him in thousands; and he himself was at last taken prisoner by Warwick and his friends; but this conquest embarrassed the confederated nobles. The detention of the king was not popular; and the military refused to act until he was released, which took place accordingly, and a reconciliation was effected. The truce was, however, of short duration. A new insurrection broke out in Lincolnshire, in which Warwick and Clarence were deeply involved. The rebels were commanded by Sir Robert Welles, son to a nobleman of the same name. Under an alleged charge of treason, the latter was beheaded by the king, who marched against the insurgents with his usual celerity, and gave them a total overthrow at Erpingham, in Rutlandshire, on the 12th of March 1469. Warwick and Clarence again attempted to entrap Edward, but having failed of success, they escaped to France.

Louis XI. openly espoused the cause of the malcontent barons, and effected a reconciliation between them and the fugitive Queen Margaret. Their mortal enmities were reconciled in common hatred of the king of England. A treaty was concluded, which stipulated that Edward should espouse Anne Neville, Warwick's daughter, and that they should combine their efforts to restore Henry to the throne of which he had been deprived. It was likewise agreed upon, that in case of failure of issue by the prince, the crown should descend to Clarence. After these preliminary arrangements, Warwick assembled a small force, and set sail for England, where he landed whilst Edward was in the north suppressing an insurrection which had there broken out. This seems to have been an artifice practised by a brother-in-law of Warwick's, who thus drew the incautious monarch to a distant part of the kingdom, and left the southern counties open to the invader. Warwick was a great favourite with the people, the subject of

History. popular ballads, which resounded his praise throughout every town in the kingdom. Thousands having flocked to his standard, he advanced upon London, and there proclaimed Henry VI. The usual activity of Edward seems to have forsaken him, or else his pernicious frivolities had alienated the affections of his troops, whose fidelity towards him likewise decreased as Warwick drew near to them. Edward was compelled to fly to Holland, Clarence and Warwick made their triumphal entry into the capital, and Henry was formally restored to regal authority. But those who had reinstated him had placed only a barren sceptre in his grasp, for the real power resided with them. Edward was pronounced an usurper, and all acts passed under his sanction were repealed. The crown was settled on the male issue of Henry VI., and in default of such issue, on the Duke of Clarence and the heirs of his body. But Edward's party was not yet destroyed. After an absence of nine months, he, seconded by a small body of troops granted him by the Duke of Burgundy, made a descent at Ravenspur in Yorkshire. At first he met with little success; but his army increasing on his march, he was soon in a condition to appear before the capital, which instantly opened its gates to receive him.

The unfortunate Henry was thus again plucked from the throne; and the hopes of Warwick were almost totally blasted by the defection of Clarence, Edward's brother. He however advanced to within about ten miles of London, resolving to wait the approach of Edward, and took a position at Barnet, where, on the 14th of April 1471, a battle was fought, more remarkable for its consequences than for the number of the slain or the obstinacy of the combatants. Considering the animosity existing between the parties, the general slaughter was unusually small; but amongst the fallen were Warwick and his brother Montague; and the death of the first of these individuals was of far more importance to Edward than the victory which he had gained. It broke the charm which associated with his name the certainty of victory and success to the cause which he espoused. On account of the remarkable transactions in which he had been engaged, he received the appellation of "the king-maker." His death also destroyed the greatness of the house of Neville.

At this time the queen had just returned with her son from France, where she had been soliciting supplies. She had scarcely time to refresh herself from the fatigues of the voyage, when she received the fatal news of the death of Warwick, and the total destruction of his forces. All her resolution was unable to support her under this calamity, and she sunk to the ground in despair. Upon recovering herself, she took sanctuary in the Abbey of Beaulieu in Hampshire, where she still found friends ready to assist her. Tudor earl of Pembroke, Courtenay earl of Devonshire, the Lords Wenlock and St John, with some other men of rank, encouraged her yet to hope for success, and promised to stand by her to the last. On this assurance she resumed the undaunted bearing which was natural to her, and, advancing through the counties of Devon, Somerset, and Gloucester, collected a considerable army. The hostile forces came in sight of each other at Tewkesbury on the 14th of May 1471, where a battle was fought, which decided this sanguinary war. The queen's army was totally defeated; the Earl of Devonshire and Lord Wenlock were slain in the conflict; the Duke of Somerset, and about twenty other persons of distinction, who had taken

shelter in a church, were surrounded, dragged forth, and immediately beheaded; about three thousand of their soldiers fell in battle, and the rest were entirely dispersed. Queen Margaret and her son were taken prisoners, and brought to the king, who asked the prince how he dared to invade his dominions. The youth replied that he came hither to claim his just inheritance; upon which Edward struck him on the face with his gauntlet. The Dukes of Clarence and Gloucester, Lord Hastings, and Sir Thomas Gray, taking this blow as a signal for further violence, hurried the prince into the next apartment, and there, it is said, dispatched him.1 Margaret was thrown into the Tower along with her husband Henry, who there closed his unhappy career a few days afterwards. The Duke of Gloucester has been charged with his murder, but there is no proof of the fact.2 Margaret was ransomed by the king of France in 1475, for fifty thousand crowns. She survived her deliverance about seven years, during which time she lived in France, withdrawn from the tumults of state.

Edward being now freed from all his enemies, began to inflict punishment on those who had formerly appeared against him. Amongst the cruelties which he committed, that on his brother the Duke of Clarence was the most remarkable. They had been formally reconciled to each other; but this hollow truce to fraternal animosity was broken by a singular incident. Whilst the king was one day hunting in the park of one Burdett, a servant of the duke, he killed a white buck which was a great favourite of the owner. Burdett, concerned at the loss, broke into a transport of rage, and declared that he wished the horns of the deer were in the belly of the person who advised the king to that insult. For this exclamation Burdett was tried for his life, and executed at Tyburn. Clarence exclaimed against this sentence as iniquitous, for which he was attainted of treason, and charged with sorcery, in order to give to Burdett's expressions the dignity of necromantic imprecation. Sentence of death was pronounced against him; but the king having some repugnance to order the public execution of a brother, he was dispatched in private. There was a rumour prevalent at the time that he was drowned in a butt of malmsey wine, to which he is said to have been very partial; but there is no proof that his murder was effected in this manner.

The remainder of Edward IV.'s reign is unimportant. A war with France, which followed the civil wars in England, terminated in 1475 without being characterized by any memorable events. But the foolish idea of aggrandisement in France was still popular with the people, and Edward employed a considerable portion of the latter years of his reign in making apparent preparations for reviving the pretensions of his predecessors to the crown of that country. It does not appear, however, that he ever had any intention of carrying his threats into execution. Edward died on the 9th of April 1483, in the forty-second year of his age and twenty-first of his reign, calculating from the period of his first assuming the crown. In the character of Edward IV. we see a combination by no means singular of great and vicious qualities. As a commander he possessed decision, promptitude, daring, and valour, in a remarkable degree; in these respects indeed he surpassed all his competitors. But the laurels which he won in the field were stained by many cool-blooded atrocities, which altogether deprive the individual who perpe-

1 Such is the account commonly given of the death of this scion of the house of Lancaster. It is worthy of remark, however, that the Harleian manuscript not only gives no sanction to this popular tale, but expressly declares that the prince was slain in the field.

2 A reader of the present day who can calmly dispossess his mind of the poetical associations with which the subject is invested, will probably agree with a historian who has minutely investigated the subject, that Gloucester is to be excused from the charge of murder in this case. (See Turner's History of England, vol. II. p. 375.)

History. trated them of any claim to real greatness. He was cruel and faithless, and no barrier was capable of restraining him from indulging in sensual gratifications. Besides five daughters, he left two sons; Edward prince of Wales, his successor, then in his twelfth year; and Richard duke of York, then in his eleventh year.

On the death of Edward IV. the kingdom was divided into new factions; and those of the queen's family, who, during the last reign, had come into power, were obnoxious to the old nobility, who looked upon them as upstarts and inferiors. The king had endeavoured to prevent these animosities proceeding to any extent, by desiring on his death-bed that his brother Richard duke of Gloucester should be entrusted with the regency; and he recommended peace and unanimity during the minority of his son. But the monarch was no sooner dead than the former resentment between the two parties burst forth with violence; and the Duke of Gloucester, to whom it is customary to attribute every bad quality, resolved to profit by their contentions. As soon as he learned the tidings of his brother's death, he proceeded to Ludlow Castle, where Prince Edward then was under the charge of Lord Rivers, his uncle by the mother's side. This nobleman was charged by Gloucester with having instilled into the mind of his young ward unfavourable opinions of the protector, and under this groundless accusation he was put into confinement, along with others of the Woodville family. Gloucester, with Buckingham, his noted accomplice, marched to London with Prince Edward, and the other young prince's person having also been secured, both of them were consigned to the Tower, under the specious pretext that they would there be safe from the machinations of their enemies. The coronation was postponed from the 4th of May till the 22d of June, so that the secret purposes of the protector began to be unveiled; and it would seem probable that Hastings and Stanley, the friends of the late king, began to show some misgivings as to the designs of Richard. At a council held in the Tower on the 13th of June 1483, Hastings was seized, and soon afterwards executed upon a log of timber, without any form of trial. Stanley and other obnoxious lords were thrown into various dungeons; and on the same day Earl Rivers and some others were executed at Pomfret Castle, on the most unjust pretences of treason.

The protector now considered himself as in a situation to lay claim to the throne. He used his utmost endeavours to inspire the people with a notion of the illegitimate birth of the late king, and that his children were not only illegitimate on this account, but also because their father had been secretly wedded to Elinor Butler previously to the solemnization of marriage between him and Elizabeth Woodville. Shaw, a popular preacher, was hired to harangue the people to this effect from St Paul's cross. The number of Edward's amours gave some plausibility to these rumours, and prepared the minds of the people for the usurpation of the crown by Richard. Two days afterwards Buckingham harangued the populace in much the same manner as Shaw; and on the 25th of June 1483, that nobleman presented Richard with a parchment purporting to be a declaration of the estates of parliament in favour of the protector, as the only legitimate prince of the house of York. Richard, with his usual dissimulation, evinced some hesitation upon the point; but on the following day he took possession of the crown, and from the 26th of June 1483 is accordingly dated the commencement of his reign.

The only obstacles which now interposed between Richard and the peaceful possession of the crown were his two nephews, whom he still kept in the Tower, for the sake of

safety, as he miscalled their imprisonment. During a progress through the kingdom a confederacy was formed against him, and meetings were held, which had for their object the liberation of the princes. But this was unnecessary, as they had been privately dispatched by the king's orders. The manner of their death was kept a profound secret, and it is very doubtful if even yet we are acquainted with the real facts. The most probable account, however, is, that Richard having tampered in vain with Brackenbury, the governor of the Tower, to put them to death, found a ready instrument for the execution of his diabolical purpose in Sir James Tyrrel, his master of the horse. This individual, with two other ruffianly associates, having obtained access during the night to the apartment of the princes, smothered them as they lay asleep, and buried their bodies at the foot of the staircase.

Richard having thus secured himself on the throne, attempted to strengthen his interest by means of foreign alliances, and also by procuring the favour of the clergy at home; but he found his power threatened from a quarter where he least expected an attack. The Duke of Buckingham, who had been so instrumental in raising him to the throne, either thinking his services inadequately rewarded, or for some other causes which cannot now be ascertained, instigated a revolt against Richard. The horror with which the intelligence of the midnight murder in the Tower was received prepared the public mind for seconding the designs of Buckingham, who, with several other leading individuals in the kingdom, now declared for Henry, the young Earl of Richmond, in opposition to Richard. The Earl, at this period an exile in Brittany, was considered as the chief of the Lancasterian party. His right to the crown by succession was, however, very equivocal; but the cruel behaviour of Richard inclined the people generally to favour his pretensions; and, in order to give an additional strength to his title, a match was projected between him and the Princess Elizabeth, the eldest daughter of Edward IV., which, by uniting the two rival families, would put an end to those dissensions which had so long distracted the kingdom and deluged it with kindred blood. Messengers were accordingly dispatched to give him information of the conspiracy, which fortunately escaped the usual vigilance of Richard; and, in about a fortnight afterwards, Richmond returned an answer, which was no sooner communicated to his friends than it reached the ears of the king. The latter immediately summoned his adherents to join him with their retainers at Leicester; and after proclaiming Buckingham a traitor, he marched against him at the head of his army. In the mean time storms interrupted the voyage of Henry; and the army of Buckingham, dispirited by broken bridges and impassable currents, broke up and dispersed. A price was set upon the head of Buckingham, who fled, but was betrayed into the hands of Richard, and immediately put to death.

Richard, now emboldened by his success, employed every means of confirming his title to the throne, and destroying the plans of the exiles and malcontents. He summoned a parliament, the first which he had ventured to call together; and an act was passed declaring him undoubted king of the realm, and settling it upon his son Edward, prince of Wales. The marriage of Edward IV. with Elizabeth Woodville was declared null, and his son pronounced a bastard: then followed a severe bill of attainder, in which several noblemen, bishops, knights, and gentlemen, were deprived of their estates, honours, and rights.

But notwithstanding all the measures of severity adopted by Richard, he was seriously alarmed at the projected marriage between Henry of Richmond and the eldest

History. daughter of the late king. To defeat this project, therefore, now became the chief policy of the king. The princess was induced to quit her sanctuary and come under the protection of Richard, who probably had destined her for his son; but the death of that prince forced him to alter his plans, and secure her for himself. Lady Anne Neville, Richard's queen, was in infirm health, and this induced him secretly to make an offer of his hand to the young princess, which she agreed to accept. During the illness of Anne, Elizabeth discovered, it is said, an unnatural degree of impatience, and hinted her surprise at its duration; a most suspicious circumstance. Her apprehensions, however, were soon allayed. In less than a month the queen died; but her hopes of sharing the throne with Richard were not realized. The match was so very unpopular that the royal wooer was dissuaded from his purpose, and his attention was soon directed to another quarter.

The crimes of Richard had alienated the greater portion of the York party from his interests; and a union between Elizabeth and Henry, for the purpose of reconciling conflicting factions, became a topic of serious consideration. The latter prince again conceived the hopes of seizing the crown by another invasion of England; and having collected an army of three thousand men, he set sail from Harfleur early in August 1485, and landed at Milford Haven on the 6th of that month. Richard affected to hear the intelligence with joy; and displaying the vigilance and activity of his brother Edward, he marched from London on the 16th. His competitor had directed his march through the northern districts of Wales, a tract of country in the interest of the Stanleys. Both armies met at Bosworth in Leicestershire, on the 22d of August 1485, where a battle was fought, memorable for having restored tranquillity to the kingdom, which had so long been the theatre of sanguinary civil wars.

The army of Richmond amounted to about six thousand men, that of the king to nearly twice the number; and both prepared for the contest, equally confident of victory. For, notwithstanding the inferiority of Richmond's troops, he was secretly encouraged by the promises of Lord Stanley, who was hastening, with seven thousand men under his command, apparently to join the royalists, but really with the intention of siding with Henry. Stanley continued his march slowly; and on the morning of the battle he took up a neutral station on the wing of either host. The king entrusted his vanguard to the Duke of Norfolk, whilst that of Henry was assigned to the Earl of Oxford; and the two competitors for the crown placed themselves at the head of the main bodies of their respective armies. Richard, taking advantage of a marsh which covered his right flank, ordered a shower of arrows to be discharged into the adverse ranks, which for a moment threw them into confusion. He sent orders to Stanley to join him immediately; but the refusal of that nobleman to comply with his request shook his confidence and also that of his army, which now began to waver. To complete his dismay, he saw Stanley join the ranks of Henry, a circumstance which determined the fortune of the day. But, in order to retrieve it, Richard made a vigorous effort worthy of a better cause. Chancing to observe Henry in the midst of the conflict, he made a dash at him, determined to cut him down or perish in the attempt. He slew with his own hand Sir William Brandon, the bearer of the hostile standard, unhorsed Sir John Cheney, and was within a blow of his rival, when he was overpowered by numbers, struck to the ground, and immediately slain. After his fall resistance was hopeless, and his army broke up and dispersed. The crown which he wore on that day was taken up by Lord Stanley and placed on

Henry's head, who was instantly greeted with shouts of "Long live King Henry." Of Richard's army a considerable number were killed in the battle and pursuit, and amongst these were the Duke of Norfolk, and Lords Ferrers, Radcliff, and Brackenbury. The victors lost but few, and none of any note except their standard-bearer. To enhance their triumph, Lord Strange, the son of Stanley, whom Richard had ordered for execution before or during the conflict, escaped in the confusion and rejoined his father. The body of the tyrant was thrown carelessly across a horse and conducted to Leicester, where it was interred with small ceremony.

Of Richard's character little remains to be said. The crimes of which he was undoubtedly guilty almost remove him from the ranks of mankind, and class him with the most ferocious animals. The arguments which have been brought forward in modern times to prove his innocence are inconclusive, and scarcely to be named, when confronted with the mass of evidence which may be arrayed against him. His fall excited no regret, except amongst a few of his partizans, the slaves of his despotic will. How could it? The death of his unoffending nephews must have still been fresh in the memory of his subjects.

The quarrel between the houses of York and Lancaster was now brought to a conclusion. In order to secure the blessings of peace and an undisputed succession, it was necessary for Henry at once to espouse Elizabeth, and, by so doing, to blend the white and the red roses together. There is no concealing the fact that his title to the crown was of a very ambiguous description. It rested on three grounds, first, his marriage with Elizabeth; secondly, his descent from the house of Lancaster; and thirdly, the right of conquest. According to the sagacious Bacon, "he rested on the title of Lancaster in the main, using the marriage and the victory as supporters." But this main support was not a valid one; for even allowing his descent from John of Gaunt to have been legitimate, he was not the nearest descendant of that prince's children. There were several who had claims superior to his; but the individual whom Henry looked upon with peculiar jealousy was Edward Plantagenet, son of the late Duke of Clarence. After the death of this prince's father, Richard sent for him to court, and created him Earl of Warwick, the title borne by his grandfather; but fearing that he might afterwards become a dangerous competitor, Richard had him conveyed to a distant fortress; and one of the first acts of Henry was to change his place of confinement, and put him in the Tower, as a prison of greater security. Elizabeth, who had been his fellow-captive, was ordered to be conducted to the house of her mother in London, whilst Henry himself leisurely followed her to the capital. He was received there with every demonstration of joy, and greeted by the inhabitants as the deliverer of his country. His coronation was delayed for a time, by the breaking out of a dreadful disease, called from its predominant symptom the sweating sickness. But at the end of a month its virulence began to abate, and Henry was crowned on the 30th of October 1485. To heighten the splendour of the ceremony, he bestowed the rank of knights-banneret on twelve persons, and conferred peerages on three. Jasper earl of Pembroke, his uncle, he created Duke of Bedford; Thomas, Lord Stanley, his father-in-law, Earl of Derby; and Edward Courtenay, Earl of Devonshire. At the coronation likewise appeared a new institution, which the king had established for personal security as well as pomp; a band of fifty archers, who were denominated yeomen of the guard. But lest the people should take umbrage at this step, as if it implied a diffidence in their loyalty, he declared the institution to be perpetual. The ceremony of the

History. coronation was performed by Cardinal Bouchier, archbishop of Canterbury. On the 18th of January 1486, Henry was united to the Princess Elizabeth; and his marriage was celebrated at London with even a greater appearance of joy than either his first entry or his coronation.

The reign of Henry VII. was for several years disturbed by plots and insurrections. The people, by a long course of civil war, had become so turbulent and factious, that no governor could rule, nor was any king likely to please them. The violent animosity expressed by this monarch, however, against the house of York, may justly be considered as one of the causes of the extreme proneness to rebellion which was manifested amongst his subjects. Instead of endeavouring to conciliate the affection of the opposite party, he invariably strove to quell them by force and violence. For this purpose, soon after his accession he took a journey to the north of England, where the Yorkists were very numerous, trusting that his presence might overawe them. On his way thither he received intelligence of an insurrection against him, headed by Viscount Lovel, with Sir Henry Stafford and his brother Thomas. The two latter had raised an army, and were marching to besiege the city of Worcester; whilst Lovel was hastening to their assistance with a body of several thousand men. But they were induced to disperse by the offer of a general pardon. Lovel withdrew from his troops, who immediately gave in their submission to the king. The Staffords took refuge in the church of Colnham, near Abingdon; but they were dragged from this sanctuary, as it was found not to possess the privilege of sheltering rebels. The elder brother was executed at Tyburn, but the younger one received a pardon.

Henry returned from his northern tour, and soon afterwards his queen presented him with a son, whom he named Arthur, in honour of the supposed progenitor of the house of Tudor, the renowned King Arthur; but Henry was not permitted to enjoy undisturbed security. He never was at any time popular except amongst his own party; and in the northern counties, particularly, the late King Richard was remembered and spoken of with regret. Henry was hated for his success, and even charged with having put to death the young Earl of Warwick, whom he had imprisoned, as has already been mentioned. It was necessary for the king to exercise extreme caution, on account of the dangers which surrounded him; and hence he is described as having been mysterious and impenetrable. Sir Thomas More remarks that one thing was frequently pretended whilst another was meant; and Bacon says that the king had a fashion rather to create doubts than assurance. The birth of his son seems to have roused his enemies to make some exertions against him; and being destitute of any chief of sufficient ability round whom insurgents might rally with any hope of success, they were urged to make one of the most extraordinary attempts recorded in history. One Richard Simons, a subtle priest of Oxford, took under his charge Lambert Symnel, the son of a tradesman belonging to the same town. The boy was about eleven years of age, comely, and not without dignity and grace in his person. With this individual, who was well tutored to perform the extraordinary part which was to be assigned him, the churchman landed in Ireland, and presented him to the lord-deputy of the county as Edward Plantagenet, earl of Warwick, who had made his escape from the Tower. It seems to have been at first the design of the fabricators of this singular deception to have presented him to the public as the younger of the princes who had been put to death by Richard in the Tower. In order to further this scheme, a report was circulated that one of these princes had made his escape from his assassins. Why this plan should have been changed, and the youthful

impostor seduced to personate an individual still living, it is difficult to conjecture; but such is the fact. The Earl of Kildare, to whom he was presented in Ireland, swallowed the bait, and allowed the claims of Symnel without discussion. This nobleman was a zealous adherent of the house of York; and the little colony called the English Pale, long ruled by that party, retained all its ancient attachments. A belief in the identity of Symnel with the Earl of Warwick became universal, both amongst the nobility and the people. He was lodged in the castle of Dublin; the inhabitants universally took an oath of allegiance to him, as the true descendant of the Plantagenets; he was crowned with a diadem taken from the statue of the blessed virgin, and proclaimed king by the title of Edward VI.

Such an unexpected event so alarmed Henry that he would have gone over to Ireland in person to quell the rebellion, had he not dreaded the machinations of the queen dowager in his absence. To prevent any thing of this kind from occurring, it was resolved to confine her for life in a monastery, under pretence, however, that it was done on account of her having formerly delivered up the princess her daughter to King Richard. The royal dame murmured at the severity of her sentence; but the king persisted in his resolution, and she remained in confinement till her death, which did not take place till some years afterwards.

The next measure was to exhibit the person of Warwick to the people. That prince was accordingly taken from the Tower, and conducted through the principal streets of London; after which the procession moved to St Paul's, where great numbers were assembled to see him. Still, however, the fictitious Warwick prospered in Ireland, and being furnished by the Duchess of Burgundy with a body of two thousand veteran Germans, under the command of Martin Swart, a brave and experienced officer, the invasion of England was determined upon. He landed in Lancashire, whence he marched towards York, expecting that the country people would rally round his standard during his march. But in this he was disappointed; the people were unwilling to join a body of foreigners, and were besides kept in awe by the reputation of Henry. Lord Lincoln, therefore, who commanded the rebel army, determined to bring the matter to a speedy issue. Accordingly he met the royalists at Stoke, in the county of Nottingham, and an obstinate engagement took place, which terminated in Henry obtaining a complete victory. Lord Lincoln, with four thousand soldiers, perished in the action; and Symnel with his tutor Simons were taken prisoners. Simons being a priest, could not be tried by the civil power, and was only committed to close confinement. Symnel was pardoned, and made a scullion in the king's kitchen, whence he was afterwards advanced to the rank of falconer, in which capacity he died. Thus ended this most absurdly planned and injudiciously executed revolt; but it was not destitute of good results. It taught the king that the house of York was not to be trampled upon with impunity; for to such an extent had his antipathy to the branches of that family and its adherents been carried, that it was said his own queen was not exempt from the common odium which was thrown upon them. It was asked by the people, why was she, the rightful heir to the throne, not crowned, and invested with the usual insignia of royalty? Henry silenced these rumours by ordering her coronation; and from that period she shared with him the usual honours of royalty.

Having thus to a great extent established his authority at home, he thought of diverting the minds of his subjects from domestic insurrection to foreign enterprise. He

History. does not appear, however, to have had any intention of prosecuting a serious war in a distant country, but he used the pretext as a means of aggrandising himself. A parliament was summoned, which granted the king a considerable sum for prosecuting the war in Bretagne, the only great fief of the French crown which still retained its own prince and its ancient constitution; by force, by policy, or by good fortune, the French monarchs had obtained possession of all the others. But of the supply granted by parliament, only a small part could be raised. The northern counties not only refused payment of their proportion, but rose in revolt, and murdered the Earl of Northumberland, the king's lieutenant. The insurrection, however, was quickly suppressed by the Earl of Surrey. John a Chambre, one of the ringleaders, suffered at York; and Sir John Egremont, the other, escaped to the Duchy of Burgundy, where he had leisure to hatch new schemes of rebellion. The money which Henry by this means obtained, and also in consequence of another grant from parliament, was quietly deposited in his coffers. For although he collected a considerable army, with which he proceeded to Calais, the king had other objects than victory and conquest in view. Some months previously to his landing on the Continent, he had commissioned the governor of Calais to negotiate a peace and alliance with Charles of France, which was formally concluded. To the French monarch the possession of Bretagne was an important object; and Henry, naturally avaricious, agreed to accept about £200,000 as a reimbursement for the expenses of the expedition. It was also stipulated that the king of France should pay to him and his heirs an annual pension of 25,000 crowns.

But Henry's hopes of a tranquil possession of the crown of England were doomed to perpetual disappointment. His reign was now to be disturbed by one of the most mysterious personages to be met with in English history. About the time when war was declared against France, a pretender to the regal dignity appeared in Ireland, which seems to have been the natural soil for these spurious shoots of royalty. This impostor passed under the name of Perkin Warbeck, but asserted himself to be Richard duke of York, the second son of Edward IV. who, it was alleged, had escaped from the Tower when his brother was murdered. Previously to his appearance in Ireland, he had been heard of at the court of Margaret, his supposed aunt, who interested herself to the utmost in his favour, and fondly styled him the White Rose of England. But he was compelled to quit Burgundy; for Henry had dispatched some ambassadors to the sovereign of that country, with secret instructions to demand either the person of the impostor, or his expulsion from the territories of the duke. Warbeck was received with open arms in Ireland, for the Irish were fanatically attached to the house of York. Several noblemen who had credulously believed in the fraud of Symmel, from which they had just escaped, gave countenance to his pretensions. A deputation was sent to Flanders to ascertain his history; but they had been corrupted by Henry before their landing in Burgundy, and they returned fraught with charges of treason against the disaffected nobility. Some of the most eminent malcontent Yorkists were put to death, and amongst the rest Sir William Stanley, lord-chamberlain, to whom the king had owed his life on Bosworth field. His fate was most mysterious, and the conduct of Henry upon this occasion is open to the most odious suspicions. Sir Robert Clifford, the individual whose information led to these executions, was a confidential Yorkist; and his behaviour towards his own party, so different from what might have been expected, tended to dissolve the ties which subsisted between it and the malcontent exiles.

History. Three years had now elapsed since the pretender had set forth his claim, and during that period he had never attempted to establish it by legal proof. He began to feel that he stood upon delicate ground, and resolved at once to enforce his pretended right by an appeal to the sword. With a small force collected in Flanders (for he had been for some time absent from Ireland) he made a descent in the neighbourhood of Deal; but the adventurers were attacked by the inhabitants, and all of them driven back to their vessels, or taken prisoners. Warbeck himself made his escape, and returned in despair to Flanders. From this country he was ejected at the instigation of Henry; and after vainly attempting to gain a footing in Ireland, he set sail for Scotland, where he was well received by the young king, who professed a conviction in the justice of his title. King James conferred upon him the hand of Lady Catherine Gordon, a near kinswoman of his own. The adventurer's fortunes being thus suddenly elevated, he, along with the king of Scotland, advanced into England; but not a native sword was unsheathed in favour of the White Rose. The enthusiasm which had been excited amongst the Scots by his first appearance in their country had begun to decline, and during a long truce, which served all the purposes of a treaty of peace between James and Henry, it was agreed to by the former that he should induce Warbeck to quit Scotland. The adventurer, with a few adherents, accordingly departed, and, after touching once more at Cork, and in vain soliciting the aid of Earl Desmond, steered for Cornwall, where he landed on the 7th of September 1497.

His arrival in this part of the country was a politic step, for an attempt to raise a tax there some time before gave rise to an insurrection, which, although quelled, left behind heartburnings and discontent. A considerable body of Cornish men joined his standard, and before he reached Exeter his army amounted to six thousand men. But the king arrived, and preparations were made for a battle; the heart of the pretender, however, failed him at the sight of the royal standard, and instead of risking an engagement for the crown, he withdrew during the night, and entered his name in the sanctuary of Beaulieu in Hampshire. His followers laid down their arms to the king, and his wife also submitted to his authority, and was placed near the person of the queen. From his sanctuary the fugitive was removed by the king to London, where he was ordered to keep within the precincts of the palace. He contrived, however, to make his escape, but, despairing of getting out of the country, surrendered himself to the prior of the monastery of Shene. The monk contrived to prevail with the king to spare his life; but he was condemned to stand in the stocks and make a public confession of his imposture, after which he was committed to the Tower. In this fortress he met with a singular companion, the real Earl of Warwick, who had now been a prisoner for the period of fourteen years. His life had thus been passed in cheerless captivity, for no other offence than that of being the sole survivor of the male descendants of Edward III. The two contrived a means of escape, but they were discovered. Warbeck was executed at Tyburn; and the son of Clarence having been arraigned for high treason, was condemned to death and beheaded on the 28th of November 1499. This deed was worthy of Richard III. It was a cool-blooded murder, aggravated by circumstances; for the harmless and joyless victim was, from his long confinement, reduced to a state of idiocy. The human soul shudders to think of such atrocities, perpetrated in defiance alike of justice and humanity. From the guilt of shedding innocent blood it is impossible to purify the name of Henry VII.

In 1501, the king's eldest son Arthur was married to

History. the Infanta Catherine of Spain; but he survived the marriage only a few months, having died on the 2d of April following. It was agreed upon a short while afterwards, by the parents of the parties, that the widow of the late prince should be espoused by Henry's next son, now Prince of Wales, and afterwards Henry VIII. The union was sanctioned by the pope, who granted a bull, dispensing with any impediment which their affinity might otherwise cause. The eldest daughter of King Henry was conferred upon James IV. of Scotland; an important union, as from this stock sprung all the sovereigns who have since reigned in Great Britain. King Henry, in his own time, was called the Solomon of England; and, without allowing him to possess undisputed claims to so high-sounding a title, the saying recorded of him regarding the Scottish marriage displays no common foresight and sagacity. When some of his counsellors objected to it, on the ground that the kingdom might thereby fall to the king of Scotland, he answered, "Scotland would then become an accession to England, not England to Scotland; the greater would draw the less; it is a safer union for England than one with France."

In the latter part of this king's reign, his economy, which had always been very exact, degenerated into avarice, and his oppressions at last became severe. In Empson and Dudley he possessed two ministers, who did all that inventive minds could suggest, and hearts of stone perform, to gratify a rapacity, which fed with equal appetite on friend and foe. We are informed by one of the wisest of historians and of men, that these individuals had no reputation, otherwise than by servilely following his bent, and that they "shaped his way to those extremities for which himself was touched with remorse at his death."2 The hoard which the king had amassed by their unjust extortions, and which was mostly kept in "secret places at Richmond," is said to have amounted to nearly £16,000,000 of our present money. This amount of specie is so enormous as to warrant a conviction that it has been greatly exaggerated. It may be doubted whether the whole circulating medium of the country at that period amounted to the sum which the avaricious monarch is said to have accumulated.

Henry, who had enjoyed an uncommon share of health during his life, was at fifty-two years of age attacked by severe indisposition. He died on the 21st of April 1509, in the twenty-fourth year of his reign, which, although perpetually disturbed by domestic insurrections, was upon the whole prosperous. He was interred in the chapel at Westminster, which still bears his name; one of the noblest trophies of architectural genius produced in any age, and which confers peculiar distinction upon that in which it was erected. There are many acts of Henry's administration, and some of these have already been particularised, which cannot be related but to his discredit. He was mean, sordid, and unamiable in his nature. No tenderness softened his rigid nature, if we except that which he evinced towards his mother; a virtue, however, too common to be praised even in a king. We see no qualities about the man which inspires us with regard for him; but there are many virtues to admire in the ruler. He favoured every national improvement; and, though penurious to excess in ordinary or essentially private matters, he was munificent in public works. He greatly improved the laws of the realm. With respect to these, Lord Bacon remarks, with his usual clearness and sagacity, "his laws are deep, not vulgar; not made upon the spur of a particular occasion, for the present, but acts of prudence for the future, to

make the estate of his people still more happy, after the manner of the legislators in ancient and heroic times." History He manifested great regard for trade, as is evinced by his excellent laws for promoting it, and by the extended commercial intercourse of the country. He accepted the offer of Columbus to make that most memorable of voyages, in which he lifted the veil that covered a grand division of the globe, and would have patronized it if he had not been forestalled by Isabella. He gave his sanction to Cabot's celebrated voyage (see CABOT), and fitted out a ship to join the expedition. In fine, the country improved under his government, and became steadily attached to his family.

Henry VIII. son of the preceding monarch, ascended the throne on the 22d of April 1509, being then in the eighteenth year of his age. He assumed the reins of government under most auspicious circumstances. His title was undisputed; his treasury was well stocked; commerce was in a flourishing condition; and the kingdom, which now may be supposed to have looked to the youthful monarch with hope and indulgence, was at peace with every foreign power, and quiet in itself. He was prepossessing in person, accomplished in mind, and adroit in every martial and fashionable exercise. But these advantages belonged to an individual whose heart was usurped by debasing passions, and whose mind was cast in the true mould of despotism.

On the 6th of June 1509, Henry and Catherine were finally united in wedlock, and on the 24th of the same month they were crowned with great splendour. One of Henry's first acts was to bring Empson and Dudley, the obnoxious ministers of his father, to trial. As a capital accusation could not be brought against them for merely executing the will of the late king, it was found necessary to indict them for a conspiracy to seize upon London with an armed force during the last illness of Henry. Of this charge, absurd and incredible as it appears to be, these individuals were convicted; and though it seems probable that the king would have been satisfied with imprisonment for life, yet so clamorous were the people for the blood of the culprits, that he was compelled to sign a warrant for their execution, which took place on Tower Hill.

In 1511, Henry entered into a league with Pope Julius II., Ferdinand king of Spain, and other continental powers, against Louis XII. of France. In this alliance the king of England was not a deeply interested individual; but his vanity was flattered with the idea of receiving the title of Most Christian Majesty, which was promised to him by the pope. The object which the confederates had in view was to wrest from Louis some valuable provinces which he had obtained in Italy; and although Henry had no hope of sharing the spoil with them in this quarter, yet the occupation of the French monarch in schemes of aggrandisement beyond the Alps afforded an opportunity to the English of invading France, and reviving the old chimera of conquering that country. The point, whether England should aim at continental dominions, was debated in parliament; and the arguments against it greatly preponderated. But the vanity of Henry was too much flattered to relinquish the scheme. He sent an ambassador to demand of Louis the ancient patrimony of the English crown in France, and this being refused, war was denounced. Parliament granted a supply, and an army was equipped and sent into Spain. But this expedition was attended with no success, and the troops, dispirited and mutinous, returned to England towards the close of 1512. On the north-western frontier of France, however, the arms of Henry were triumphant, and also in Scotland,

1 Bacon, iii. 409.

2 Ibid. iii. 379.

History. which had been tempted by French councils to invade England. James IV. with a considerable army under his command, was met by the Earl of Surrey at Flodden, where a bloody battle was fought, in which the Scots were totally routed, and their king, with the greater portion of his nobility, perished. (See SCOTLAND.) Henry received the news of this victory at Tournay, which he had invested, after having demolished Terouanne. The latter city opened its gates to him in eight days; but all parties being now disposed for peace, a general treaty was concluded in August 1514.

With regard to the administration of government in England, when Henry mounted the throne, the leading ministers in the cabinet were, Howard, earl of Surrey, lord treasurer; and Fox, bishop of Winchester, lord privy seal. Amongst the inferior dependents of the court there now appeared an individual, whose ambition and talent enabled him speedily to supplant every competitor. This was Thomas, afterwards Cardinal Wolsey, who, although only the son of a burgess of Ipswich, gradually raised himself to the first offices of state. (See WOLSEY.) His preferment had been rapid beyond all precedent, and this was not likely to be forgiven by an envious world. From the year 1513 to 1515, he had passed through the various gradations, from being bishop of Tournay, to the honours of the cardinalate, and he succeeded Archbishop Warham in the office of chancellor. With respect to the manner in which he executed his duty as a high public functionary, Sir James Mackintosh remarks, that "his administration of justice as chancellor has been celebrated by those who forget how simple the functions of that office then were; and his rigid enforcement of criminal justice appears only to have been a part of that harsh but perhaps needful process by which the Tudor princes rather extirpated than punished criminals, in order to reclaim the people from the long license of civil wars. As he was chiefly occupied in enriching and aggrandizing himself, or in displaying his power and wealth, objects which are to be promoted either by foreign connections, or by favour at court, it is impossible to determine what share of the merit or demerit of internal legislation ought to be allotted to him. His part in the death of the Duke of Buckingham was his most conspicuous crime; yet, after all, it is probable that he was no worse than his contemporary statesmen. The circumstance most favourable to him is the attachment of dependents."1

On the death of Maximilian, which happened towards the end of the year 1519, Henry, along with the kings of France and Spain, became a candidate for the imperial throne. The Spanish monarch was the successful competitor, and, to soothe the wounded pride of Henry, he paid him a visit of ceremony at Dover. His principal design in this was to persuade Henry to abandon a projected meeting which was to take place between him and the king of France, the wily emperor dreading that such an interview might be fraught with danger to himself. He was unsuccessful, however, and the two monarchs met between Ardres and Guines in 1520. The place where this meeting was held has been long celebrated under the name of the Field of the Cloth of Gold. The pomp and parade, the tournaments and other sports of the age, exhibited upon the occasion, were on the grandest scale, and peculiarly calculated to delight the young king of England, a creature of impulse, and one who sacrificed policy to temper, and interest to passion. It was thus that the continental monarchs flattered his foibles, and ingratiated themselves into his favour.

History. About the same time a crime was perpetrated, in the guilt of which both Henry and his minister Wolsey have been implicated; we mean the execution of Edward Stafford, duke of Buckingham. This nobleman was descended from the youngest son of Edward III.; and the principal accusation brought against him was, that he had tampered with a priest who laid claim to the gift of prophecy, and who had foretold that he would yet ascend the throne in virtue of his descent. Several other charges equally absurd, and not amounting to an overt act of high treason, were brought against him; he was tried by a jury of peers, condemned to death, and beheaded on the 17th of May 1521. Upon this occasion the populace vented their indignation against Wolsey, whose subtle policy had brought the sufferer to the scaffold, by loud cries of "the butcher's son."

Wolsey, however, continued to rule with unabated sway from 1521 till 1527. This period is not distinguished by any events of importance, if we except the opposition which the House of Commons offered to the minister in his attempts to raise supplies. That body obstinately disputed these grants, and attempts were made to raise money by the expedients of forced loans and pretended benevolences, which the legislature had already condemned. But these attempts produced a small supply and a great deal of discontent. Wolsey, notwithstanding his unwearied exertions in behalf of his master, never felt himself perfectly secure in his elevated situation. The capricious and tyrannical temper of Henry forbade his ministers to be at ease in any place of trust near his person. The fall of Wolsey seems always to have appeared to himself as an event of very likely occurrence, and these gloomy forebodings were at last realized. The cause of the rupture between the king and him was the divorce of Queen Catherine, which the former had begun to project. But the fall of Wolsey was not the only event connected with Henry's divorce; it ultimately led to one of the most memorable transactions in the history of England, namely, the separation of that country from the communion of the church of Rome.

The doctrines of the reformation, propagated by Luther in 1517, had gained considerable ground in England, and many professed a belief in them, notwithstanding the severe persecution which had been carried on against heretics during some of the preceding reigns. The papal authority, though still very great, had in the space of ten years declined considerably; but a detail of the circumstances connected with this subject is not required in this place. It may be noticed in general, that the reformation in England was facilitated by the undeniable corruption of the clergy, and the experience which many individuals had of, and the partiality which they entertained for, the doctrines of Wickliff. The seed sown by that divine had never been destroyed; and if it did not show itself above ground, it was extending itself underneath, perpetuating a sort of dormant existence, and ready to spring up on the first propitious occasion. Besides, the marriage of King Henry was looked upon by many as in itself illegal, and only sanctified by a dispensation from the pope.

Whether Henry himself, during the early years of his reign, felt any scruples about the validity of his marriage, may reasonably be doubted; for no trace of any thing of the kind can be discovered in his public conduct till the year 1527. The queen was some years older than himself, and was now past the meridian of life. Her personal charms had decayed, and the heart of the royal sensualist could not be attracted by beauty that belonged purely

1 History of England, vol. ii. p. 121.

History. to the mind. She had born him several children, all of whom died in infancy except the Princess Mary, who survived both her parents, and afterwards ascended the throne. It is reported of the inconstant monarch, that he attributed the mortality in his family to the curse of heaven, which blighted his unnatural alliance with Catherine, his brother's widow. But there was another and more powerful circumstance which led him to contemplate a divorce from his queen; this was the love which he had contracted for Anne Boleyn. The charms of this lady had touched his fiery but not unsusceptible heart; and as his passion could not be gratified except by means of an alliance sanctioned by law, he set seriously to work for the purpose of removing the amiable partner of his throne and bed, and placing the youthful beauty in her stead. The secret intentions of the king having become to some extent public, he ventured to ask the opinions of the most eminent ecclesiastics upon the point. The dangers of a disputed succession, if the king should die without male issue, were brought forward as an urgent plea for taking the step which he had in view. He had also recourse to his theological lore, and certain religious scruples connected with his first marriage helped to give a colour of principle to his real desires, and at the same time to impart to them life and warmth. Some of the divines whose counsel was asked declared that no dispensation could authorize a marriage with the widow of a brother; which they proved from a passage in the Pentateuch. Others, who also founded their arguments upon a portion of Scripture, contended that the prohibition referred to by the opposite party was not universal, and might be dispensed with in the king's case, where the first marriage had been unproductive of issue. Cardinal Wolsey, who had a hazardous game to play, coincided with the former, and gave Henry hopes that his petition to the court of Rome would be successful. But Anne was not the individual whom the prelate had in his eye as a wife for the king. He was desirous of wedding his master to a French princess, and, we are informed, threw himself on his knees before Henry, and entreated him to desist from a project so unworthy of his birth as an alliance with the Boleyn family. But the pliant mind of the cardinal yielded to the impetuosity of his master and to the force of circumstances; and he found it necessary to atone for his indiscreet zeal by displaying redoubled activity to promote the marriage with the lady upon whom the king had fixed his affections. The illustrious Sir Thomas More declined to support the divorce, and Fisher bishop of Rochester acted with the same integrity.

A deputation was sent to Rome by Henry for the purpose of sounding Pope Clement upon the subject of the divorce. The pontiff was in a situation unfavourable to the success of the application; and although he was bound to the English monarch by the ties of gratitude, he declined giving an immediate assent to the proposition, but appointed two legates to hear and determine the validity of the first marriage of Henry. He also gave a solemn promise not to recall the commission, nor to do any act which should annul the judgment or prevent the progress of the trial. The pontiff was at this period engaged in a contest with the imperialists; but he at last concluded a treaty of alliance with the emperor, who appeared the only potentate capable of shielding him from his other enemies. The forensic disputes respecting the divorce still remained unsettled, and, from the date above mentioned, Clement took his final part against the degradation of the queen of England, who was an Austrian princess. But still, by ingenious delays and plausible formalities, he contrived to amuse Henry, whose power it was not his interest to treat with direct contempt. The patience of the Eng-

lish monarch, however, was now completely worn out by these fruitless attempts at negotiation, and he redoubled his entreaties to the pope to comply with his demands. Clement, in order to show a willingness to acquiesce in the wishes of Henry, sent over Cardinal Campeggio, who, either separately or in conjunction with Wolsey, was empowered to hear and determine the matrimonial suit. The legate at first attempted to dissuade Henry from pursuing the divorce; but being unsuccessful with the monarch, he next tried to persuade Catherine to embrace a religious life, in which he also failed. The popular feeling was against Henry, and he felt himself compelled to remove Anne Boleyn from court, where she had for some time resided. At a great council which he convoked, he declared that in prosecuting this matter he was solely actuated by a desire to know whether or not his only remaining child Mary was the rightful heir of the crown. On this occasion he made an appeal to the feelings and consciences of his hearers which affected them much; and the perplexities consequent upon the late proceedings afforded Campeggio an opportunity for putting off the decision of the question until he had obtained further instructions from Rome. Meanwhile Clement was seized with a dangerous illness, which retarded his answer, and is said to have revived in the ambitious mind of Wolsey a hope which he had before indulged in, of obtaining possession of the tiara. This occurred in the spring of 1529; and although the pope recovered from his sickness, his legate contrived from time to time to postpone the trial. On the 31st of May, however, the court of parliament met, and summoned the king and queen to meet on the 18th of June. The latter obeyed, but protested against the judges, and appealed to the pope. At the next session, on the refusal of the cardinals to admit the appeal, she rose, and in a calm and dignified manner threw herself at Henry's feet, imploring him in a truly eloquent address to desist from his intended purpose of repudiating her. It made a profound impression upon the audience, and even touched the cold heart of her husband. The legates carefully prolonged the trial until July, when a vacation from July to October took place, during which time all courts were bound to suspend their sittings; and, notwithstanding the importunities of the king, Campeggio contrived to get the suit removed to Rome. Agreeably to the instructions of Clement, Campeggio quitted England, and the pope summoned Henry to appear before him in forty days.

In these transactions Wolsey took no inconsiderable share, and the compliant manner in which he gave his consent to the suggestions of Campeggio excited the suspicions of the king, that his minister was playing a double game with him. The symptoms of approaching disgrace now became too palpable to escape the notice of the cardinal; for all parties joined either openly or privately to destroy him who had so long enjoyed the favour of the king. It was a singular coincidence that the friends both of Queen Catherine and Anne Boleyn were employed as instruments of his overthrow. On the 9th of October 1529 a prosecution was commenced against him for procuring bulls from Rome without the king's license. On the 17th of the same month the great seal was taken from him and given to Sir Thomas More. On the 1st of December the lords presented an address to the king, in which were embodied various articles of accusation against the cardinal; and notwithstanding that the more serious parts of the charge were refuted by his servant Thomas Cromwell, the court at last pronounced him to be beyond the protection of the law, and "that his lands, goods, and chattels were forfeited, and that his person was at the mercy of the king." Wolsey had confessed his offence against the statute of premunire, of which he was technically guilty,

History. inasmuch as he had received the bulls without a formal license. It is scarcely necessary to observe that the sentence pronounced was most unjust; for the bulls had been obtained with the consent and for the service of his ungrateful master, under whose eye they had been executed for years without a word being uttered as to the manner in which they had been obtained. But nothing could now save the cardinal. He was at once hurled from his place of pride and power, and fell, with his vast possessions, a helpless victim, into the hands of the king. But it would appear that, from habit perhaps, Henry still cherished a feeling of partiality for his old favourite, and sent him from time to time tokens of his esteem and regard. In February 1530 Wolsey was actually pardoned, and restored to his see of Winchester, and to some other emoluments. Even the great diocese of York was shortly afterwards restored; but at the moment when he was making magnificent preparations for his installation on the archiepiscopal throne, he was arrested at Cawood on a charge of high treason. His health was infirm, and during his journey from York he was seized with a dysentery, which confined him for some time at the seat of Lord Shrewsbury. As soon as he was able he mounted his mule and resumed the journey. But his strength rapidly declined, and he was compelled to take refuge in the abbey of Leicester, where he expired on the 30th of November 1530, in the sixtieth year of his age.

After the death of Wolsey, the king, by the advice of his ministers, had the legality of his marriage debated in all the universities of Europe. (See the article CRANMER.) By dint of money he succeeded in obtaining their votes in his favour, but not without a stubborn opposition. Backed by these judgments, Henry appealed to the pope; but Clement remained inflexible, and the king prepared to resist the papacy, though not yet to separate himself entirely from the church of Rome. In 1532 Cranmer was elevated to the archbishopric of Canterbury; and early in the following year Henry privately married Anne, and thus himself determined the long debated topic. A few months afterwards he openly solemnized his marriage with Anne, who went in state with him as queen. On the 23d of May Cranmer pronounced, not a divorce, but a sentence that the king's marriage with Catherine had been and was a nullity, because it had been contracted and consummated against the divine law; and not long afterwards he confirmed the marriage of the king with the Lady Anne, whose coronation was performed in the most gorgeous manner on the first of June 1533. (See BOLEYN.) The unfortunate Catherine, perceiving all further opposition to be vain, retired to Ampthill, near Dunstable, where she remained for the rest of her days in privacy and peace.

The pope was no sooner informed of these proceedings, than he passed a sentence declaring Catherine to be the king's only lawful wife; requiring him to take her again, and denouncing censures against him in the event of refusal. Henry, on the other hand, knowing that his subjects were entirely at his command, resolved to separate altogether from the church of Rome. In the year 1534 he was declared head of the church by parliament; the authority of the pope was completely abolished in England; all tributes formerly payable to the holy see were declared illegal; and the king was intrusted with the collation to all ecclesiastical benefices. The nation readily entered into the king's measures, and took an oath called the oath of supremacy; all the authority which the popes had maintained over England for ages was overthrown at a blow; and none seemed to repine at the change except those who,

from their dependence upon Rome, were immediately interested.

But though the king thus separated from the church of Rome, he by no means adhered to the doctrines of Luther which had been lately promulgated. He had himself written a book against this celebrated reformer, which the pope pretended greatly to admire, and honoured King Henry, on this account, with the title of Defender of the Faith. This character he seemed to be determined to maintain, and therefore persecuted the reformers most violently. Many were burnt for denying the Catholic doctrines, and some also were executed for maintaining the supremacy of the pope. The courtiers knew not which side to take, both the new and old religions being equally persecuted; and as both parties equally courted the favour of the king, he was by that means enabled to assume an absolute authority over the nation.

The established clergy co-operated actively in the revolution which was in progress. Six bishops sanctioned by their vote every blow which was struck at the power of Rome; and fourteen abbots were usually present when the number of temporal peers who attended were somewhat more than forty. "They did not shrink," says Sir James Mackintosh, "from the deposition of Catherine, by reducing her title to that of Princess Dowager of Wales. By ratifying the marriage of Anne Boleyn they adopted those parts of the king's conduct which most disgusted the people. The bill for subjecting the clergy to the king, as their sole head, was so favourably treated as in one day to be read three times and passed: no division appears to have taken place on these measures."1

The attention of the king was now turned to Elizabeth Boston, a nun in the priory of St Sepulchre at Canterbury, who believed herself endowed with the power of working miracles, and foretelling future events. Several clergymen and other gentlemen of Kent believed in her mission; and some individuals of the highest order, both of intellect and piety, gave credit to her pretensions. She was subject to convulsions; and in the trances into which she frequently fell, visions of a marvellous nature were vouchsafed to her, which turned of course upon the extraordinary events taking place around her. She was tried and executed for high treason, and her abettors were arraigned on the same charge. Fisher, bishop of Rochester, was attainted by the act against this modern Pythia; but by a separate statute he was afterwards attainted of misprision of treason, for not having taken the oath to the succession. He was eminent for his learning and virtue, and probably his life would have been saved had not the pope sent him a cardinal's hat while in prison, which roused the jealousy of Henry. The remorseless tyrant ordered him to be executed, at the same time remarking, with his usual heartlessness, that the pope might send him a hat, but that Fisher should have no head to wear it. Another deed of blood was perpetrated a short time afterwards, which alone is calculated to consign the name of Henry VIII. to the execration of all future times. Sir Thomas More, the first Englishman of his day, one who had exalted the nation in the eyes of Europe, and whose fame was universal, was tried and executed for misprision of treason, in not taking the oath to maintain the succession. The legal pretext, if there was any, for the accusation, was grounded on the obnoxious clause of a recent act, which made it treason "to do any thing by writing or act which was to the slander, disturbance, or prejudice of the marriage with the Lady Anne, or to the disherison or disturbance of the king's heirs by her." Both More and

1 History of England, vol. ii. p. 176.

History. Fisher had abstained from either affirming or denying, first, that Henry's marriage with Catherine was invalid; secondly, that his marriage with Anne was valid; and, thirdly, they refused to disclaim all foreign authority in the kingdom, spiritual authority included. After his condemnation Sir Thomas avowed that he had studied the question for seven years, and could not escape from the conclusion that the king's marriage with Catherine was valid. For this scrupulous conscientiousness he expired upon the scaffold on the 7th of July 1535.

This wanton shedding of righteous blood excited the utmost indignation in foreign countries, particularly in Italy. Here Giovio, an historian, compared the tyranny of Henry to that almost preternatural wickedness which the Grecian legends had embodied under the appellation of Phalaris. Other individuals lashed the tyranny of the English monarch with the utmost rigour, and lamented, in strains of affecting eloquence, the fate of More, whom they designated the martyr of unshaken probity. Amongst the most eminent of these writers was Cardinal Pole, an Englishman, allied to the royal family.

Catherine, the former consort of Henry, expired at Kimbolton in the beginning of January 1536, having died as she had lived, mild, forgiving, and resigned. On her deathbed she wrote a most affectionate letter to her husband, whose iron nerves were touched by the perusal of it. His less prudent queen had the levity to express her satisfaction at the event. But if she expected that it would in any way be conducive to her further happiness, and a more devoted attachment on the part of her husband, she was most miserably disappointed. She soon after gave birth to a still-born child, and her brutal lord is said to have reproached her upon the occasion for the loss of his boy. His desire for male issue, and his repeated disappointments, seem to have at last weaned the affections of the fickle monarch from the idol whom he had worshipped with so much devotedness and ardour. A new passion had kindled in his breast, the object of which was Jane Seymour, a young lady of the queen's bed-chamber, which office Anne herself had held in that of Catherine. The circumstances connected with the queen's arrest may be briefly stated. On May-day 1536 a tilting match was held at Greenwich, in which her brother was the chief challenger, and Norris, groom of the stole, the opposing defendant. The queen having dropped her handkerchief, had it gallantly handed up to her by Norris, who was supposed to be her lover. The jealousy of the king burst out; he left the joust precipitately; and ere night his queen had passed through an examination, and was committed a prisoner. Such was the trifle "light as air," which to the jealous mind of Henry seemed a "confirmation strong as proofs of holy writ." By the researches of Mr Turner it has been discovered, that some days before the tournament certain individuals were appointed to inquire into the alleged misdeeds of Anne. The commission put their authority into execution upon the 10th of May, when a grand jury of Westminster was assembled. The charge against her was adultery, and its consequence in such a case, treason. Whether innocent or not, the unhappy Anne was deserted in her utmost need, and had not a friend to counsel her in this alarming emergency. On the day after the queen was committed to the Tower, Cranmer had written to the king imploring the king's mercy towards her, "his life so late, and sole delight;" but in vain. The archbishop had been forbidden to approach the court until desired by the king. The subsequent proceedings were as rapid as they were terrible. On the 12th

of May, Norris, Weston, Brereton, and Smeaton, were tried in Westminster Hall for the crime of high treason. Smeaton pleaded guilty to the charge; the others resisted, but were convicted. Three days afterwards the House of Lords assembled for the trial of the queen. She was without counsel, and attended only by her ladies. Anne defended herself with modesty and firmness, but, upon evidence of which no traces now remain, she was condemned to suffer death. On hearing the sentence of her judges, she raised up her hands and exclaimed, "O Father and Creator! O thou who art the way, the truth, and the life! thou knowest that I have not deserved this death." It is difficult to reconcile such an ejaculation with a consciousness of guilt. She afterwards turned to her judges, and made a serious protestation of her innocence. On the 17th of May the other individuals who had been convicted were carried forth to execution. Smeaton, who had confessed to the guilt, probably from an erroneous impression that he would by this means save his life, was the last to suffer. Anne's brother Rochford was also tried and condemned on the same day with herself, and was executed with the others. The curtain dropped upon this horrible tragedy with the death of the queen, who was beheaded on the day after her supposed accomplices had suffered. For further particulars respecting this unhappy personage, see BOLYEN.

That Henry sacrificed his queen in a fit of vindictive resentment against her, who, he too rashly believed, had dishonoured him, is all that can be urged in his favour. That he really believed her guilty, must also in common fairness be allowed. To think otherwise would be to attain his name with one of the most horrid enormities that ever disgraced the annals of crime. It seems very improbable that the violent attachment which he had all along entertained for her should have cooled so suddenly, and been supplanted by such deadly hate, without supposing that some levities in the conduct of Queen Anne had fired his jealous soul, and roused him to demand her blood as an expiation for the guilt imputed to her. But he was not content with taking away her life under the charge of adultery and incest; he deprived her of the name and the right of wife and queen, and bastardized the daughter which she had born him, even when he acknowledged that daughter to be his own. His contempt for her memory was displayed in a manner which could be believed of few other individuals. He dressed himself in white on the day of her execution, and actually married Jane Seymour next morning.

In bringing this tale of blood to a termination, we have unavoidably outrun several important events. When the news of Sir Thomas More's execution reached the court of Rome, a bull was prepared against Henry. In this extraordinary instrument were embodied all the offences of the English monarch against the papal see, and he was allowed ninety days, and his factors and abettors sixty, to repent, and to appear at Rome either in person or by attorney. In case of default, he was to be excommunicated, and deprived of his crown; his children by Anne were to be rendered incapable of inheriting for several generations; his subjects were to be absolved from their allegiance to him; and all treaties and alliances between him and other powers were to be null and void. This thunderbolt, however, though forged for the purpose of punishing the king's apostasy, it was resolved should be suppressed for a time, and lodged in the papal armoury until a more favourable opportunity should occur for launching it at the royal culprit.1 The election of Henry as supreme

1 Thus far historians are perfectly agreed with regard to this bull. It is also certain, that in 1536 the suspension of the bull was revoked, and its publication ordered by the pope. But whether or not this really took place is a matter of doubt. Dr Lingard ob-

History. head of the church we have already noticed, and also some of the events which followed his assumption of that presumptuous title. Henry, however, at first assumed it with wariness, and the language in which the statute is couched shows that his supremacy might be reconciled with the papal authority, if the jurisdiction of that power were only of a spiritual nature. But by the statutes of later years, the revolution in church government had been consummated in England. The ancient doctrine of the Roman Catholic faith was acknowledged; but the king was placed as a sort of lay patriarch at the head of the ecclesiastical establishment. Thomas Cromwell, who had now become Henry's chief minister (see CROMWELL, THOMAS), was at this time raised to the new office of the king's vicegerent, and empowered to send commissioners into the several counties of England to inspect the monasteries, and to report, with rigorous exactness, the conduct and deportment of such as were found there. This appointment, which had been made between the parliaments of 1536 and 1539, was confirmed by the recognition of the latter; and it was provided that the vicegerent should take his seat in the House of Peers before the Archbishop of Canterbury, and be ranked above all temporal lords, except some branches of the royal family. The first experiment which Cromwell made of his unlimited power was the gradual suppression of the various classes of religious houses, and the seizure of their possessions, at that time amounting to a large proportion of the landed property of the kingdom. This seizure of vested territorial possessions was, in a legal point of view, direct spoliation. But it was urged, on the other hand, that from the immorality, ignorance, and indolence in which those who enjoyed them indulged, they had forfeited their right, and might lawfully be deprived of these. By the inspectors of the religious houses, the public were informed of the existence of monstrous disorders in these communities. In 1536 the lesser monasteries were suppressed, amounting to nearly four hundred. Their revenues, computed at £30,000 per annum, were confiscated to the king's use, besides their plate and other goods, estimated at £100,000 more. The confiscation, however, was most unpopular, especially in those places where the ancient faith retained most sway, and occasional revolts broke out. Such a sweeping calamity must have brought ruin upon many innocent and even worthy and deserving persons. The spectacle of individuals, invested with the most sacred of all functions, expelled from their only habitations, where they had probably grown old, and were now unfit for bodily toil, was calculated to awaken feelings of sympathy for the sufferers, and probably of detestation for those who had driven them forth to perish in the wilderness. A disturbance broke out in Lincolnshire, where the first visitation of religious houses took place. But in the north a more serious affair, amounting to an insurrection, occurred. Between the Humber and the Tweed the people had rushed to arms, and they were joined by the inhabitants of Cumberland, Westmoreland, and a portion of Lancashire. This formidable body was led into the field by Robert Ask, a man of Yorkshire, and was preceded by priests bearing banners emblazoned with paintings of the sufferings of Christ. Several important towns fell into their hands; but the king met them with a superior force, which arrested their progress. They, however, succeeded in obtaining a general pardon, and then dispersed.

A second visitation of the monasteries took place shortly afterwards. Various circumstances had occurred to exasperate Henry against the Catholic clergy; and the alarming revolts, at which priests had presided, and principally instigated the people by their inflammatory addresses, were of a nature to inflame such a combustible temper as his. In this second spoliation, the richest and most revered shrines were pillaged and destroyed, and the sacred relics, objects of so much superstitious veneration, were held up to the derision of the public. Various historians have enumerated a great number of these, and some of them are certainly calculated to excite surprise at the depth of that superstitious feeling which could induce a people to believe that the parings of St. Edmund's toes, or the felt of St. Thomas of Lancaster, or the shirt of St. Thomas of Canterbury, were infallible recipes for certain disorders. On this occasion the shrine of the latter saint was demolished, and the wealth which it yielded was enormous. These shrines were pillaged, on the allegation, too often true, that they were the scenes of imposture, where miracles were pretended to be wrought. The king, on the whole, suppressed upwards of six hundred monasteries, above two thousand chantries and free chapels, and about two hundred colleges and hospitals. The confiscation was closed by a statute passed in 1539, which provided that "all monasteries, and other religious houses, dissolved, suppressed, surrendered, renounced, relinquished, forfeited, or by any means come to his highness, shall be vested in him, his heirs and successors, for ever." It must be owned, that although great abuses may have been detected, revenue not reformation, plunder not punishment, were the objects which the visitors had in view. With respect to the important question regarding property, involved in this measure, we shall avail ourselves of the remarks of Sir James Mackintosh on the subject.

"Thus was completed the confiscation of a fifth, or a fourth part of the landed property of England and Wales within the space of five years. It may be a fit moment therefore to pause here, in order calmly and shortly to review some of the weighty questions which were involved in this measure. There is no need of animadverting upon the means by which it was effected, though we must assent to the affirmation of a great man, 'that an end which has no means but such as are bad, is a bad end.' But the general question may be best considered, keeping out of view any of those attendant misdeeds which excite a very honest indignation, but which disturb the operation of the judgment. Property is legal possession. Whoever exercises a certain portion of power over any outward thing in a manner which, by the laws of the country, entitles him to an exclusive enjoyment of it, is deemed a proprietor. But property, which is generally deemed to be the incentive to industry, the guardian of order, the preserver of internal quiet, the channel of friendly intercourse between men and nations, and, in a higher point of view, as affording leisure for the pursuit of knowledge, means for the exercise of generosity, occasions for the returns of gratitude; as being one of the ties which join succeeding generations, strengthening domestic discipline, and keeping up the affections of the kindred; above all, because it is the principle to which all men adapt their plans of life, and on the faith of whose permanency every human action is performed; is an institution of so high and transcendent a nature, that every government which does not

History. serves, "I cannot find any proof that it was ever published at all." Sir James Mackintosh is silent upon the point. Mr Turner, in his History of the Reign of Henry VIII. says, that in 1536 "it was given unblushingly to the world. This last order recites, that it had been suspended for three years on the persuasion of some princes. Cherubini, 623." In order to reconcile these conflicting statements, it may perhaps be supposed that it never was "published at all" in England, although it may have been "given unblushingly to the world" in other countries.

History. protect it, nay, that does not rigorously punish its infraction, must be guilty of a violation of the first duties of just rulers. The common feelings of human nature have applied to it the epithets of sacred and inviolable. Property varies in the extent of the powers which it confers, according to the various laws of different states. Its duration, its descent, its acquisition, its alienation, depend solely upon these laws. But all laws consider what is held or transmitted agreeably to their rules as alike possessing the character of inviolable sacredness. There may be, and there is, property for a term of years, for life, or for ever. It may be absolute as to the exercise of the proprietor's rights, or it may be conditional, or, in other words, held only as long as certain conditions are performed. There are specimens of all these sorts of property in the codes of most civilized nations. But in all these cases the essence of property is preserved, which consists in such a share or kind of power as the laws confer. The advantages may be extremely unequal. The inviolable right must, by the force of the terms, continue perfectly equal.

The legal limits of the authority of the supreme legislature are not a reasonable object of inquiry, nor indeed an intelligible form of expression. But to conclude that, because the law may in some cases be said to create property, the law is to be deemed on that account as entitled rightfully to take it away, is a proposition founded on a gross confusion of two very distinguishable conceptions. It uses the word property in the premises for a system of rules, and in the conclusion for a portion of external nature, of which the dominion is acquired by the observance of these rules. It is only in the first of these senses that property can be truly called the creature of law. In the second sense it is acquired or transmitted, not by law, but by the acts of a man, when the acts are conformable to legal rules. It is impossible within our present limits to canvass the small or apparent objections which may occur to this scheme of reasoning. It is sufficient, perhaps, here to remark, that these are the generally acknowledged principles, and that deviations from them in practice are no more than partial irregularities, to which the disturbing forces of passion and interest expose human society.

The clergy, though for brevity sometimes called a corporation, were rather an order in the state composed of many corporations. Their share of the national wealth was immense, consisting of land devised by pious men, and of a tenth part of the produce of the soil set apart by the customary law of Europe, for the support of the parochial clergy. Each clergyman had only in this case an estate for life, to which, during its continuance, the essential attribute of inviolable possession was as firmly annexed by law as if it had been perpetual. The corporate body was supposed to endure till it was abolished in some of the forms previously and specially provided for by law.

For one case, however, of considerable perplexity there was neither law nor precedent to light the way. Whenever the supreme power deemed itself bound to change the established church, or even materially to alter the distribution of its revenues, a question necessarily arose concerning the moral boundaries of legislative authority in such cases. It was not, indeed, about a legal boundary; for no specific limit can be assigned to its right of exacting obedience within the national territory. The question was, what governments could do morally and righteously, what it is right for them to do, and what they would be enjoined to do by a just superior, if such a personage could be found among their fellow-men. At first it may seem that the lands should be restored to the heirs of the original grantor. But no provision for such a

reversion was made in the grant; no expectation of its occurrence was entertained by their descendants; no habit or plan of life had been formed on the probability of it. The grantors or founders had left their property to certain bodies under the guardian power of the common-wealth, without the reserve of any remainder to those who, after the lapse of centuries, might prove themselves to be their representatives. It is a case not very dissimilar to that of an individual who died without discoverable heirs, and whose property for that reason falls to the state. It appeared, therefore, meet and righteous that in this new case, after the expiration of the estates for life, the property granted for a purpose no longer deemed good or the best, should be applied by the legislature to other purposes which they considered as better. But the sacredness of the life estates is an essential condition of the justice of such measures. No man thinks an annuity for life less inviolable during his life, than a portion of land granted to him and to his heirs for ever. That estate might, indeed, be forfeited by a misperformance of duty; but perfect good faith is in such a case more indispensable than in most others. Fraud can convey no title; false pretences justify no acts. There were gross abuses in the monasteries; but it was not for their offences that the monastic communities fell. The most commendable application of their revenues would have been to purposes as like those for which they were granted as the changes in religious opinion would allow. These were religious instruction and learned education. Some faint efforts were made to apply part to the foundation of new bishoprics; but this was only to cover the profusion with which the produce of rapine was lavished on courtiers and noblemen, to purchase their support of the confiscations, and to ensure their zeal and that of their descendants against the restoration of property.

It is a melancholy truth, and may be considered by some as a considerable objection to the principles which have been thus shortly expounded, that in the seizure of abbey lands the life estates had been spared, the monks, who were the main stay of papal despotism, and the most deadly foes of all reform, would have had arms in their hands which might have rendered them irresistible. It must perhaps be acknowledged, that it was more necessary to the security of Henry's partial reformation to strip the monasteries at that moment, than to dissolve communities which a better regulation might in future reconcile to the new system.

We are assured by Sir Thomas More, that in all the time while he was conversant with the court, of all the nobility of this land he found no more than seven that thought it right or reasonable to take away their possessions from the clergy. So inconsiderable was the original number of those who, not many years after, accomplished an immense revolution in property.

To which it must be answered, that the observance of justice is more necessary than security for any institution; that many regulations might have stood instead of one deed of rapine; that the milder expedients would have provoked fewer and more reconcilable enemies; that if, on the whole, they afford less security, the legislature were at least bound to try all means before they who were appointed to be the guardians of right set the example of so great a wrong. Rulers can never render so lasting a service to a people as by the example, in a time of danger, of justice to formidable enemies, and of mercy to obnoxious delinquents. These are glorious examples, for which much is to be hazarded.

Henry had now so far separated himself from the communion of Rome, that it became in some measure necessary for him to concoct a creed of his own. The

History. clergy were divided into two factions, denominated the men of the old and the new learning. The chief of the former was Gardiner bishop of Winchester, who was supported by Lee archbishop of York; Stokesly bishop of London, Tunstall of Durham, and Clarke of Bath and Wells. The latter acknowledged as leaders, Cranmer archbishop of Canterbury, Haxton of Sarum, Latimer of Worcester, and Fox of Hereford. These could depend on the powerful interest of Cromwell the vicar-general, and of Audley the lord chancellor; those on that of the duke of Norfolk, and of Wriothesley the premier secretary. Various long debates took place upon the new creed, but it was neither completed nor sufficiently fenced round with suitable penalties, till an act was passed by the parliament, which sat in April 1539, entitled "an act for abolishing diversity of opinions." This convocation was opened by the chancellor informing the House of Lords that it was his majesty's earnest desire to extirpate from his kingdom all diversity of opinions with regard to religion; and as this enterprise was, he owned, difficult and important, he desired them to choose a committee from amongst themselves, who might frame certain articles, and communicate these afterwards to parliament. The lords named the vicar-general Cromwell, now created a peer; the Archbishops of Canterbury and York; and the Bishops of Durham, Carlisle, Worcester, Bath and Wells, Bangor, and Ely. But this small committee itself was agitated with such diversity of opinions that it could come to no conclusion. The Duke of Norfolk then moved, that since there was no hope of having a report from the committee, the articles of faith proposed to be established should be reduced to six, and a new committee be appointed to frame an act respecting them. As this peer was understood to speak the king's mind, his motion was immediately complied with; and, after a short prorogation, the bill of the six articles was introduced, and, having passed the two houses, received the king's assent. By this law the doctrine of the real presence was established, the communion in one kind, the perpetual obligation of vows of chastity, the utility of private masses, the celibacy of the clergy, and, lastly, the necessity of auricular confession. The denial of the real presence was punishable with death by fire, and the same forfeiture as in cases of treason, and admitted not the privilege of abjuring; an unheard of cruelty, unknown even to the inquisition itself. The denial of any of the other articles, even though afterwards recanted, was punishable by the forfeiture of goods and chattels, and imprisonment during the king's pleasure. An obstinate adherence to error, or a relapse, was adjudged to be felony, and subjected the delinquent to death. The marriage of priests was punished in the same manner. Their commerce with women was, for the first offence, forfeiture and imprisonment; and for the second, death. Abstaining from confession, and from receiving the eucharist at the accustomed times, subjected the person to fine, and to imprisonment during the king's pleasure; and if the criminal persevered after conviction, he was to suffer death and forfeiture, as in cases of felony. Commissioners were to be appointed by the king for inquiring into these heresies and irregular practices, and the criminals were to be tried by a jury.

Henry had now been a widower for above two years. In 1537 Jane Seymour, his third queen, had born him a son, afterwards Edward VI.; but she herself expired in less than a fortnight afterwards. The king afterwards made proposals of marriage to several foreign princesses, and others, without success. Under these repeated disappointments, he readily listened to the suggestions of Cromwell, who proposed to him Anne, sister of the Duke of Cleves, a considerable prince on the Lower Rhine, who had lately

established Lutheranism in his principality. This choice showed the leaning of his secretary's mind, and the progress of men in general towards reformation. Henry had seen a painting by Holbein of this lady. The artist had invested her with fictitious charms, which captivated the sensual monarch, and inspired him with such eagerness to behold her, that he proceeded to Dover, where she was to disembark, his mind no doubt swelling with pleasing anticipations. But he was miserably disappointed, and could not conceal his chagrin. She was indeed of the standard dimensions, being large and tall as his heart could desire; for stature had now become an indispensable qualification in the individual who should aspire to gain the affections of the king of England. Without entering into the disgusting particulars connected with his marriage with Anne of Cleves, it is sufficient to state that the nuptials were solemnized, and that the lady was treated, not as a wife, but as a friend. The distress of Henry was great, and at last drew the attention of the House of Lords to the subject on the 6th of July 1540. These obsequious peers entreated him to make inquiry into the validity of his marriage with the Lady Anne of Cleves; and the Commons having concurred with them, the king granted their prayer. Of course this drama was all arranged, and the characters cast, some days before the meeting of parliament. The convocation appointed to examine into the matter declared the marriage to be null by the consent of Lady Anne herself, which was insured by the grant of an income of £3000 annually; and the lady, it would appear, lived comfortably on her annuity for sixteen years in England. The bill for the nullity was passed by both houses, and received the royal assent on the 24th of July 1540. About a fortnight afterwards the king married his fourth wife, Catherine Howard, niece to the Duke of Norfolk. But let us look back upon the fate of Cromwell, who was instrumental in procuring the former union. It was indispensably necessary that the revolutions which took place in Henry VIII.'s palace and bed should in some way or another be marked with blood.

The arrest, condemnation, and execution of Cromwell, is another of those cruel and tyrannical measures which have entailed accumulated odium upon the name of Henry VIII. A bill to attain the vicar-general of high treason was brought into parliament in June 1540; and before the end of the month it had passed through both houses. He was charged with heresy because he had favoured the new doctrines, and with treason because he had performed several acts of royal authority without the warrant of the king. Cromwell was condemned unheard, and executed in about a month afterwards. This was an act of gross injustice, but it was far from being unpopular. The nobility were glad to be rid of an individual who had raised himself from the shop of a fuller to the highest offices of state; and the Roman Catholic party, who were the most numerous, and had regained much of their ascendancy, rejoiced at the fall of one who was the active conductor of that system of confiscation which struck such a blow at their power in England. In that business he certainly must have connived at much rapine and robbery, which it was out of his power to prevent. He has also been charged with Machiavellian policy; but there is no satisfactory evidence that he was unfaithful to his sovereign. Like Wolsey, he seems to have served his king more faithfully than his God; and it is remarkable that he fell into his own snare, having repeatedly shown the example of attainer without trial.

At this period the act of the six articles was in the fullest vigour of its cruelty; and many iniquitous executions took place. One of the most horrid of these was that of Courtney marquis of Exeter, with Lord Montague and Sir Ed-

History. ward Nevil. They were descended from Edward IV., and this seems to have constituted their only crime. Towards the close of 1538 they were first arrested and committed to the Tower; and shortly afterwards the Countess Margaret, the mother of the Poles, was also taken into custody. Exeter was charged with the offence of having conspired to raise Reginald Pole to the throne. This individual, best known as a cardinal, was the son of the above-named lady, who was daughter of the Duke of Clarence. Her son's life was principally passed in Italy, where he was much celebrated for his talents; and Henry appears to have been proud of him, for he munificently discharged his expenses. Their friendship, however, terminated with the king's divorce from Catherine, which the English monarch vainly besought Pole to sanction. The revenge of Henry, who seems now to have thought that without the shedding of blood there could be no remission of offences, fell upon the mother of the cardinal, and the last of the Plantagenets. She was attainted of high treason, and sent to prison, as above noticed. The noblemen committed about the same time were soon afterwards executed; but the lady lingered two years in confinement, and was at last conducted to the scaffold on the 27th of May 1541, where, to complete the horror of the transaction, from mismanagement on the part of the executioner, her neck was horribly mangled, and her grey hairs, clotted with blood, fell dishevelled over her face ere the bloody act was consummated.

To return to the domestic affairs of Henry, he had not been many months married to Catherine Howard before he received such information of her dissolute life before marriage as induced him to suspect that she might still continue it, and to cause a rigid inquiry to be made into her conduct. There was no doubt as to her vices previously to her union with the king; and some acts of infidelity after it were also brought home to her, but the details are too disgusting for human feelings. Cranmer was one of the individuals employed to communicate information to the king; and although there is no evidence that he was ever guilty of a malicious or vindictive act, yet he sometimes wanted the courage to resist crimes; and the slavish manner in which he, along with the rest of the ministers and parliament in general, bowed to the despotic will of the king, cannot be extenuated.

Two of Catherine's paramours were arrested, and confessed their crimes; and the queen herself acknowledged her guilt previously to the marriage, but denied having committed any act of infidelity subsequently thereto. This, however, was not believed; and on the 14th of February 1542 she was executed in the Tower, along with Lady Rochford, who in some way or another was implicated as an accomplice in the guilt of the queen.

To attain without trial had now become fashionable; but to punish with death that which was not made criminal by any former statute, was altogether new. To countenance such severities as those which had lately taken place, it was enacted in the very bill of attainder, that every woman about to be married to the king or his successors, not being a maid, should disclose her unchastity to him, under the penalty of treason; that any person knowing the fact and not disclosing it, should be subject to the lesser penalty of misprision of treason; and that the commission of adultery by the queen or wife of the prince should be punishable with death.

These laws afforded some amusement to the people, who now said that the king must look out for a widow, as no reputed maid would be disposed to offer herself whilst such a dreadful statute was suspended over her head. This in reality took place, for on the 10th of July 1543 Henry espoused Catherine Parr, the widow of Lord Latimer,

and a lady of mature age. She had read Lutheran books, and was inclined to support the doctrines of the reformers. She even went so far as to enter into controversy with her imperious lord, who valued himself not a little on his theological knowledge. He ordered Wriothesley and Gardiner to give orders for her imprisonment, and to prepare articles of impeachment against her. The third Catherine had very nearly been honoured with a place upon the list of victims which were sacrificed by this Blue Beard of the west, but she evaded the blow by her ingenuity and tact. During the remainder of her life, however, she never again ventured to provoke the vengeance of the royal polemic.

As head of the church, the attention of the king was now principally turned to the management of its affairs. He enforced an observance of the six articles both by Protestants and Catholics, and any deviation from them was punished with tyrannical severity. He was very impartial in his distribution of what he called justice; and it was not uncommon for individuals professing opposite faiths to perish at the same stake. The Christian of those days had a difficult part to perform; for whilst the king renounced in one respect the authority of the pope, he acknowledged it in another by his adherence to the doctrines of the church of Rome; so that it frequently happened that those who were against the head of it were burned, and those who were for him were hanged. In connection with church affairs, Henry effected a further dissolution of colleges, hospitals, and other foundations of that nature, with the spoils of which he enriched his treasury. He also extorted from many bishops a surrender of their chapter lands, and in this manner he succeeded in pillaging the sees of Canterbury, of York, and of London. Amongst the religious orders suppressed was that of the Knights of Malta, or, more properly, St John of Jerusalem. They obstinately refused to surrender along with the other monasteries who laid their rights at the feet of the king, and he was compelled to have recourse to parliament for the purpose of obtaining its authority for dissolving the order, which was very rich, and whose spoil was therefore precious in his sight.

For the purpose of maintaining a rigid parity in speculative principles, he nominated a commission of divines to make out a creed for the benefit of his subjects. In connection with this appointment a circumstance occurred which strongly marks the character of this reign, as well as of those who composed the council of the nation. Before the reverend concave had made any progress in its arduous undertaking, the parliament passed a law which went to ratify all the tenets which the divines might establish in accordance with the king's consent. This clearly shows that the individuals composing that body, as well as the parliament, were merely ciphers, and that Henry was the initial unit which gave them value. A small volume was published under the title of The Institution of a Christian Man, which was made the infallible standard of orthodoxy. But the king's inconsistency was as strikingly exemplified in his religion as in his morals. A new book was ordered to be composed, and three years were spent before it could be brought to that desirable state of perfection which the king wished. At length, however, it came forth under the title of A necessary Doctrine and Erection for any Christened Man; and in order to distinguish it from the former work upon the same subject, it was called emphatically the king's book. It taught the same doctrines as the preceding compilation, with the addition of transubstantiation and the sufficiency of communion under one kind. The new creed was generally approved of, and all writings in opposition to it were prohibited. From the period of the publication of the "king's

book" until the accession of the next sovereign, it continued to be the only authorized standard of English orthodoxy. Henry had formerly sanctioned the publication of the Bible in English, and permission was granted to all his subjects to peruse it. But he afterwards retracted the liberty which he had vouchsafed them, and prohibited the reading of the Scriptures by the lower orders of the people under the penalty of imprisonment. The mass book was also examined, and some alterations were made upon it.

But to return to the political affairs of the nation; in the beginning of the year 1543 Henry renewed his friendship with the emperor, which had been suspended by the divorce question. They concluded an alliance against Francis; and on the 14th of July 1544 Henry crossed the seas in a ship furnished with sails of cloth of gold. The principal event of this war was the surrender of Boulogne, into which the English monarch made a triumphant entry on the 18th of September. But he shortly afterwards returned to England. On the 7th of June 1546 hostilities were concluded by a treaty, of which the principal stipulation was, that within eight years Henry should receive two millions of crowns, with arrears and costs, which are enumerated; and, on payment of these sums, Boulogne and its dependencies were to be restored to Francis. Henry's warlike propensities were also exercised in reference to Scotland and Ireland; but peace was finally restored after both countries had suffered considerably, especially the former. These wars, however, exhausted the treasury of the English monarch. He was compelled to extort money from parliament in his usual manner, and also to depreciate the coinage of the realm, which he had not scrupled to do before.

The cruelty of Henry continued conspicuous to the very close of his life. Disease made dreadful ravages upon his worn-out and unwieldy frame, so that he had to be moved from place to place by machines contrived for the purpose; yet even these unequivocal tokens of approaching dissolution had no effect in subduing the vindictive spirit or humanising the mind of the sufferer. It was in this pitiable state that he perpetrated an act which has become memorable from the fame of the illustrious victim. This was the execution of Henry Howard, earl of Surrey, so justly renowned for his poetical genius. There had for some time existed a spirit of rivalry between the Seymours and the house of Howard. The Duke of Norfolk was indignant at the ascendancy of the former in the royal favour; and his son, the Earl of Surrey, could not forgive the Earl of Hertford, a member of the other family, for having superseded him in the command of the garrison of Boulogne; he had also been heard to predicate that the time of revenge was not far distant. The house of Howard alone stood in the way of the Seymours in the pursuit of their aggrandisement under the approaching minority; and they accordingly employed every means of drawing down the vengeance of the king upon their heads. Norfolk and Surrey were accordingly committed to the Tower on the 12th of December 1546. Surrey was tried on the 13th of January following, on a charge of having quartered on his shield the arms of Edward the Confessor. He vainly defended himself with his usual eloquence and spirit, and showed that he had worn the arms fourteen years without giving offence, and that they had been assigned to him by a decision of the heralds. But the fact being admitted, it was taken as sufficient evidence that he aspired to the throne, and the jury condemned him to suffer death. About a week after the sentence was pronounced, this gallant and accomplished nobleman expired upon the scaffold. His father was also tried and condemned to perish in the same manner on the 29th of January. But on the morning of the 28th the spirit of

Henry VIII. followed that of Surrey to the judgment-seat; and Norfolk, after remaining in prison for several years, was at length set at liberty.

Henry VIII. is one of the most repulsive sovereigns to be met with in the list of English kings. There is a gross brutality about the man, and a remorseless tyranny and blood-thirstiness about the king, which totally obscure any human features which his character may have possessed. Some of his crimes are of so dark a dye, and so peculiarly diabolical, as to make the mind shudder at the very mention of his name. It is difficult to extend charity to, or rank with ordinary humanity, one who could repeatedly hurry from his arms to the scaffold those whom he had loved and embraced with passionate tenderness, if such language may be used in reference to any feeling which animated the breast of such a barbarian. It was after the fall of Wolsey that the prominent features of Henry's moral deformity fully developed themselves; and they are such as have attached to his name a degradation which can neither be removed nor palliated. For the good which he was the means of doing, in sanctioning a reformation in the affairs of the church, he deserves no credit; for it originated in a spirit of vindictive revenge, and was perpetuated by plunder and cruelty. Henry was not destitute of ability; and the esteem which we may infer he entertained for literature, since he patronised learning, is one of the few traits of his character which are not repulsive and odious.

Henry was succeeded by his only son Edward, a boy of nine years of age. He was proclaimed king of England on the 31st of January 1547, and crowned in the month following. The most remarkable transactions of his reign are those connected with religion. The restraint which Henry VIII. had laid upon the Protestants was now taken off; and they not only maintained their doctrines openly, but soon became the prevailing party. Henry had fixed the majority of his son at eighteen years of age; and, in the mean time, appointed sixteen executors of his will, to whom, during the minority, he entrusted the government of the king and kingdom. But the first act of the executors was to choose the Earl of Hertford, afterwards Duke of Somerset, protector of the realm; and in him was lodged all the regal power, together with a privilege of naming his own privy council.

The Duke of Somerset had long been numbered amongst the secret partisans of the reformers; and, immediately on his elevation to his high dignity, he began to express his intention of reforming the abuses of the ancient religion. Under his direction and that of Cranmer, therefore, the reformation was vigorously carried forward; persecutions under the act of the six articles ceased, prisoners were released, and exiles were recalled. Homilies were composed by Cranmer, and ordered to be read by parish priests to their congregations. Visitors were appointed to inspect ecclesiastical establishments, and see that four sermons were yearly preached against the papal authority; that the worship of images should be denounced, and those who were the objects of pilgrimages and offerings should be destroyed; that the English Bible, with Erasmus's commentary on the gospels, should be placed in every church for the use of the people; together with many other points, which, without being very important in themselves, were calculated to assure the people that the government was no longer neutral in matters of religion. The principal person who opposed these innovations was Gardiner bishop of Winchester; a man of great learning, abilities, and resolution, but one of Henry's devoted agents in the suit for a divorce from Catherine, his first queen. He made a manly and becoming resistance to these injunctions, from principles of civil liberty, as much as of ecclesi-

History. astical discipline. To the disgrace of their own principles, the reformers now displayed as virulent a spirit of persecution as the Catholics had formerly done. Gardiner was committed to the Fleet prison, where he was treated with great severity. He was afterwards sent to the Tower; and having continued there two years, he was commanded to subscribe several articles, amongst which was one confessing the justice of his own imprisonment. To all the articles but this he agreed to subscribe; but that did not give satisfaction. He was then committed to close custody; his books and papers were seized; all company was denied him; and he was not even permitted the use of writing materials. Bonner of London, more violent and more subservient, escaped protracted imprisonment by obsequious submission. Several bishops also screened themselves by sacrificing a considerable share of their revenues; others were deprived of their offices; and Tunstal bishop of Durham, an eminent prelate, was ejected from the privy council, in order to impress on the people by a strong example the disinclination of the protector to the ancient faith. In November 1547 a parliament was assembled, in which several bills were passed to promote and enlarge the reformation. The communion was appointed to be received in both kinds by the laity as well as by the clergy, without condemning the usages of other churches. Bishops were to be nominated by the king, and process was to run in the king's name in ecclesiastical courts. The statutes against the Lollards were repealed, as well as all the acts of Henry VIII. upon religious matters, excepting those directed against the supremacy of the pope; and other acts relating to civil affairs were also abrogated. In the next session uniformity in public worship was established, in which the use of the book of common prayer, as prepared by the primate and his brethren, was enjoined. This composition is the foundation of that which, having undergone various alterations in subsequent reigns, continues in use at the present day. By one law the observance of fast days and of Lent was enjoined under penalties; and by another the English clergy were emancipated from compulsory celibacy.

The rest of this reign presents little but the history of the intrigues and cabals of courtiers. There was a war with Scotland, which began with injustice and was conducted with inhumanity. Insurrections also took place in Ireland, where the reformation made no progress. The details of these transactions will be given in the articles SCOTLAND AND IRELAND. The protector was first opposed by his own brother Admiral Sir Thomas Seymour, who had married Catherine Parr, the late king's widow. She died soon after the marriage; and the widow is said to have then paid his addresses to the Princess Elizabeth. His brother the duke, who was at that time in the north, being informed of his ambitious projects, speedily returned, had him attainted of high treason, and at last condemned and executed. The Duke of Somerset himself, however, became unpopular, and a powerful confederacy was formed against him, at the head of which was Dudley earl of Warwick. This nobleman succeeded in overthrowing the power of the protector, and getting him committed to prison on the 13th of October 1549, whilst he himself was installed in the office of lord high admiral. In the month of February following Somerset was released upon payment of a fine and ransom; but towards the end of 1551 he was again sent to the Tower, tried for high treason and felony, and condemned. He was acquitted of the first charge, but not of the second, as he ought to have been. He suffered upon the scaffold on the 22d of January 1552. Warwick, now duke of Northumberland, had thus the reins of government entirely at his own disposal. Not satisfied with the office of

protector, he aimed at altering the succession, and placing the crown upon the head of his son. He represented to Edward, who was now in a declining state of health, that his sisters Mary and Elizabeth, who were appointed by Henry's will to succeed to the crown, in failure of direct heirs, had both been declared illegitimate by parliament; that the queen of Scots, his aunt, stood excluded by the king's will; and being also an alien, lost all right of succeeding. The three princesses being thus excluded, the succession naturally devolved upon the Marchioness of Dorset, eldest daughter of the French queen, Henry's sister, who had married the Earl of Suffolk after her first husband's death. The next heir to the marchioness was Lady Jane Grey, the wife of Northumberland's fourth son, Lord Guildford Dudley. The king, who was accustomed to submit to the politic views of this minister, agreed to have the succession altered, and sketched with his own hand a draft of the new destination of the crown, which was submitted to a council. The judges, however, were far from acquiescing in the proposal contained in this instrument; and they hesitated to sign it, because it would subject those who had drawn and those who had advised it to the penalties of treason. Their hesitation excited the rage of Northumberland, who threatened them with his authority, and, pronouncing them traitors, declared that he would fight in his shirt with any man in so just a cause as that of Lady Jane's succession. A new paper was drawn up, by which the judges were screened from any consequences which might have resulted from their signing of it. By the new patent for changing the succession, the princesses Mary and Elizabeth were set aside, and the crown settled upon the heirs of the Duchess of Suffolk, who was contented to forego her own claim.

For some time the king had languished under a pulmonary complaint, and symptoms of an advanced stage of consumption began to make their appearance. After the settlement of the crown, his health visibly declined every day, and little hopes were entertained of his recovery. The deathbed devotions of Edward bear testimony to his love for his subjects, and his zeal for what he believed to be the purest form of Christianity. "O Lord, save thy chosen people of England, defend this realm from papistry, and maintain thy true religion." Such is a specimen of the supplications which this pious and short-lived prince breathed forth. On the 6th of July 1553, Edward, being then in the sixteenth year of his age and seventh of his reign, breathed his last. Whilst he filled the throne of England, no Roman Catholic had suffered death on account of his religion. By his gentleness and docility he was indisposed to shed blood, and, on the whole, his reign was more free from religious persecution than any administration of the same length, in any great country of Europe, since the rise of protestantism. In abilities he was equal, probably superior, to most boys of his years; but the flattering praises lavished upon him by his panegyrists are to be received with abatement. It was his dying wish that Lady Jane Grey, the companion of his infancy, should be his successor.

The death of Edward was carefully concealed for two days; but on the 8th of July the event was communicated to the ambassadors, and the civic functionaries of London were ordered to make preparations for the coronation of Lady Jane Grey. The intelligence was transmitted to Mary by her friends at court, and on the 9th she wrote a letter to the privy council, expostulating with them upon their conduct; and, solemnly affirming her right, she tendered a pardon to them if they would order her immediate proclamation. The council, however, adhered to the interests of Jane, and both parties prepared to decide the contest by an appeal to arms.

History. When Edward's death, and her own elevation to the throne, were announced to Lady Jane, she was thrown into a state of great agitation. The manner in which she was affected will be best understood from a passage in a letter of hers which she afterwards transmitted to Mary. "As soon as I had, with infinite pain to my mind, understood these things, how much I remained beside myself, stunned and agitated, I leave to those lords to testify who saw me fall to the ground, and who knew how grievously I wept." She urged the preferable claim of the princesses to inherit; but being pressed by the authority of the judges, she at length consented to accept of the royal dignity. She suffered herself to be conveyed to the Tower, and on the same day the heralds proclaimed the death of Edward and the succession of Jane. Mary was also proclaimed at Norwich, and it is somewhat singular that the populace took no interest in either of the proclamations. No shouts of applause or outward demonstrations of joy followed the announcement of the choice of a new sovereign. Northumberland was unpopular, a great part of the Protestants co-operated with the Catholic partisans of Mary, who were numerous and powerful; and the protector, by his supineness, allowed them to assemble in great force at Framingham Castle, in Suffolk, where the princess had fixed her residence. Northumberland became alarmed, and although he had assembled a considerable army, his heart failed him when he saw the demonstrations which were made by the people in favour of Mary. He had taken the field in person, which was a fatal step; for his absence afforded an opportunity to the adherents of Mary who were in the council to make arrangements for exalting her to the royal dignity. It is sufficient to observe that they effected their purpose. Mary was proclaimed, and Jane, after a ten days reign, resigned the crown with a great deal more satisfaction than she had accepted of it. Northumberland had been compelled to proclaim Mary at Cambridge; but this did not prevent him from being led a prisoner to the Tower, which had lately been his palace.

Mary, accompanied by her sister Elizabeth, made her triumphal entry into London on the 3d of August 1553. Her attentions were first turned towards those who had suffered in her cause. She released several prisoners from the Tower, amongst whom were the aged Duke of Norfolk, and her kinsman Edward Courtenay, whom she soon afterwards created Earl of Devonshire. On the 18th of August the Duke of Northumberland, the Marquis of Northampton, and the Earl of Warwick, were tried for high treason; and on the following day Sir John Gates, Sir Henry Gates, Sir Andrew Dudley, and Sir Thomas Palmer, were tried for the same offence. Of the culprits who were condemned, three were selected for execution, Northumberland, Sir John Gates, and Sir Thomas Palmer, who suffered upon the scaffold on the 22d of August.

The mind of Mary now became solicitous about the affairs of religion. All the deprived Catholic bishops were restored. The acknowledged abilities of Gardiner soon raised him to the post of prime minister. He early received the custody of the seals, and not long afterwards he was appointed chancellor. The Protestant bishops, in the eyes of their Roman Catholic brethren, had incurred deprivation by marriage, or still more severe penalties by preaching heresy. On the 2d of September Cranmer was committed to the Tower, and on the 13th Latimer followed him into the same captivity. The latter, in point of moral heroism, was the antipodes of Cranmer, who was gentle and kind, timid and pliant. Latimer was brave, sincere, and inflexible. As he passed through Smithfield on his way to the Tower, he remarked, "Smithfield has long groaned for me." By an early proclamation Mary had declared that "she could not hide her religion, but

that she mindeth not to compel any of her said subjects thereunto, until such time as a farther order by common consent shall be taken therein." The "farther order" did take place, although not in accordance with "common consent." On the 5th of October 1553, parliament assembled, and, in a session of nineteen days, passed only three acts; one for the abolition of all the treasons and felonies of Henry VIII.; another for the restoration in blood of Gertrude marchioness of Exeter; and a third for the like restitution of that lady's son, Edward Courtenay, now Earl of Devonshire. But on the 24th of the same month, several important acts were passed, by which the road was paved for the re-introduction of the Roman Catholic faith as the creed sanctioned by royalty. By these acts Henry's divorce was declared void, and his first marriage pronounced valid; so that the claim of Elizabeth, on whom the Protestants had fixed their eyes with anxious hope, was virtually set aside. But the progress of the revolution in religious matters was slow; and before the perfect re-union with the Church of Rome was consummated, several events of considerable importance took place. Mary having been crowned at Westminster with the usual solemnity on the last day of September 1553, it now became the interest of the Catholic party to obtain a suitable marriage for her. Of natives only two were proposed to her choice, both descended from the house of York; these were Cardinal Pole, and Edward Courtenay, the individual whom she had released from confinement. But the Emperor Charles having heard of Mary's intention to choose a husband, proposed his son Don Philip. This Spanish match was so broad and decisive a step towards Rome, that the House of Commons took the alarm, and presented an address to the queen, in order to dissuade her from her purpose. She returned a haughty answer; and on the 30th of October, having conducted the imperial minister into her private oratory, she there solemnly called God to witness that she plighted her troth to Philip prince of Castile. To obviate all clamour, the articles of marriage were drawn up as favourably as possible for the interests of England. It was agreed that though Philip should have the title of king, the administration should be entirely in the queen; that no foreigner should be capable of holding any office in the kingdom, nor should any innovation be made in the laws, the customs, and the privileges of the people; and that Philip should not carry the queen abroad without her consent, or any of her children without the consent of the nobility. Sixty thousand pounds a year were to be settled upon her as a jointure, and the male issue of this marriage were to inherit Burgundy and the Low Countries as well as the crown of England; and in the event of the death of Don Carlos, Philip's son by his former marriage, without any heir, the queen's issue were also to inherit the rest of the Spanish dominions.

All these concessions, however, were not sufficient to quiet the apprehensions of the people. They were considered merely as words of course, which might be retracted at pleasure; and the nation murmured loudly against a transaction so dangerous to its ancient liberty and independence. The Duke of Suffolk, a zealous Protestant, attempted to excite his tenants in Warwickshire to revolt; but with little success. His followers were routed by Lord Huntingdon, and he himself was betrayed into the hands of his enemies. An insurrection was also raised by Sir Thomas Wyatt, a Roman Catholic, at the head of four thousand men, who set out from Kent to London, publishing a declaration against the Spanish match and the queen's evil counsellors. Having advanced as far as Southwark, he required that the queen should put the Tower of London into his hands; that she should

History. deliver four counsellors as hostages; and that, in order to ensure the liberty of the nation, she should marry an Englishman. But his force was still by far too inconsiderable to support such magnificent pretensions, although it was afterwards augmented to fifteen thousand men; and he unluckily wasted so much time without attempting any thing of importance, that the popular ferment entirely subsided, his followers gradually abandoned him, and he was at last obliged to surrender himself near Temple-Bar to Sir Maurice Berkeley, who committed him to the Tower, where, in a short time, he was joined by the chief of the surviving conspirators. The nobility and gentry immediately repaired to St James's to congratulate the queen on the suppression of the rebellion. But two were excepted; Courtenay duke of Devonshire, and the young Earl of Worcester, who, on the first approach of the enemy, had turned their horses' heads and fled. On the 3d of November 1553, Lord Guildford Dudley and Lady Jane Grey had been convicted of high treason. Lady Jane and her husband were both only in their seventeenth year, and no time was fixed upon for their execution; but the revolt of Suffolk, Lady Jane's father, proved an incentive sufficiently strong to prevail over the slender pity of bigots and politicians, and the sacrifice was consummated.

On the 8th of February Mary signed a warrant for their execution, and on the 12th of the same month it was put in force. Lord Guildford Dudley had requested an interview with his beloved wife, who, however, declined the meeting, justly fearing that it might unfit them for the dreadful scene through which they were about to pass. She saw him issue through the gate of the Tower to the scaffold; and soon afterwards, in chancing to look from the same window, she saw the bloody carcass, half covered in the vehicle which bore it back from the place where vengeance and injustice, disguised under the name of law, had done their worst. Lord Dudley was beheaded on Tower-Hill; but his wife, on account of her royal descent, was spared the ignominy of a public execution. Lady Jane Grey is celebrated as exhibiting a matchless union of beauty with genius, and learning with virtue and piety. She astonished the learned of Europe by her talents and accomplishments, and will be recognised by all posterity as one of the purest and most amiable of historical characters. Were Mary chargeable with no other atrocity than that of putting Lady Jane to death for the crime of a father (for it was on his account that the daughter suffered), it were quite sufficient to cover her memory with irremediable degradation. "It was a death," says Sir James Mackintosh, "sufficient to honour and dishonour an age." Suffolk, her father, perished in the same manner a few days afterwards. Sir Nicholas Throgmorton was tried, but the defence which he made was found so good in law, that the jury acquitted him. Above sixty others of the conspirators were condemned to the block, amongst whom were Lord Thomas Grey the brother of Suffolk, and Wyatt the principal mover of the rebellion.

This revolt had very nearly proved fatal to the Princess Elizabeth, who for some time had experienced harsh treatment at the hands of her sister. Mary, upon whom the mantle of Henry VIII. had descended, felt antipathy to her on account of the quarrel between their mothers. This circumstance, in the mind of one whose tender mercies were cruel, was sufficient to change the milk of sisterly affection into mortal venom; and a favourable opportunity was only necessary to make her feel its deadly effects. Nearly a month was spent in labouring to extract information against Elizabeth from Wyatt whilst he lay in prison. But the unfortunate gentleman honourably

acquitted her, although he might, in all probability, have saved his own life by implicating her in the late rebellion. At Ashridge, whither she had retired to escape the constrained participation in a worship which she disapproved, overtures had been made to her by the chiefs of the revolters; but her acceptance or consent was neither shown nor seriously alleged. Immediately after Wyatt's discomfiture, she was conducted to London in a very infirm state of health. It was doubted whether she would reach her destination alive; but youth and strength triumphed over the malady with which she was affected. Courtenay earl of Devonshire was also arrested, and committed to the Tower. Two councils were held on the fate of Elizabeth, and the judges were divided in their opinions as to her guilt. Gardiner, although he professed to think Elizabeth deserving of death, yet considered her confinement at Ashridge, and Courtenay's residence at St James's, as irreconcilable with a just conviction of treason. The head and front of her offending seems to have been misprision, or concealment of projects of revolt, which was now not a capital crime. It was fortunate for Elizabeth that one of the first measures of her sister, when she ascended the throne, was to sweep away the odious heap of treasons raised up by her father, and the punishment of misprision with death was one of them. But Elizabeth, although absolved from a capital charge, was nevertheless committed to the Tower; and shortly afterwards she was put under the charge of Sir Henry Bedingfield, keeper of Woodstock. During her stay in the Tower, the princess had no other expectation than that of mounting the scaffold which had been trodden long before by her unhappy mother, at her father's stern behest, and on which the blood of Lady Jane Grey, the purest of the pure, was scarcely dry. When Bedingfield came with his soldiers to conduct her to Woodstock, she asked, with her usual quickness and poignancy, "Is the scaffold of Lady Janet taken away?" A few days later, Courtenay was transferred from the Tower to Fotheringay Castle.

The rebellion had suspended for some weeks the proceedings relative to the queen's marriage. But in the beginning of March the English ambassador returned from the Continent with the ratification of the treaty; and Philip landed at Southampton on the 19th of July 1554, attended by a magnificent train of Spanish grandees and Burgundian lords. The marriage between him and Mary was solemnized by Gardiner in his cathedral at Winchester, before crowds of noblemen from all parts of Christendom, and with a pomp and splendour seldom surpassed. Philip was then in the twenty-ninth year of his age, and Mary in her thirty-eighth year. The countenance and form of the prince were far from being disagreeable; but the stately reserve of his Spanish manners was not calculated to lessen the repugnance of the English people to the union.

Soon after her marriage, Mary resolved to restore the religious polity of the kingdom to that state in which it had existed at the time of her birth. Accordingly, on the 12th of November a parliament was held for this purpose, and a bill passed both houses "for the restitution in blood of the Lord Cardinal Pole." But a difficulty arose regarding the abbey lands; for it was feared that those who possessed them in spite of the indelible claims of the church might be called before the tribunal of the pious cardinal. However, on the 20th of November, Pole arrived at Dover, armed apparently with ample powers to do every thing necessary for the reconciliation of England with the church of Rome; and amongst these was full authority to do with the abbey lands as he thought fit. Nine days after his arrival, he made an oration to the two houses, exhorting them to return to the bosom of the universal church, at the same time absolving the kingdom from the papal in-

terdict. The request was formally acceded to, and Pole was enabled to announce to the pontiff the success of his mission. In order to quiet the possessors of church property, the legate issued his dispensation, declaring that they should not be molested; and a statute passed confirming his sentence. By another, the acts which had abolished the papal supremacy were repealed. This new restoration of power to the papacy formed a sad and dark augury for the devoted Protestants. It was the first indication that the time approached when the fires of persecution were to blaze forth in every county of England, and when heaven was to be insulted by the profanation of its sacred name as sanctioning the foulest deeds of blood.

An act was passed by the parliament of 1554 for the revival of the statutes of former sovereigns against heretics, and especially against Lollards; which revival was to take effect from the 20th of January 1555. During the last reign, no Roman Catholic had suffered capital punishment on account of his faith, nor does there appear to have been any kind of jurisdiction or mode of procedure for the trial of heresy, although the law remained in full force against anabaptists and anti-trinitarians, whose doctrines were looked upon both by Catholics and Protestants as sapping the very foundations of Christianity. It has been alleged by the opponents of Protestantism, that in The Reformation of Laws, composed in the latter part of Edward's reign, there are indications of a preparation for lighting the faggot against the adherents of the ancient religion; and as the point is of some importance, we shall avail ourselves of the following observations by Sir James Mackintosh, which seem to put the matter in its true light. Referring to the allegation that severity against the adherents to Catholicism was about to be put in execution, he says,

"This statement is chiefly grounded on a text of that projected code, which directs that contumacious and incorrigible heretics, after all other means have been exhausted, shall be at length delivered to the civil magistrate to be punished. It is assumed that the punishment must be death. Yet in the very first article of the code, which relates to atheists and unbelievers in Christianity, death is denounced against them in express words.

"The admission of it into another article by mere implication is therefore unreasonable. It is too terrible an enactment to be admitted without express words. If punishment is held to be synonymous with capital punishment, by force of this clause death must be applied to all heresies. If it was intended to confer on the civil magistrate a large discretion in the infliction of inferior punishments for the enumerated heresies, the article is perfectly agreeable to the practice of the framers and the opinions of the times. It is incredible that capital punishment could be denounced against the whole of a long series of heresies, of which the catalogue nearly occupies twenty quarto pages, besides what is called a monstrous heap of other errors, less necessary to be specified, as being less prevalent in that age. Even admitting this unreasonable construction of the plan for a reformed code, it affects only the reputation of the projectors. It never was adopted by public authority. It was not laid before parliament. There is no reason to doubt that the Protestant parliament would have altered the very articles in question, if, when they were communicated to that assembly, they could be supposed to establish or countenance a practice perfectly at variance with that of the king and parliament of England in the reign of Edward VI. To hold that a few words in a Latin manuscript, of projected but not adopted laws, not printed till many years afterwards, could have been the incentive of those who kindled the fires of Smithfield

under Mary, is one of the most untenable of all positions. Truth and justice require it to be positively pronounced, that Gardiner and Bonner cannot plead the example of Cranmer and Latimer for the bloody persecution which involved in its course the destruction of the Protestant prelates. The anti-trinitarian and the anabaptist, if they had regained power, might indeed have urged such a mitigation, but the Roman Catholic had not even the odious excuse of retaliation."

The year 1555 opened with gloomy forebodings for the reformed clergy; and ere a month had expired, the lowering tempest burst upon them with unexampled fury.

On the 28th of January a commission, with Gardiner at its head as lord chancellor, assembled in the church of St Mary Overies, in Southwark, for the trial of Protestants. From the station which this individual held, and from his commanding talents, there appears to be little doubt that he was instrumental in pushing forward this bloody work, although some writers have attempted to remove this reproach from his character. Whether he was the main author or not, is a matter of comparatively little importance. As lord chancellor, and as head of the commission, he sanctioned the whole proceedings. He must therefore be held responsible for the deeds of those who acted under his authority, and suffer the lash of posterity, in the same way as Cromwell, on whom Catholic writers have poured out the vials of their wrath, from his having acted as captain of the banditti who plundered the holy places in the reign of the eighth Henry.

The first martyrs in this persecution were Hooper bishop of Gloucester, and Rogers, a clergyman of Essex, both eminent divines of the reformed cause. They died with feelings of triumphant piety in the midst of suffocating flames; and other victims were rapidly hurried to the stake. The principal were, Archbishop Cranmer, Ridley bishop of London, and Latimer bishop of Worcester. (See CRANMER.) These persecutions soon became odious to the whole nation, and the perpetrators of them were all willing to shift the blame from themselves upon others. Many of the Catholic prelates, to their honour, exercised occasionally an effectual and perhaps hazardous humanity in their favour. Gardiner himself withdrew from this unavailing slaughter, and his place was supplied by Bonner bishop of London, a less scrupulous dealer in blood. Even Philip himself was moved to pity, and discountenanced these diabolical proceedings. To describe the sufferings of those persons of eminence and distinction who perished, would fatigue the patience and harrow the feelings of the reader. For four years the persecution was carried on with unsatiated cruelty; and, keeping out of view those who perished in dungeons under every form of misery, and also those who expatriated themselves, nearly three hundred individuals are calculated to have expired at the stake. We are positively informed by Lord Burghley, that in this number of victims are comprised no less than one hundred women and children. The perpetrators of these "more than heathen cruelties" deserve no quarter from posterity; such deeds as those laid to their charge stamp infamy deep on their names, and hold them up to execration now and for ever.

The other events of this reign unconnected with religion are, with the exception of the loss of Calais, unimportant. The reduction of this town had cost Edward III. a siege of eleven months, and the English standard had waved over its battlements for above two centuries. It surrendered to the arms of France after a siege of only eight days, and its loss so affected the queen, that when lying on her deathbed she said, "If you open me you will find Calais written on my heart." Philip, her husband, appears to have treated her with formal but cold respect.

History. He had succeeded to the greatest monarchy then in the world, and had been some time absent from England in superintending its affairs. He returned again, but his departure a second time left Mary to brood over her fruitless barbarity alone. She had more than once entertained the nation with rumours of her pregnancy, and was herself cheated with the illusive hopes of offspring. But this Shiloh of the ancient faith, like that of a celebrated dreamer of after times, was the manifestation of a deadly disorder. She died of dropsy on the 17th of November 1558, to the unspeakable relief of the greater portion of her subjects.

It is customary to load the name of Queen Mary with every kind of opprobrium. But in estimating human character, care should always be taken to distinguish between acts committed under the influence of religious principles, and agreeably to conscience, however erroneous such convictions may be, and those perpetrated from the sheer brutality of passion, or from an instinct of cruelty and bloodshed. That the atrocities of Mary belong to the former class of crimes, we have little hesitation in saying, even with the case of Lady Jane Grey before us. Her ministers, also, must share with her no inconsiderable portion of the odium which is always associated with her reign, for to their errors or prejudices much of the misery which she caused must be ascribed.

Although in the private life of Mary there is much to praise, yet her nature was sour and unamiable, and almost destitute of that tenderness which peculiarly distinguishes the female character. Whether or not she was a tyrant like her father, she was at all events pre-eminently fitted for becoming the tool of tyrants. She was not remorseless, for she is reported to have suffered much on account of her conduct towards the Protestants, but unfortunately her conscience never took effect in time.

After the death of Mary, the Princess Elizabeth succeeded to the throne without opposition. She was at Hatfield when the news of her sister's death were brought to her, and hastening to London immediately, she was received there with great joy. For the preservation of her life this princess was indebted to Philip, the husband of Mary. The Spaniard was aware that her death would remove the only obstacle which stood between Mary of Scotland and the throne of England. That sovereign had been married to the heir-apparent of France, his great political enemy; and the balance of power which might thus be thrown into the hands of the latter would have endangered the stability of Philip's throne; a circumstance which induced him to this unusual act of liberal humanity. The first measure of Elizabeth was to assemble around her throne a body of counsellors who had recommended themselves to public notice by the power of their talents or the steadiness of their principles. Her state council was composed of both Catholics and Protestants, although her more confidential advisers were confined to a select portion of the latter, and amongst these was Sir William Cecil, whom she appointed her first secretary. Precautionary measures were taken to meet any invasion on the part of France in order to raise Mary Queen of Scots to the throne; for the government of that country had made demonstrations to this effect, by instigating Rome to hostilities against Elizabeth. Mary had left a vacant treasury, and one of the first cares of the new administration was to obtain pecuniary supplies; and, from the high character and popularity of the queen, these were immediately granted by the people. Her coronation was then celebrated with all possible splendour and festivity.

To establish the Protestant religion was Elizabeth's most ardent desire. With this view the statutes passed in the late reign for the support of the ancient faith were

repealed; and the acts of Henry VIII. in derogation of the papal authority, and of his successor in favour of the reformed church, were for the most part revived. There were some deviations in the new book of common prayer from the liturgy of Edward VI., but of these only two are important. The first consists in the omission of a prayer to be freed from the "tyranny of the bishop of Rome and all his detestable enormities;" which certainly displayed a conciliatory spirit towards the Catholic church. The second was an alteration of the language which spoke of the sacrament as being only a remembrance of the death of Christ, and the substitution of words which indicate the real but not corporeal presence. Towards the middle of 1559 the Protestant liturgy was introduced, and the oath of supremacy administered. Strong opposition to it was evinced on the part of the clergy, especially amongst those of a dignified station; and out of sixteen bishops only one took the oath tendered to them. But the lower orders were less scrupulous; and it is probable that in many instances necessity induced them to make a compromise with their consciences. Those of the clergy who refused compliance with the new code of religious doctrines were deposed, and their places supplied by professors of the reformed religion. According to the standard of punishments which followed contumacy in these ages, the treatment of the bishops was mild. Bonner was imprisoned; but he was a man so emperpled with blood as to be odious to all parties. This was the highest degree of suffering to which any of the nonconformists were subjected.

During the time that the queen and her counsellors were thus settling the religious affairs of the nation, negotiations were carried on between England and France for a peace, which was at last concluded on the following terms, viz. that the French king should restore Calais at the expiration of eight years; that in case of failure, he should pay five hundred thousand crowns, and Elizabeth's title to Calais should still remain; that for the payment of this sum he should find the security of eight foreign merchants, not natives of France; and that until such security was provided he should deliver five hostages. If during this interval Elizabeth should break the peace with France or Scotland, she was to forfeit all title to Calais; but if the French king was to make war on Elizabeth, he was to be obliged to restore the fortress immediately.

The reign of Elizabeth for the first eleven years, that is, from the twenty-fifth to the six and thirtieth year of her life, was distinguished for the internal quiet and happiness of the country. During this interval she displayed the very best qualities of a sovereign; firmness, prudence, vigilance, activity, and foresight. These qualities were tempered with habitual amenity, and a rational piety. By her subjects she was admired, applauded, and imitated; and during this halcyon period her throne received an accession of strength which enabled it to stand unshaken amid the tumultuous storms with which it was afterwards assailed. She was repeatedly advised to engage in a matrimonial alliance, but uniformly declined to do so, declaring her resolution of remaining single for life. Amongst her suitors were various foreign princes, Catholic as well as Protestant; and some of her own subjects even presumed to intrude their offers upon her "maiden meditation," but without success. During the religious war which raged in France, Elizabeth, ever ardent in the cause of the reformation, assisted the Huguenots with arms and money.

In the mean time the pretensions of Mary, queen of Scotland, to the crown of England, involved Elizabeth in transactions which have left a stain upon her name. Mary, who was espoused to the dauphin of France, had quartered

the arms of England with those of France and Scotland upon her escutcheon; and to this she was advised by the Catholics, who looked upon Elizabeth as a usurper, having been illegitimated in her youth by the cruel mandate of her father at the time when he consigned her mother to the block. The result of this appropriation of the armorial bearings of the English sovereign was a quarrel between the two princes, which only terminated with the execution of the unfortunate queen of Scotland. See the articles MARY and SCOTLAND.

In 1569 Elizabeth was excommunicated by Pope Pius V. These anathemas, by absolving subjects from the oath and the duty of allegiance, and suspending the offices of religion, and even those of humanity, were sometimes most disastrous to a country, upon which they descended like a deadly epidemic. But the majority of the queen's subjects were of the same religion with herself, and had thrown off the papal yoke; so that it was in the present instance productive of no other effect than the publication of a severe act against all who held any communication with the bishop of Rome. Severe measures were also taken with the puritans and other dissenters. At this time the English nation was divided into three theological and political parties; the Churchmen, who considered the ecclesiastical revolution as already perfect; the Puritans, who sought further reformation by agitating the minds of the people; and the Catholics, who, supported by the great continental powers, did not yet despair of seating their religion upon the throne. But men of all these persuasions united in their abhorrence of anabaptists; and, in order to extirpate them, the fires of Smithfield were, after an interval of seventeen years, re-kindled. Fox the celebrated martyrologist dared to interfere in behalf of this hated sect; but his courageous humanity obtained for them only a temporary respite. Two men were burned, and numbers were imprisoned or otherwise corporally punished. These events took place about the middle of the year 1575, and this was the first blood spilt by Elizabeth on account of religion; it, however, forms a dark stain upon her government, which may be pronounced mild when compared with others of the same period. The blood of Henry VIII. was not yet sufficiently purified in this its first descent from the fountain-head.

Amongst the other domestic events connected with the history of England, was that of the rebellion of Percy earl of Northumberland, and Neville earl of Westmoreland. This revolt partook both of a civil and of a religious character, for the noblemen at its head were adherents of the ancient faith, and were encouraged to embark in their lawless enterprise by the Catholic states. But on the approach of the royal troops under Sussex, the insurgents broke up and fled. Northumberland was made prisoner in Scotland, and executed at York; and Westmoreland died in Flanders, in the humble capacity of commandant of a Spanish regiment. Other treasonable transactions originated with the Duke of Norfolk, whose vaulting ambition aspired to the hand of Mary queen of Scots. Indeed he and the two insurgents just named, together with several other nobles, united in a conspiracy against Elizabeth. The timely arrest of Norfolk, however, disconcerted the confederacy, of which the northern rising was merely a premature explosion. Mary of Scotland is positively asserted to have been a participant in the plot. Norfolk was brought to trial; and there seems little doubt that he had incurred the penalties of treason, by having had intercourse with Catholic princes who had undertaken to land in England with a hostile army, and by his clan-

destine renewal of negotiations for the delivery and espousal of Mary, at that time a prisoner in the hands of Elizabeth. He was condemned to death, and executed, after a great deal of hesitation on the part of the queen.

England now began to distinguish herself in her natural career of maritime enterprise. Amongst the most distinguished of the nautical adventurers of this age was Sir Francis Drake, whose exploits will be found related under the article DRAKE. A vague rumour had for some time pervaded Europe, of vast naval preparations by the king of Spain, for the invasion and conquest of England. In 1587 Sir Francis Drake having been dispatched with a fleet to attack the Spanish ships which lay in the bay of Cadiz, was completely successful in his enterprise, burning and destroying above one hundred vessels laden with ammunition and naval stores. The fruits of his expedition were of vast importance. Philip's preparations were disturbed, and his project of invasion put off for twelve months, during which period Elizabeth had time to make head against the storm which was gathering in that quarter. These were the obvious results of Drake's bravery; but who can estimate the moral effect which it had produced? It gave a heroic impulse to the nation, and inspired it with confidence in its own strength and resources. It taught English seamen to look without terror upon the towering bulk of the Spanish vessels; whilst the Spaniards themselves must have in a proportional degree lost the confidence of having an advantage over the enemy by means of their floating castles.

The king of Spain having once more completed his complement of vessels, manned them with the ablest seamen and soldiers, under the command of the most renowned leaders. This Armada was truly imposing and magnificent; it was baptized The Invincible, but not with English blood. Never before had the ocean borne a more splendid fleet than that which sailed from the Tagus on the 25th of May 1585. The ships and their equipments had been fitted out in every port of its king's dominions. In Flanders, the forest of Waes had been felled; the dockyards of Antwerp, Dunkirk, Newport, and Gravelines swarmed with artificers; and the rivers and canals were covered with boats adapted for the transport of soldiers destined to serve in the expedition. On the 20th of May the following enumeration of the vessels was made: "The general sum was 180 ships, of 57,868 tons; 19,295 soldiers and 8450 mariners, with 2088 slaves, and 2630 great pieces of cannon of all sorts; also twenty caravals for the service of the others, with ten salvers of six oars a piece." Towards the end of June another armament of eighty sail left Lisbon to join them.1 To meet this overwhelming armament the royal navy of England mustered 181 ships, containing between seventeen and eighteen thousand seamen. There were only eight ships above five hundred tons burden, and the largest was only eleven hundred. The aggregate burden of the whole English fleet amounted to 81,985 tons, being little more than one half of that of the Spaniards. The preparations made on land displayed equal spirit and enthusiasm. A loyal patriotism and active magnanimity pervaded the whole kingdom. The city of London set a noble example. The lord-mayor, in the name of the metropolis, put at the disposal of his sovereign ten thousand soldiers and thirty vessels. The whole nation emulated this wise liberality; and every city, town, and hamlet poured forth its ardent patriots to take their stand upon the coast and repel the insulting invader. About fifty thousand men under the command of Earl Hunsdon, a brave and able general,

1 Strype, p. 538-9, from the Spanish book, which rather styled the whole "Felicissima Armada."

History. guarded the queen's person. The Thames at Tilbury was watched by Leicester with a considerable force. Sir Walter Raleigh was stationed at Portland Castle, in Dorsetshire, and the Earl of Sussex at Portsmouth. In the other parts of the country the wisest measures of defensive warfare were adopted. At sea one division of the fleet under Lord Henry Seymour guarded the narrow seas; whilst the main body under Lord Charles Howard, the high admiral, was stationed in the Western Ocean. The gallant Sir Francis Drake and the able navigators Hawkins and Frobisher were in this division.

Under the Duke of Medina Sidonia, the Spanish Armada set sail for the invasion of England. It was for some time retarded by a tempest, which also harassed the English fleet; and news were brought to the queen of England that Medina's Armada had been so injured and scattered that the expedition was for the present abandoned. The English ships withdrew to various ports, where they might have been surprised and burned, had not intelligence accidentally arrived that the Spanish fleet was bearing down full sail upon the coast. On the 20th of July the English admirals came in sight of the enemy, and next day the first engagement took place. The plan of Lord Howard was to evade a direct attack; for his vessels being so much inferior in bulk and weight of metal to the enemy's ships, were incapable of grappling in close action with them; but being superior in mobility and expedition, he resolved to annoy their rear, and to cut off the sluggish sailors. In the first attack neither fleet suffered much. Early in the morning of the 23d the second conflict began, and both fleets fought with valour; but the advantage was at last on the side of the English, over whose smaller vessels the iron shower from the higher sides of the Spanish ships flew harmless, whilst their own took full effect. On the 24th a pause took place in the battle, which was, however, renewed next day; but the mighty armament forced its way unbroken to the vicinity of Calais. They were now prepared to act in concert with the Duke of Parma, who had completed his preparations. He possessed in the harbours of Newport and Dunkirk transports which carried about twenty-eight thousand men, and which waited the general's command to make the grand attempt.

The concentration of the Spanish Armada off Calais suggested to the English admiral the idea of employing fire-ships to destroy it. Eight vessels were thereupon hastily prepared for this purpose, and during the night of the 29th, which was cloudy and boisterous, they were sent down blazing with combustible materials into the heart of the Spanish fleet. A cry of horror burst from the Spaniards, and, seized with an irresistible panic, they cut their cables with the intention of standing out to sea. But in their terror and confusion they inflicted severe injury upon one another; and, to augment their distress, a fierce gale sprung up, which scattered the Armada along the coast from Ostend to Calais. Some struck on the shallows at Flanders, whilst others beat out to sea; the remainder, amounting to about forty sail, were assailed by Drake and the rest of the English fleet. This was the most severe engagement which had yet taken place, and was maintained with great bravery for a whole day. The Spaniards lost several of their best ships; and after vainly endeavouring to regain their position in the narrow strait, where Parma could alone join them, they resolved to return to Spain by making a circuit round Great Britain. The want of ammunition compelled the English to refrain from pursuing the invaders at a time when they might have annihilated them. But this was reserved for an enemy even more formidable than that before which they fled. A storm overtook them on their unfortunate voyage, and the coasts of Scotland and Ireland were strewn with the wrecks of the Invincible

Armada, so that only a feeble remnant of that splendid fleet reached the shore from whence it had sailed, in all the pomp and circumstance of war, as if to an assured triumph.

The events of Elizabeth's reign which followed the discomfiture of the Spanish attempt to invade England may be briefly related. The Earl of Leicester, who had for a long time maintained an enviable place in the queen's favour, was invested with fresh honours. A new and unprecedented office was created for him, that of lord lieutenant of England and Ireland, which exalted him to an authority only a little lower than that of sovereignty. But the ink was scarcely dry upon the warrant which wanted but the royal signature to complete the triumph of the favourite, when he was cut off by a violent disease, which, whether it arose from natural causes, or from poison being administered, at all events speedily terminated his career. Of this nobleman little need be said. He is one of a numerous class of historical characters who possess a degree of notoriety, not on account of any brilliant endowments which they themselves possessed, but from their proximity to or connection with distinguished personages. He possessed no intellectual or moral qualities which, deprived of adventitious aid, would have thrown him into the foreground of his country's history; whilst, if we listen to the opinion of his contemporaries, he must be looked upon as dissolute and unprincipled, notwithstanding his affectation of piety. He is a satellite only conspicuous from the light which is reflected upon him by his sovereign.

The English navy, emboldened by its late triumph, now made several very successful descents upon the Spanish coast, not so much for the purpose of obtaining permanent conquest, as of harassing the enemy. These expeditions were conducted by the most able commanders, amongst whom were some of the brightest names in the history of maritime discovery and enterprise, such as those of Raleigh, Drake, Cavendish, Hawkins, and Howard. It was then that the English navy assumed the empire of the sea, which it has ever since maintained with triumphant heroism.

On the death of Leicester, the young Earl of Essex succeeded him as prime favourite of the queen. But the desire of glory or the hope of plunder induced this volatile young nobleman to join the armament preparing to sail for Spain. The expedition was unfortunate, and when Essex returned to England, he found two rival candidates for royal favour, Sir Walter Raleigh and Sir Charles Blount. By the superior influence of these noblemen, the former was driven to cultivate a portion of land which had been granted to him in Ireland; and with the latter Essex fought a duel, in which he was wounded. But by the queen's command they were reconciled to each other, and in process of time they became sincere and attached friends.

In the year 1596, a new expedition was fitted out for Spain, which was completely successful. The Spanish fleet was defeated, and lost thirteen men-of-war. Cadiz was taken, and its defences, which rendered the town the strongest fortress in the country, were razed to the ground. This was the severest blow which the king of Spain received from his daring enemy subsequent to the repulse of the Armada. Matters might have been still worse with him had not dissension sprung up amongst the English commanders, the majority of whom, against the suggestion of Essex, who was one of the leaders, declared for an immediate return to England. The town, with the exception of the churches, was reduced to ashes; and the troops, taking with them the most valuable portion of the plunder, re-embarked, and the fleet returned to Plymouth in less than ten weeks after it had set sail. Essex, on his arri-

Statistics. val in England, was compelled to appear before the queen in council, and answer to several charges connected with the late enterprise. These charges merely related to pecuniary matters, and the favourite was acquitted; but this was the commencement of numerous subsequent quarrels which he had with his sovereign, none of which are important to history except the last. Having been appointed lord deputy of Ireland, he suddenly left his command in that country and returned to England. He was committed a prisoner, and called upon to account for his extraordinary conduct. The queen, however, was unwilling to carry matters too far against her favourite. He was allowed to go about as a prisoner on parole; but this high-spirited and aspiring nobleman could not remain content with the humiliating circumstances to which he was now reduced. He attempted to excite the city of London to revolt against the queen's authority; but the rebel was taken prisoner, tried for high treason, condemned, and executed. This proved a severe blow to Elizabeth, who was now tottering upon the brink of the grave. She had been all her life subject to fits of indisposition, which were occasionally violent; but it was not till the beginning of March 1603 that her mortal illness came on. Her mind became depressed with gloomy recollections, especially those connected with the shedding of Essex's blood; and her nervous melancholy and general decline increased, accompanied by symptoms which indicated a disease of the heart, and by a laboured and convulsive respiration. She was questioned by her confidential advisers as to her successor, and signified her desire that the king of Scotland should succeed to the throne. Her speech soon afterwards failed entirely, and all hope of her recovery vanished. She tranquilly breathed her last, about three hours after midnight, on the 24th of March 1603, in the sixty-seventh year of her age and forty-fifth of her reign.

In the opinion of her contemporaries, whose judgment has been ratified by posterity, Elizabeth ranks amongst the greatest and the most fortunate of English sove-

reigns. The domestic tranquillity which signalized her Statistics. rule during nearly half a century; her triumphant re-pulse of the Spanish monarch, and the severe retaliation which she inflicted upon that lord of empires; the spirit displayed by her navy in its numerous warlike expeditions by sea, and also by her army on land, are indications of uncommon vigour on the part of the sovereign, and of sagacity on that of her counsellors. She found England comparatively inferior to other nations of Europe, but she left it amongst the proudest and the most powerful. It was during her reign and that of her successor, that the human intellect sprung up at once to full maturity, and produced those works which are the peculiar glory of English literature. Hers was the Augustan age of poetry, the age of Spenser, Shakspere, and others; and during her reign Bacon began to put forth those gigantic energies of mind which were destined to change the whole aspect of science, and even the condition of man as a civilized being. The human failings ascribed to Elizabeth are, excessive vanity, love of popularity which is part of it, parsimony, and a leaning towards despotism. But those whose interest it has been to vaunt the glory of her sister's reign, and the purity of her life, have not failed to charge Elizabeth with great personal depravity; yet if we discredit every defamatory story which can be clearly traced to her enemies, the imputations will not have much weight, or attach any grave stigma to her name.1 She is not, however, free from the stain of blood, the shedding of which cannot be justified, however it may be palliated by taking into account the circumstances of the times, and the critical situation in which she stood; but in this respect her conduct is almost purity itself compared either with that of her sister or of her father. For an account of the private life and literary character of this great queen, see the article ELIZABETH.

She was succeeded by James the Sixth of Scotland and First of England. From that period, the history of the countries is given under the article BRITAIN.

PART II.

STATISTICS.

I.—Situation, Extent, Face of the Country, Soil, and Climate.

England, the southern, and by far the most fertile division of Britain, corresponds in latitude with Holland and the north of Germany, extending from 50° to 55° 45' N. Its figure is nearly triangular, and its extent of coast is very great, both from being much indented, and from the sea bounding it on all sides except along a width of seventy miles on the Scottish border. The adjacent seas are the German Ocean on the east, St George's Channel on the west, and the English Channel on the south. No country can be more fortunately situated; its climate is temperate; its extent is sufficient for its political security; whilst its insular position not only presents the greatest capabilities of aggrandisement in a commercial sense, but has, by rendering a great military force unnecessary, in all probability been the chief cause of preventing the executive branch from usurping absolute power, as in the countries of the Continent.

Its superficial extent had long been a question of considerable doubt, and the different estimates varied no less

than ten millions of acres. Mr Pitt, on the authority of Arthur Young, assumed, in 1798, the superficial extent of England and Wales to be nearly 47,000,000 of acres; a later calculation by Dr Beeke, approaching more to accuracy than any preceding one, fixed it at 38,500,000 acres;2 but, according to Arrowsmith's map, which, as it is principally founded on the trigonometrical survey, cannot involve any material error, the area of England and Wales amounts to 57,960 square miles of 69.15 to the degree, or to 37,094,400 imperial acres. This is the measure that is now adopted in all the parliamentary reports.

England is, in general, a level country. In the north, Face of the Westmoreland, and a considerable part of Cumberland, country. Lancashire, and Yorkshire, are mountainous; but most of the other counties present a succession rather of picturesque eminences than of great elevations, forming a striking contrast to the barren ridges of the northern part of the island, and still more to the abrupt and awful scenery of Switzerland or the south of Germany. The highest mountains of England are in the north-west, where there are several exceeding 3000 feet in height; of these, the most noted, if not the highest, is Skiddaw. Between Lan-

1 See Turner's Elizabeth, vol. iv. p. 564.

2 Observations on the Produce of the Income Tax, &c. 1800.

Statistics. cashire and Yorkshire there is a range of nearly equal altitude; in Shropshire there are various hills; also in Somerset, Devon, and Cornwall, none of which, however, reaches the height of 2000 feet. There is a long hilly range which traverses the southern counties, in a line nearly due east and west from Dorsetshire to Kent; and another that stretches in a north-east direction from Wiltshire to the East Riding of Yorkshire; but both are of inconsiderable elevation. The traveller who proceeds northward from London to York meets very few hills, and hardly one mountain, in a distance of 200 miles. To the east of this road, the country, particularly Cambridgeshire, Lincolnshire, and part of the East Riding of Yorkshire, is almost entirely level, and bears a great resemblance to Holland; consisting of fens apparently gained in a very remote age from the sea. In Wales the face of the country is altogether different, being mountainous throughout, and some of the hills, in particular Snowdon and Cader Idris, attaining a height nearly 3600 feet above the level of the sea.

Sea-coast. The sea-coast of England presents a very different aspect in different situations; in some quarters, as in Cornwall, Kent, part of Norfolk, and Wales, it is steep and elevated; in other parts it is low, sandy, or marshy; exhibiting, on the whole, a variety which hardly admits of being brought under a uniform description, and which, though partaking much more of a level than rugged character, still differs greatly from the opposite shore of Flanders, Holland, and Friesland, which is one continued flat for more than 300 miles.

Rivers. Of the rivers of England, the largest are the Thames, the Severn, and the Trent. The Thames has no pretensions to romantic effect in any part of its course, nor is its body of fresh water large; but it is navigable for more than 120 miles, and, in the approach to London from the Nore, presents to the admiring spectator a prospect which, whether we consider the quantity of shipping, the thickening population, or the high state of improvement of its banks, is wholly without parallel. The Severn, though not equal to the Tay in quantity of fresh water, is superior to the Thames, and during the first part of its course preserves the characteristics of a mountain stream, being clear, and at times bordered by picturesque scenery; but on leaving Wales, and entering a more level country, it assumes a different aspect, and becomes a full slow-flowing river, admitting of easy navigation, and facilitating greatly the commerce of Shropshire, Worcestershire, and Gloucestershire. Towards its mouth it receives the Wye, a large navigable river from Wales. The Trent rises in Staffordshire, and after a course, often tortuous, but generally in a north-east direction, falls into the Humber, which soon after becomes a broad estuary. The Mersey, as a river, is of no great importance, but as an arm of the sea it affords, from the west, a very capacious inlet to the trade of Liverpool, and facilitates the conveyance of the produce of the interior. The Tyne is a large stream, having Newcastle on its banks, and Shields near its mouth. The Medway, as a fresh-water river, is small and sluggish, but acquires, by the influx of the tide, such a depth of water at Chatham as to adapt it to the reception of the largest men of war. Speaking generally, it is only the rivers of Wales, Westmoreland, Cumberland, and a few mountainous districts, that are rapid or transparent; the great majority of English rivers, particularly in the eastern and central part of the kingdom, are slow in their course, and owe the degree of beauty which they possess, less to the effect of the water or scenery, than to the

high cultivation and elegant disposition of the adjacent Statistical grounds.

A similar remark applies to the lakes of England. No-Lakes and thing can exceed the beauty of Winandermere, Keswick, forests. and Ulleswater; whilst the unvaried and uninteresting collections of water, such as Whittlesemeer, and others in the fen district, are to be compared only to those in North Holland or Friesland. In regard to wood, England is very well provided, without having many of those extensive forests which are met with on the Continent upon great mountain ranges, such as on the Jura ridge between France and Switzerland, and the Suabian Alps upon the Upper Rhine. It is in private plantations of limited extent, but of very frequent occurrence, and sometimes of great beauty, that the chief stock of English timber is to be found. Several very extensive tracts, such as the New Forest in Hampshire, the Forest of Dean in Gloucestershire, and Sherwood in Nottinghamshire, belong to the crown.

The soil of England is suited to a great variety of pro-Soil and ducts; but it has not the exuberant fertility of southern produce. climates, much labour and vigilance being requisite to obtain from it a grateful return. The quantity of moisture makes it admirably adapted for pasture; a characteristic which does not particularly strike those whose travels have never extended beyond their own country, but is of the highest importance in the view of those who have visited the Continent, and have witnessed the parched and arid state of the richest plains in the months of autumn. In regard to husbandry, it happens, by a singular coincidence, that in England, as in Scotland, the best is practised in the east part of the island, particularly in Norfolk and Northumberland. As to mineral treasures, the eastern counties of England, to the south of Yorkshire, are remarkable for containing no mines either of coal or of metal: these valuable deposits are to be sought in the more uneven districts of the north and west, viz. in Northumberland, Durham, Westmoreland, Lancashire, Shropshire, Worcestershire, Devon, and Cornwall, in Wales, and in the midland counties of Warwick, Stafford, and Derby. In the east, particularly in Lincoln and Cambridgeshire, vast improvements have been made in the present age by draining; but there are still the means of making further and valuable acquisitions. Much also remains to be done in bringing into culture extensive heaths and moorlands in almost every county in the kingdom. The soil of these is in general poor, but the tillage required would seldom be obstructed, as in many parts of Scotland, by the ruggedness of the surface. Comparing the soil of England with that of the adjacent countries, we find it greatly superior to that of Scotland, except along our eastern coast; it is perhaps better also than that of Ireland, fertile as the latter naturally is; nor needs it, on the whole, dread a comparison even with the soil of France, where, amidst districts of great beauty and luxuriance, the eye of the traveller is often struck with extensive tracts of heath or marsh.

The following table exhibits the area of each county in England and Wales, in acres and square miles, according to Arrowsmith's map. It also gives an estimate, 1st, of the extent of the arable, meadow, and pasture land in each county; 2dly, of the waste land in each capable of being converted into arable, meadow, and pasture; and, 3dly, of the extent of surface in each susceptible of cultivation, or of conversion into meadow or pasture, consisting of unimprovable mountain and moor, lakes, rivers, roads, canals, woods, fences, &c.

ENGLAND.
Counties. Total Area in Square Miles. Total Area in Statute Acres. Arable Meadow and Pasture Land. Waste Land capable of becoming Arable or Pasture. Surface incapable of becoming Arable or Pasture.
Acres. Acres. Acres. Acres.
Bedford.....463296,320248,00031,00017,320
Berks.....756483,840380,00075,00028,840
Buckingham.....740473,600440,0005,00028,600
Cambridge.....858549,120500,00017,00032,120
Cheshire.....1,052673,280594,00040,00039,280
Cornwall.....1,327849,280550,000190,000109,280
Cumberland.....1,478945,920670,000150,000125,920
Derby.....1,026656,640500,000100,00056,640
Devon.....2,5791,650,5601,200,000300,000150,560
Dorset.....1,005643,200573,00025,00045,200
Durham.....1,061679,040500,000100,00079,040
Essex.....1,532980,480900,00010,00070,480
Gloucester.....1,256803,840750,0006,00047,840
Hants.....1,041,920900,00080,00061,920
Hereford.....860550,400495,00024,00031,400
Hertford.....528337,920310,0008,00019,920
Huntingdon.....370236,800220,0003,00013,800
Kent.....1,537983,680900,00020,00063,680
Lancashire.....1,8311,171,840850,000200,000121,840
Leicester.....804514,560480,0005,00029,560
Lincoln.....2,7481,758,7201,465,000180,000113,720
Middlesex.....282180,480155,00017,0008,480
Monmouth.....498318,720270,00030,00018,720
Norfolk.....2,0921,338,8801,180,00078,00080,880
Northampton.....1,017650,880555,00050,00045,880
Northumberland.....1,8711,197,440900,000160,000137,440
Nottingham.....837535,680470,00028,00037,680
Oxford.....752481,280403,00050,00028,280
Rutland.....14995,36089,0001,0005,360
Salop.....1,341858,240790,00020,00048,240
Somerset.....1,6421,050,880900,00088,00062,880
Stafford.....1,628734,720560,00085,00089,720
Suffolk.....1,148967,680820,00088,00059,680
Surrey.....1,512485,120400,00050,00035,120
Sussex.....758936,320625,000170,000141,320
Warwick.....1,463577,280510,00030,00037,280
Westmoreland.....902488,320180,000110,000198,320
Wilts.....763882,560500,000200,000182,560
Worcester.....729466,560400,00030,00036,560
Yorkshire.....5,9613,815,0402,500,000600,000715,040
50,535 32,342,400 25,632,000 3,454,000 3,256,400
WALES.
Anglesey.....271173,440150,00010,00013,440
Brecknock.....754482,560300,00080,000102,560
Cardigan.....675432,000245,00080,000107,000
Carmarthen.....974623,360342,00060,000221,360
Carnarvon.....544348,160160,00060,000128,160
Denbigh.....633405,120360,00020,00025,120
Flint.....244156,160130,00010,00016,160
Glamorgan.....792506,880305,00060,000141,880
Merioneth.....663424,320350,00020,00054,320
Montgomery.....839536,960240,000100,000196,960
Pembroke.....610390,400300,00020,00070,400
Radnor.....426272,640235,00010,00027,640
7,425 4,752,000 3,117,000 530,000 1,105,000
ENGLAND AND WALES.
Totals..... 57,960 37,094,400 28,749,000 3,984,000 4,361,400

This table, originally given in the Report of the Committee of the House of Commons on Emigration, was compiled by Mr Couling, civil engineer. It can of course only be regarded as an approximation; but as Mr Couling has bestowed great attention to the subject, we do not suppose that it involves any material error.

Statistics. The climate of England is that of an insular country of limited extent, subject in consequence to rain, and exempt from intensity of either heat or cold. Compared with the adjacent countries, it is less humid than Ireland, which, like Portugal, in a different latitude, is the first land to intercept the vapours of the Atlantic; but, on the other hand, the climate of England is less dry than the opposite shores of Holland and Germany, to which every wind but the west arrives across a tract of continent. The climate of the south of England resembles much that of the opposite coast of Brittany, Normandy, and Flanders; whilst that of the north is very similar to the temperature of Denmark, which, like the north of England, is a narrow country inclosed on either side by the sea. In regard to the relative degrees of heat or cold, if England have not so much summer warmth as continental countries on the same parallel, she generally escapes in winter that intensity of frost, which in less than forty-eight hours of easterly wind so frequently seals up their harbours. On the other hand, our weather is much more variable than in the inland part of the Continent, and our sky is less clear; still it by no means follows that the balance of disadvantage is on our side. The moderate heat and frequent returns of rain preserve throughout the year that verdant pasture which in autumn the Continent enjoys only in its maritime districts; whilst those droughts in spring, which are so noxious in the south of France and in similar latitudes of the Continent, are hardly known among us. In point of salubrity, also, we may fairly stand a comparison with our neighbours; for, variable as is our atmosphere, no country perhaps exhibits a larger proportion of examples of longevity.

There exists, however, a considerable difference in the climate of different parts of England. The west, exposed to the Atlantic, and containing hills and mountains which intercept the clouds, is much more rainy than the east, where the aspect of the country is level, and the expanse of adjacent water much less considerable. Another and equally remarkable difference arises from latitude, the season being a fortnight or three weeks later in the north than in the south of England. Notwithstanding all the skill of the Northumbrian farmers, the traveller who leaves the harvest finished in the south of England in the first week of September, and who sees the corn cut, if not carried, in the midland counties, will generally find it, in the middle of that month, untouched and standing in most parts of the country to the northward of York. In winter this difference in the temperature of the north and south of England is less perceptible. As to the spring months, March is proverbially raw and cold, from the prevalence of easterly winds, particularly in that part of the kingdom adjacent to the German Ocean. April is in general wet and favourable to vegetation; but May, though a pleasant month, can hardly be said with us to bring more "indulgent skies." It is in June, July, and August, that our climate assumes a more settled aspect; whilst, at the same time, the power of taking exercise on almost any day is indicative of a very gratifying advantage over the sultry atmosphere of our southern neighbours on the Continent. November, though frequently wet and foggy, is only a prelude to winter; even December does not often bring intense frost, which is commonly reserved for January; and during the last twenty years we have been repeatedly without any frost of consequence, or heavy falls of snow, until a considerable time after the days had lengthened.

Variations of temperature. During the six winter months from October to March, the mean temperature of the central part of England is commonly between 42° and 43° of Fahrenheit. In December, January, and February, it is generally below 40°;

in July and August 62° to 65°. The variations of temperature within the space of twenty-four hours are felt most strongly in the equinoctial months, March and September. In these there is often a difference of 18° or 20° between the day and the night, whilst in the summer months this difference seldom exceeds 12° or 15°, and in December or January is only from 6° to 8°. The mean annual temperature, noon and night, of the central part of England, is about 50°. The greatest summer heat seldom exceeds 80°, and the cold of December or January is rarely below 20° or 25°. In mild situations in Devonshire and Cornwall, the winter temperature is 2°, 3°, 4°, and even 5° higher than in London. Penzance is the spot in England least visited by severe cold; and it is consequently much recommended in pulmonary cases.

Of rain, the largest proportion falls in the north-west of England, particularly in Westmoreland and Lancashire, owing to the neighbourhood of the sea and the height of the mountains. There the average quantity is found to be forty-five, fifty, and, in some situations, sixty inches, whilst the average of the kingdom at large is from thirty to forty inches.

The prevalent winds in England are west and south-west. Our outward-bound merchantmen are often detained, from the want of a northerly or easterly wind; but it rarely happens that our homeward bound are kept beating in the channel by the want of a westerly breeze. In these respects, also, the case is the same on the opposite shores of the Continent; the Dutch and French outward-bound vessels often experiencing detention from the continuance of westerly winds.

II.—Divisions, Civil and Ecclesiastical.

The civil divisions of England are those of counties, hundreds, and parishes. The county divisions, like several of our national improvements, date from the reign of Alfred, and, though subsequently increased by the acquisition of the three northern counties from the Scotch, have not, in other respects, experienced much alteration since his time.

The twelve counties of Wales added to the forty counties of England, make a total of fifty-two. The name of "county corporate" is given to most of the cities of England, and to some of the towns; and this distinction, little attended to by the public, and seldom mentioned but in law papers, implies that the district in question is governed by its own sheriffs and other magistrates, to the exclusion of the officers of the county at large.

The division into hundreds must have originated in reference to the existing population, and consequently implied a district containing either a hundred able-bodied men or a hundred families. As population increased very differently in different situations, great inequality ensued in regard to these divisions; and, in the reign of Henry VIII., many of the larger hundreds were partitioned into smaller districts. Hundreds were further subdivided in the time of Alfred into tithings, or associations of ten men, for the purpose of mutual defence. But both these subdivisions were unknown in the northern counties, from their not having been subject to the Saxon legislator: the latter, on their subsequent annexation to the crown of England, were divided into "wards" and "wapentakes;" terms sufficiently expressive of the warlike character of the age, and of the exposed situation of a frontier province.

The ecclesiastical division of England is into two arch-bishoprics and twenty-four bishoprics. The archbishopric or "province" of York, though by much the smaller of the two, comprises Northumberland, Durham, Westmoreland, Cumberland, Cheshire, Lancashire, the chief

Statistics. part of Yorkshire, and the Isle of Man; and Canterbury extends over all the rest of the kingdom, including even Jersey and Guernsey. The bishoprics are very different in extent of jurisdiction, as well as in annual emolument. The third and most familiar of the ecclesiastical divisions of England is into parishes. This mode of division seems to have existed from a very remote period, and to have continued during the last five centuries on the same footing, with very slight variation, as at present. The total number of parishes in England and Wales is 10,674.

III.—Harbours, Roads, Canals, Bridges.

Harbours. Portsmouth, Milford Haven, and Plymouth, are the finest harbours in England, and are surpassed by few if any in the world. Of these, Portsmouth is entitled to the pre-eminence. This noble harbour is about as wide at its mouth as the Thames is at Westminster Bridge, expanding within into a capacious basin, almost sufficient to contain the whole navy of Great Britain. Its entrance is unobstructed by any bar or shallow; and it has throughout water adequate to float the largest man-of-war at the lowest tides. The anchorage ground is excellent, and it is entirely free from sunken rocks, sand-banks, or any similar obstructions. The western side of the harbour is formed by the island of Portsea; and on its south-western extremity, at the entrance to the harbour, is situated the town of Portsea, and its large and important suburb of Portsea. Here are docks and other establishments for the building, repair, and outfit of ships of war, constructed upon a very large scale, and furnished with every convenience.

Portsmouth harbour has the additional and important advantage of opening into the celebrated road of Spithead, lying between the Hampshire coast and the Isle of Wight, and forming a safe and convenient retreat for the largest fleets.

Milford Haven deeply indents the southern part of Pembrokeshire. It is of great extent, and has within it many bays, creeks, and roads. The water is deep and the anchorage ground excellent; and being completely landlocked, ships lie as safely in it as if they were in dock.

Plymouth, which, after Portsmouth, is the principal naval depot of England, has an admirable double harbour. The roadstead in Plymouth Sound has recently been much improved by the construction, at a vast expense, of a stupendous breakwater more than 1700 yards in length. This bulwark protects the ships lying inside from the effects of the heavy swell thrown into the Sound by southerly and south-easterly winds.

London stands at the head of the river ports of Great Britain. Considering the limited course of the Thames, there is probably no river that is navigable for large ships to so great a distance from the sea, or whose mouth is less obstructed by banks. London is mainly indebted for the unrivalled magnitude of her commerce to her favourable situation on this noble river; which not only gives her all the advantages of an excellent port, accessible at all times to the largest ships, but renders her the emporium of the extensive, rich, and populous country comprised in the basin of the Thames.

The Mersey, now the second commercial river in the empire, is more incommoded with banks than the Thames, and is in all respects inferior, as a channel of navigation, to the latter. Still, however, it gives to Liverpool very great advantages; and the new channel which has recently been discovered in the banks promises to be of much importance in facilitating the access to and from the port.

Bristol and Hull are both river ports. Owing to the

extraordinary rise of the tide in the Bristol Channel, the former is accessible even to the largest ships. The Humber is a good deal impeded by banks; but it also is navigable as far as Hull by very large vessels. The Tyne admits vessels of very considerable burden as far as Newcastle, which, next to London, is the most important shipping port in the empire.

It was not until after 1660 that the public took an active part in regard to the highways. Turnpikes were at that time placed on the great North Road, in the counties of Hertford, Huntingdon, and Cambridge; but it was not till after the peace of 1748 that adequate exertions were made to redeem our public roads from their wretched condition. After 1760 the increasing price of agricultural produce, and the general spirit of improvement, had the most beneficial operation in this respect; and in the fourteen years from that time to 1774, no less than 452 acts were passed for the amelioration of our roads. It was then also that our inland navigation assumed an aspect of activity. The Bridgewater and Trent Canals were commenced; yet the number of canal acts which passed between 1760 and 1774 was only nineteen. The American war interfered considerably with public improvement; and it is only from the date of its cessation that we enter upon an active and prosperous era.

The total length of paved streets and paved roads in England and Wales may be taken, according to a parliamentary return in 1818, at about 20,000 miles; the total length of all other roads at nearly 96,000 miles. In France the highways are under the care of government, and are kept in repair out of the general taxes, without any tolls or turnpike dues; in England they are managed by the respective counties, represented by commissioners, and no part of the expense comes out of the public treasury. It is defrayed partly by local imposts, partly by dues levied; and the local impost is discharged either by labour or by composition money, thus:

The value of labour in kind (on an average of the years ending October 1812, 1813, and 1814) was..... L.535,423
The average amount of composition money..... 278,506
The average amount of dues or rents levied..... 601,954

Annual average of the expenditure on the roads of England and Wales.....L.1,415,883 being at the rate of nearly L.12. 6s. 8d. per mile. In the Highlands of Scotland, where the travelling is so much less, one third of this allowance is sufficient for the annual repair of the roads.

The canals of England are extremely numerous; in fact, no country except Holland can enter into competition with us in this respect. Amongst the principal are the Grand Junction, advancing from London above 100 miles into the midland counties; the Grand Trunk, extending from the Severn northward into Staffordshire, a distance of 139 miles; the Liverpool and Leeds, extending 130 miles; the Oxford, ninety-one miles. To proceed with the enumeration would be almost endless; suffice it to observe, that the English canals are of moderate size, being from twenty-five to thirty, thirty-five, and forty feet in width, and, in general, from five to six feet in depth; the barges navigating them are very long, frequently seventy or eighty feet, on a width of ten, twelve, or fourteen feet; but in many cases their dimensions, at least their width, are necessarily smaller, the less frequented canals being narrower than those we have mentioned. Could the application of steam to navigation have been foreseen, the canals of England would probably have been made wider. For full details with respect to the canals of England, and the recent improvements in their construction, and in travelling by

Statistics. them, the reader is referred to the article NAVIGATION
INLAND.

Bridges. The principal bridges in the kingdom are the six erected across the Thames at London, three of which have been opened since 1817. Of these, two, the Southwark and Vauxhall, are of cast iron, the one being of three very large arches, and the other of nine arches, each of seventy-eight feet span. The first example of an iron bridge on a large scale, either in England or any other country, was that erected in 1796 at Wearmouth in Durham, the span of which was 240 feet. In the same year was finished at Buildwas, near Colebrook Dale, over the Severn, an iron bridge of 130 feet in span. See article BRIDGE, in this work.

IV.—Agriculture.

Of the state of English agriculture in former ages we can form some idea from a reference to the acts of the legislature. In these we find, at a very early date, the traces of that policy which expects abundance and cheapness to result from discouraging the exportation of corn. No permission to export seems to have been granted till 1394, and then only on the payment of certain duties; in 1436 some additional latitude was given, and exportation was allowed when the quarter of wheat did not exceed a price corresponding to nearly 13s. of our present money. The reign of Elizabeth was the epoch of a great rise in the prices of corn, originating, not, as was vulgarly asserted, in the "decay of tillage," but in the sudden depreciation of money, produced (as has been explained in the article CORN LAWS) partly by degradation of the coin, and partly by the influx of silver from the mines of America. The complaints of the "decay of tillage," if they express any thing more than the ordinary discontent of the ignorant part of the consumers, are to be accounted for by the gradual consolidation of small farms, and by inclosing land for pasture, with a view to the exportation of wool. In these days, however, government participated in the prejudices of the people; and the general purport of the acts passed under Elizabeth and her successors was to shackle exportation and prevent a rise of price. It was not till the reign of Charles II. (1670) that the exportation of corn was exempted from taxation; and it is from 1689 that we are to date that fundamental change in our corn laws which encouraged exportation by a bounty.

Clover, turnips, and potatoes were introduced into England in the seventeenth century. In the Improver Improved, published by Blythe in 1649, we find the first traces of what may be termed the modern system of husbandry; that is, of a rotation of crops, and of the occasional substitution of green for culmiferous crops. But the practice, though thus early introduced, and though it lies at the foundation of all good husbandry, made but little progress for a very long period. The writings and the example of the famous Jethro Tull, in the early part of last century, notwithstanding he carried his theory to an excess, did much to introduce the practice of drilling, and had a very favourable influence on agriculture. Nothing, however, did half so much to accelerate the march of improvement, as the wonderful increase of manufactures and commerce, and consequently of the town population, subsequently to the peace of Paris in 1763. The greater number, and still more the improved circumstances, of the people, occasioned, in particular, a very great increase in the demand for butchers' meat. And it is to this circumstance that we are mainly indebted for the extraordinary

improvements which have been made during the last sixty or seventy years in stock husbandry. But the indirect influence of the augmented demand for butchers' meat has been equally conspicuous, and has proved of the utmost advantage to arable husbandry, inasmuch as it caused a corresponding increase in the demand for green food, that is, for turnips, clover, &c. This did incomparably more than anything else to introduce that intermixture of green and culmiferous crops which is so essential to good husbandry; and it was the real cause of the greatest of all agricultural improvements, namely, the substitution of turnips for fallows on all light lands. This has increased the productive power of the soil in a degree not easy to be conceived; and, coupled with the frequent substitution of beans for naked fallows on stiff clay lands, has in all probability more than doubled the available raw produce of the kingdom.

For a lengthened series of years England exported large quantities of corn. But notwithstanding the vast additions made to the supplies of corn by the improvements alluded to, the still greater increase of wealth and population, after occasioning, first a diminution, and next a cessation of exportation, has for many years past made the balance incline on the side of importation. It has been supposed by some that this change was owing to the alterations effected in the laws with respect to the importation of corn in 1772; but we have elsewhere shown that there is no room or ground for any such opinion. (See CORN LAWS AND CORN TRADE.) There cannot, indeed, be the shadow of a doubt that our having changed from being an exporting to an importing country, is entirely owing to the demand having shot a head of the supply, in despite of the wonderful increase of the latter. If doubt should remain in the mind of any one as to this being the real cause of the change, it would be removed by attending to the progress of the inclosure bills. The first act for effecting an inclosure was passed in the reign of Charles II. Since the revolution the progress has been as follows:

Number of
Acts passed.
Number of
Acres inclosed.
In Queen Anne's reign..... 2..... 1,439
In George I.'s reign..... 16..... 17,660
In George II.'s reign..... 226..... 318,778
In George III.'s reign to 1797... 1532..... 2,804,197

According to this statement, taken from the report of the committee on waste lands, it appears that each inclosure act passed during that period of the reign of George III. which terminated with 1797, inclosed at an average 1830 acres. Now it appears from the official returns, that from 1798 to 1833 both inclusive, 2103 inclosure acts had been passed; and supposing each to have inclosed, as before, 1830 acres, the total would amount to 3,848,490 acres, making, when added to the quantity inclosed previously to 1798, an aggregate of no less than 6,652,687 acres inclosed since 1760. But as it seems probable that the earlier acts would apply to a larger extent of land than the later ones, we may perhaps estimate the total extent of land inclosed and divided by act of parliament from 1760 to 1833 at from 5,500,000 to 5,800,000 acres. And it may be safely affirmed, that in consequence of its inclosure, the produce of this immense extent of land has been increased at least from four to five fold.

As might be expected, a decidedly greater number of inclosure acts were passed in 1802, and during the five years ending with 1814, when prices were enormously high, than in any other equal period of time.

Statistics. Account of the Number of Inclosure Acts passed, and of the average Price of Wheat, in England and Wales, each Year from 1798 to 1833, both inclusive.

Years. Acts. Price of Wheat per Quarter.
L. s. d.
1798522103
179965376
1800635137
1801805183
1802122375
1803962166
1804104301
1805524710
1806713190
1807763133
1808913190
1809924157
1810122562
18111074146
1812133655
1813119589
18141203140
181581344
18164731510
1817344149
181846441
1819443130
1820403711
1821362162
182215247
1823132135
182419340
182523387
1826202189
1827222169
182817305
182925363
183020343
183110364
1832102188
183315

The principal crops cultivated in England and Wales are wheat, oats and beans, barley and rye, turnips and

potatoes, with clover, hops, flax, &c. It is to be regretted Statistics that no estimate has been formed on which much reliance can be placed, either of the extent of land under different crops, or of the average product per acre. Mr Middleton, in his Survey of Middlesex (vol. ii. p. 640), estimated the whole land under tillage in England and Wales at 12,000,000 acres; and Mr Comber, in his Treatise on National Subsistence (p. 52), estimated it at 11,591,000 acres. We incline to think that these estimates are not very wide of the mark as to the number of acres; but in both, the extent of land under wheat seems to be materially underrated, whilst that under fallow seems to be equally exaggerated. The following may, we believe, be regarded as a pretty fair estimate of the extent of land under the different species of crops, and in fallow, in England and Wales, on an average of the last half dozen years.

Acres.
Wheat.....3,800,000
Barley and rye.....900,000
Oats and beans.....3,000,000
Clover.....1,300,000
Roots (turnips, potatoes, &c.).....1,200,000
Hops, gardens of all sorts, &c.....150,000
Fallow.....1,650,000
12,000,000

In 1800 a committee of the House of Lords was appointed to inquire into the causes of the scarcity which then prevailed. Under the directions of this committee the board of agriculture circulated queries, and investigated with considerable minuteness the subject of the average productiveness of the different species of crops in the different countries of Great Britain. The result of these inquiries are given in the appendix to the Report of the Committee; and from these it appears that the average produce of wheat throughout England and Wales may be taken at from two and a half to three quarters (Winchester measure) per acre, barley at four quarters per ditto, oats four and a half, peas two and a half, beans three and a half, and potatoes at 250 bushels. We have, however, been assured that the wheat culture has since been so much improved, that making due allowance for the greater quantities produced in the best wheat counties, as Kent and Essex, the average produce may be safely reckoned at three quarters an acre; and taking these results, and the average prices of the last ten or twelve years, we get the quantity and value of the principal crops as follows:

Crops. Acres. Produce per Acre. Quarters. Total Produce. Quarters. Price per Quarter. Value.
Wheat..... 3,800,000 3 11,400,000 s. L.
Barley and rye..... 900,000 4 3,600,000 60 34,200,000
Oats and beans..... 3,000,000 13,500,000 30 5,400,000
Roots..... 1,200,000 £5 5 0 25 16,875,000
Clover..... 1,300,000 per acre. 13,125,000
Totals..... 28,500,000 69,600,000

The oats and beans are here blended together and reckoned at the price of oats; whereas beans are about 10s. a quarter higher. Allowing for this, the two may be worth together £17,500,000. The grounds occupied as gardens, hop-plantations, &c. may produce, at an average, about £15 an acre, or £2,250,000 a year; making the total value of the different crops raised in England and Wales £72,475,000.

Attempts have frequently been made to estimate the Expense expenses attending the cultivation of land at different periods; but we have not seen any statement of the sort on which we should be disposed to place much reliance. A good deal of the expense is of a very fluctuating nature, depending on the prices of grain and stock, the rate of wages, amount of capital employed and interest thereon, rent, public burdens, &c. It may probably be considered,

Statistics. and taking all things into account, that the expenses of cultivation in England and Wales are at this moment about thirty per cent. higher than in 1792.

Cattle and sheep, &c. Owing to the improvements in the breed and in the feeding of cattle, the weight of those now annually slaughtered has increased from a third to a half above what it is stated by Dr Davenant to have been at the beginning of last century. Various discordant estimates have been formed of the number of cattle in England and Wales; but the best authorities seem to think that they may amount to 4,000,000 or 4,500,000.

Horses. Horses are of course far less numerous than cattle, and are proved by the tax returns not to exceed 1,400,000 or 1,500,000. (See McCulloch's Commercial Dictionary, art. Horses.)

Sheep. According to the elaborate tables of Mr Luccock, revised by Mr Hubbard, there appears to be in England and Wales nearly 15,000,000 of short, and rather more than 4,000,000 of long woolled sheep, with about 7,000,000 lambs. The weight and value of the fleece varies very much according to breed, keep, &c. But, at an average, the weight of the fleeces of short-woolled sheep may be taken at from three to four pounds, and those of the long-woolled at from seven to nine pounds. The total quantity of wool annually produced in England and Wales is estimated by the same gentlemen at 385,000 packs, of 240 pounds each. Merinos were introduced about the beginning of the present century, and were imported in large numbers after our alliance with Spain in 1809. Opinions differ in regard to their utility, the carcass not having answered so well as the fleece. Considerable advantage, however, has been derived from crossing them with our own breeds, and further experience may lead to more beneficial results.

The great pasturage counties are Leicester, Northampton, Lincoln, and Somerset. Of the counties producing butter and cheese, the principal are Cheshire, Gloucestershire, and Wiltshire. But notwithstanding the immense supplies of these articles produced at home, the demand is such, that at an average we import about 130,000 cwts. a year of foreign butter, and about an equal quantity of cheese, principally from Holland. The average annual importation of Irish butter into England cannot be precisely ascertained; but in 1825 it amounted to 425,000 cwts. and may now (1834) be taken at 500,000.

Produce of grass-lands. The produce of grass-lands may be determined in two ways; either by ascertaining the quantity and value of the different articles annually produced, or by taking a general rough average value per acre. The former would be the most satisfactory mode; but the details are too numerous and too loose to admit of their being put forward with much confidence. We believe, however, that the annual value of the various products derived from pasture-land may be estimated, on an average, at about L.3. 10s. an acre; being equivalent, upon 17,000,000 acres, to L.59,500,000.

This sum of L.59,500,000 consists, probably, of the following items:—

Cattle 1,000,000, at L.20 each..... L.20,000,000
Calves 200,000, at L.3..... 600,000
Sheep and lambs 6,800,000, at L.1. 10s..... 10,200,000
Wool (exclusive of slaughtered sheep) 338,000 packs, at L.12..... 4,056,000
Hogs and pigs 450,000, at L.1. 10s..... 675,000
Horses 200,000, full grown, annually produced 3,000,000
Poultry, eggs, rabbits, &c..... 1,000,000
Meadow and grass for work and pleasure horses 10,000,000
Dairy produce, or milk, butter, and cheese..... 9,969,000
L.59,500,000

The total annual value of the agricultural produce of England and Wales may, therefore, be estimated at about L.132,000,000 (L.72,475,000 + L.59,500,000).

The rent of land in England and Wales is usually estimated at from one fifth to one fourth of the value of the produce, which, taking the latter at L.130,000,000, would give from L.26,000,000 to L.32,500,000, or L.29,250,000 at an average, as the rent of the kingdom. We incline to think that this is pretty near the real amount. In 1810 the rent of England and Wales, as ascertained by the property-tax commissioners, was L.29,500,673; and the general opinion amongst persons well informed as to such matters seems to be, that the rent at present is about equal to the rent in 1810; the rise that took place in the four succeeding years having been balanced by the fall that has taken place since.

The capital employed in the cultivation and stocking of the land in England cannot be estimated, at the present prices, at less than from L.6 to L.7 an acre; which, excluding waste land, would give a total capital of from L.172,494,000 to L.201,243,000. It appears from the property-tax returns for 1810, that the profits made by the occupiers were almost identical with the rent. But it will be observed, that, besides the interest on, or return for, the capital employed in farming, the profits in question included all that the occupiers received on account of their trouble in superintendence, and for the greater part of their own labour and that of their families.

We have already, in the article AGRICULTURE, treated of the points of superiority in our husbandry over that of the Continent; ascribing it to various causes, and to none more than the medium size of our farms, which differ equally from the large unmanageable tracts held by Polish noblemen, and the diminutive occupancies so common amongst the French peasantry, particularly since the Revolution.

The size of farms in England is greatest in the best cultivated districts, that is, in the counties to the east of the metropolis, viz. Kent, Essex, Suffolk, and Norfolk. Farms are also extensive in Northumberland. In these counties the engagements of farmers are for larger sums than in East Lothian, Berwickshire, or any part of Scotland, rents being frequently from L.800 to L.1200 and L.1500 a year. In more retired districts, particularly in Cumberland, Westmoreland, and Wales, the occupancies, whether farmed or held in property, are in general very small; and an average of all the farms of England and Wales would not much exceed L.150 a year.

Leases in England are, with the exception of particular districts, granted for seven years only; when the term is longer the case is peculiar, and applies to land which evidently requires very extensive improvement. But by far the largest portion of England is held by tenants at will, or by tenants holding only from year to year. There is in such cases something like an assurance, on the part of the landlord, that the tenant shall not be removed for a certain number of years, or that otherwise the improvements shall be considered and allowed for. When a tenant holds from year to year there is a written agreement, with specified covenants, the tenant being subjected to fines in the event of a deviation from them. Both methods are highly injudicious; and it is in the prevalence of these, more than in the existence of tithes and poor's rates, that we are to look for the backward state of agriculture in many of our finest counties. No class of men have more liberality than the English landholders; but it would be in vain to expect a tenant to lay out much capital on the improvement of a farm of which his tenure comes to an end in seven years, or may be disturbed by the commission of a trespass or the occurrence of a death.

Statistics. A tenant so situated loses the habit of reflecting on improvements, and even of carrying into effect those which he is aware would in time be advantageous. If he succeed in saving money, he is much more likely to place it out at interest than to employ it in his own business.

In Scotland the rent bears a higher proportion to the gross produce than in England, being in general not less than from one fourth to one third. This is owing not certainly to greater capital, and still less to superior soil, but to an exemption from tithe and poor's rate, the use of long leases, and partly, and principally, we believe, to greater economy, particularly in the number of and expenditure upon horses. It is in tillage, not in pasturage, that the Scotch farmers lay claim to superiority. On comparing English agriculture with that of the Continent, we find that our chief superiority consists in machinery and in live stock. Thrashing machines are in a manner unknown on the Continent, and all iron manufacture is of inferior quality. In regard to live stock, the countries which approach nearest to us are Jutland, Holstein, Holland, Flanders, and Normandy, all evidently indebted for their extensive pasturages to the vicinity of the sea; in the interior of the Continent, pasturage is, in general, very indifferent. Even in these maritime provinces, the cattle, though frequently large, are not fattened in the same gradual manner as in our grazing counties; and the meat, consequently, is not of equal flavour. In horses the inferiority is more apparent to the eye, and holds both as to size and shape. Flemish horses are large, but heavy; whilst the Norman breed, though capable of much labour, is small in size when compared with the English. Nowhere are horses seen of such bulk and strength as the drays in London. If they are, as is supposed, of foreign origin, they have greatly surpassed the primitive stock, since neither the Netherlands nor Holstein can now match them.

We cannot close this part of our subject without a few remarks on the connection between the state of our agriculture and the extent of our financial burdens. Those who compare the heavy pressure of our taxes with the lighter burdens of our continental neighbours, have in general the satisfaction of finding some counterpoise in the superior dexterity of our people, and the productiveness of our capital. This holds true in regard to our navigators, our merchants, and our manufacturers; and it holds in agriculture in regard to grazing, because in grazing little personal labour is requisite, whilst capital and active habits of business are of the most beneficial operation. But, in the department of tillage, much remains to be done ere England can claim any great superiority. Farms are yet too small in more than two thirds of England, and leases are generally too short. The course of husbandry is frequently injudicious, the ploughs are on a bad construction, and there exists a gross misapplication of animal strength. However light the soil, and however strong the horses, it is still customary to put three, four, and frequently five, in a plough, throughout almost all the west and south-west counties. These are the main causes of the comparative unproductiveness of our finest counties, and of our being obliged to pay so heavy a premium in the shape of corn laws to support our agriculture. Without the corn laws, our lower classes would be supported on nearly the same terms as their continental neighbours; and there would be no occasion, with all our taxes, to dread the competition of foreigners in almost any branch of industry; but if the manufacturers of England are obliged to pay for their support thirty per cent. more than those of France and Germany, whilst their wages are very little higher, what other prospect have we than that of increasing emigration and the augmentation of the poor's rates?

The quantity of land still remaining uncultivated in the shape of wastes and commons is a frequent topic of animation; persons unacquainted with agricultural calculation calling loudly for this island being brought into culture, whilst the landed interest object to passing a general inclosure act, or, in other words, to giving unlimited scope to speculative cultivation. We by no means participate in the apprehensions of the latter; but we would abstain from giving any artificial stimulus to this, more than to any other branch of industry. Let the progress of inclosure be regulated by the gradual increase of our population, and the discovery of better methods of turning such land to account. No benefit can be derived from applying to this purpose any more capital than would go to it voluntarily; and every experienced farmer is aware, that the best prospect of profit lies, not in reclaiming new soils, but in bestowing further labour and expense upon the land already under culture.

V.—Mines—Quarries—Iron, Copper, Tin, and Salt Works.

In regard to minerals, England does not yield to any country in Europe in natural abundance, and takes the lead of all in the extent to which these rude treasures have been converted to purposes of utility. Our great superiority lies in our coal-mines, which are not only more productive, but much more advantageously situated, than those of the Continent. To the mines along the coast a ready conveyance is afforded by our insular position, and to those in the interior by our inland navigation. The consumption of coal in England for domestic use has been estimated at 20,000,000 tons annually. Large as this quantity is, and larger as it must be when we add to it the vast consumption of manufactories, such as iron-works, copper-works, salt-works, glass-houses, and the like, there is no reason to apprehend the exhaustion of this precious mineral; the depth of the coal beds being very great, and the extent of ground containing them amounting to many hundred thousand acres. The principal coal-beds lie in Northumberland, Durham, Derbyshire, Staffordshire, and Glamorganshire. The ports for shipping coal in large quantities are Newcastle, Sunderland, Swansea, and Whitehaven. The motive of the tax on coal exported to foreign countries is thus neither an apprehension of eventual scarcity, nor even a calculation of revenue, so much as a dread of giving our continental neighbours the means of rivaling our manufactures. Coal is not wanting in France and Germany, but the mines are at a distance from water carriage, and as yet very imperfectly wrought, whilst for the purpose of domestic fuel the inhabitants give a preference to wood.

A material advantage was conferred on the coal trade, and on all the southern parts of the empire, by the late abolition of the tax of six shillings a chaldron on all sea-borne coal. Mr McCulloch, founding upon the calculations of Mr Ruddle and other eminent practical authorities, estimates the total number of persons engaged in the coal trade at from 160,000 to 180,000. (Commercial Dictionary, art. Coal.) The conveyance of coal from the Tyne and the Wear to London, and other southern counties, constitutes by far the most important part of the foreign trade of the empire.

In 1832 the exports of coal to foreign countries amounted to 588,446 tons, of the real or declared value of £228,615, producing a revenue of £56,706. We subjoin an account of the quantity of coal brought coastwise and by inland navigation into the port of London in 1831 and 1832, specifying the ships employed and the quantities furnished by each of the shipping ports:—

Ships. Ports whence Shipped. Tons.
1831. 1832. 1831. 1832.
3845 3627 From the port of Newcastle..... 1,151,851 1,171,227
2041 2145 From the port of Sunderland..... 561,234 600,217
337 783 From the port of Stockton..... 62,749 172,930
223 190 From the ports of Blythe and Seaton Sluice..... 59,862 48,938
167 199 { From Leith, Inverkeithing, Kirkaldy, and other ports in }
Scotland.....
39,337 49,579
121 195 From Swansea, Llanelly, Milford, and other places in Wales.... 26,302 45,065
272 389 From Hull, Goole, Gainsbro', and other places in Yorkshire.... 43,957 51,122
Quantity which passed the Boundary Stones on the Grand }
Junction Canal at Grove Park, Herts, and on the River }
Thames, at Staines.....
8,381 10,742
7006 7528 2,053,673 2,149,820

Quarries. In quarries, whether of stone or slate, England is not rich, particularly the eastern half of the kingdom; and hence the almost universal use of brick in ordinary buildings. It is not till the traveller reaches Durham that he finds stone commonly used. In the northern counties quarries occur frequently; in the southern, those of Portland and Bath are the most considerable. Still the annual profits of the whole are small when contrasted with the product of our mines.

Iron mines and works. No branch of our industry has increased more rapidly in the present age than our iron-works. A century ago it was computed that we required an annual importation of 20,000 tons of foreign iron; an importation which for many years seems to have been on the increase, so as, after the middle of last century, to carry the quantity required to 30,000, 40,000, and even to 50,000 tons. This supply was brought to us from Sweden and Russia, and, though burdened with duty, it was in quantity more than double our native produce. But fortunately, after the year 1780, discoveries were made which increased greatly our supply at home. Bar iron had been manufactured in England, as on the Continent, with charcoal fuel only, coal being deemed inapplicable to that purpose. Under that impression, the rapid consumption of the wood in the neighbourhood of our different iron-works had necessitated a removal, at a great expense, of materials from one spot to another, and was on the point of causing an alarming decay in the business, when our iron-masters, after long perseverance, succeeded in applying coal to their manufacture. They had to contend with various prejudices, particularly the supposed inferiority of iron so made; but, in the course of years, the manufacture acquired such an extent that there were, in 1805, two hundred and twenty blast-furnaces, making 250,000 tons of pig iron.

The transition from war to peace did a good deal of injury to some branches of the iron trade; but the effect of the change was not of long duration, and the production of iron has since been astonishingly increased. In 1820 the produce was calculated at 400,000 tons. The excitement and speculation of 1824 and 1825 had a wonderful influence on this department. According to careful inquiries made at the time, the furnaces at work in England and Wales in 1827, with their produce, were as under:

Staffordshire..... 95 furnaces... 216,000 tons.
Shropshire..... 31..... 78,000
South Wales..... 90..... 272,000
North Wales..... 12..... 24,000
Yorkshire..... 24..... 43,000
Derbyshire..... 14..... 20,500
Totals..... 266..... 653,500

Owing to the failure of various rail-road and other projects set on foot in 1825 and 1826, the supply of iron seems to have greatly exceeded the demand; and there was a very heavy fall of prices in 1828, 1829, and 1830. But within the last two years prices have again risen to more than their former level; and the iron trade is at this moment in a state of great activity. The produce of the various furnaces of England and Wales may be estimated at 650,000 tons, worth at an average L.6. 10s. a ton, making a grand total of L.4,225,000. For more ample details, the reader is referred to the article IRON.

Copper-mines have long been known in England, but they were wrought with very little skill or effect until towards the year 1700. Even at that time the annual produce, after smelting the metal from the ore, was only a few hundred tons of copper; and it hardly exceeded 1000 tons annually down to the middle of last century. From that time forwards the increase became considerable, as well in Cornwall as in Devon, North Wales, and Derbyshire; in all of which copper-mines were discovered and wrought. In North Wales there were two mines, Parys and Mona, which, for some time after the year 1780, yielded annually a large quantity of ore, but they are no longer so productive: the mines of Devon and Derbyshire continue to be wrought, but the great product is from Cornwall, the mines of which yield 145,000 tons of ore annually; the metal obtained, varying from five to fifteen in the hundred parts, may be stated at 12,000 tons of copper. It is the Welsh collieries which afford to Cornwall, as to Devonshire, the means of smelting; and as the ore is less heavy than the coal required for this operation (one ton of ore requiring from two to two and a half tons of coal), the practice is to convey the ore in vast quantities to Wales, particularly to Swansea. The total quantity of coal consumed for this purpose at Swansea is nearly 350,000 tons a year, exclusive of a further consumption of coal at the copper-mines of Cornwall, in working the ponderous steam-engines used in throwing out the water from the pits. In this, as in other minerals, France is greatly behind England. She has various copper-mines, but her coal-mines, at least those hitherto wrought, are at too great a distance to make such undertakings profitable; and she consequently requires an annual importation from England.

The entire produce of the copper-mines of England and Wales is at present about 14,000 tons a year of pure metal; and taking the price at L.100 a ton, its aggregate value will be L.1,400,000.

In 1831 there were exported brass and copper manufactures of the value of L.803,124, of which India, China,

Statistics. and Ceylon took L.348,045, the United States L.169,533, France L.91,580, &c.

Tin. Cornwall is also the great seat of the tin-mines of England. A century ago the average produce of our tin mines hardly exceeded.....1500 tons.

From 1720 to 1740 the average produce was 2100
1740 to 1760.....2570
1760 to 1780.....2740
1780 to 1800.....3100
1826 to 1829.....4677

The produce of the mines at present does not materially differ from the last of these averages. From abroad we receive tin from one quarter only, viz. the East Indies, in particular from the island of Banca. Of this we imported, in 1831, 776 tons, the chief part of which was re-exported to the Continent of Europe. Of our own tin, about the half is used at home, and the other half finds its way to foreign countries, particularly Russia, France, and Italy.

Lead. The lead-mines of England are principally in Cumberland, Northumberland, and Derbyshire; the whole being calculated to produce from 12,000 to 15,000 tons annually. Black lead is found in abundance in Cumberland, in the romantic district of Borrowdale; but the mine is opened only periodically, in order that the market may not be overstocked.

Salt. Salt is already a very important product in England, and is likely to become much more so from the measures urged of late years on the legislature, part of which have been adopted, whilst a further part seems only to wait a season of less financial pressure. (Report of Committee on the Salt Duties, June 1818.) Salt is obtained in several ways; partly from brine springs, partly from the rock, partly from sea water. In the last manner it is manufactured in various salt-pans along the coast, viz. in Hampshire, Kent, and Essex; also in the northern counties of Durham and Northumberland, where the abundance of coal reduces materially the expense of the process. But the great supply is from the rock salt and brine springs of Cheshire, situated in the southern part of the county, near Northwich. From these springs it is obtained (see the article CRASSUM) at the rate of one gallon of solid salt from four gallons of liquid, whilst common sea water does not yield above one in twenty-eight. The consumption of salt in this country is immense. Necker estimated its consumption in those provinces of France which had purchased an exemption from the gabelle (peys francs redimées) at about 19½ lbs. (Eng.) for each individual. (Administration des Finances, tome ii. p. 12.) From all that we have been able to learn on the subject, we believe that the consumption of the people of this country may be estimated a little higher, or at 22 lbs.; the difference in our food and habits, as compared with those of the French, fully accounting for this increased allowance. On this supposition, and taking the population at 16,000,000, the entire consumption will amount to 352,000,000, or 144,200 tons.

Exclusive of this immense home consumption, we annually export about 10,000,000 bushels, which, at 56 lbs. a bushel, are equivalent to 250,000 tons. The Americans are the largest consumers of British salt, the exports to the United States in 1829 having amounted to 3,515,924 bushels. During the same year we exported to the Netherlands 1,583,517 bushels, to the British North American colonies 1,472,000 ditto, to Russia 1,388,490 ditto, to Prussia 949,834 ditto, &c.

The cheapness of this important necessary of life is not less remarkable than its diffusion. Its present cost may be estimated, at a medium, at from 14s. to 16s. a ton.

Salt has been at all times a favourite subject of taxation. In this country it was first taxed in the reign of

William III. In 1798 the duties amounted to 5s. a bushel, Statistics. but they were subsequently increased to 15s. a bushel, or about forty times the cost of the salt. So exorbitant a duty was productive of the worst effects, and, in particular, occasioned a great deal of smuggling. The duty having in consequence become exceedingly unpopular, was finally repealed in 1823.

VI.—Fisheries.

A season of peace is always favourable to the extension of our fisheries; and, if we may judge from the progress lately made, this branch of our national industry is likely to be carried further than at any former period of our history. Of this we shall treat more fully under the article FISHERY. At present our space allows no more than a brief notice of the principal branches of our fisheries.

The mackerel fishery is strictly English, and is carried Mackerel. on with great vigour on the coasts of Kent and Sussex, in May, June, and July. Large as the supply is, it would still admit of augmentation; and herrings also might be caught in vast quantities on the coast of Kent in October and November. The desideratum with the fishermen, now that peace has reduced their expense, is not so much a high price as a certain market; and the most effectual way to procure that is, to quicken, by every possible means, the conveyance to London, which has been accomplished by the employment of steam-boats. The conveyance of fish by land-carrage from Brighton, and other parts of the Sussex coast, to London, has also been accomplished by improvements in the roads.

The pilchard fishery takes place chiefly on the coast of Pilchards. Devonshire and Cornwall, and, though subject to great fluctuations, as well from the seasons as from our political situation relatively to the Continent, forms on the whole an important branch, employing a number of seamen both in catching the fish and in carrying it to foreign markets. Its season is generally from June to September.

The herring, the most important of all our fisheries, is Herring. happily now in a state of rapid extension. It formed, during the seventeenth century, the great employment of the Dutch seamen, and was contemplated by their neighbours with very jealous eyes. Accordingly, in the reign of Charles II., particularly after the rupture with Holland in 1672, several acts were passed for the encouragement of our fishermen, and in a spirit of hostility to the Dutch. The subsequent accession of William to our throne, and the long friendship between the two countries, relaxed the exertions of government; and it was not till after the peace of 1748 that a large bounty was given on the tonnage of the busses, or masted vessels, so employed. Still our fishermen proved unable to compete with the experience and patient perseverance of the Dutch, and it was found necessary to raise the bounty from 30s. to 50s. per ton. This had the desired effect, and the number of busses increased; but the additional 20s. being withdrawn in 1771, the fishery again declined. The American war, and, subsequently, the wars of the French revolution, proved extremely adverse to its extension. At last, in 1808, an act was passed carrying the bounty to L.3 a ton on the busses, with a further grant of 2s. per barrel on all herrings caught, whether in busses or boats. This act was further confirmed in 1815, and the bounty per barrel raised to 4s. with the qualification that the herrings should be gutted before curing.

In consequence of the encouragement thus afforded, the fishery was materially extended; but this was effected at a great expense, and had, besides, several bad consequences. The bounties given by government tempted persons

Statistics without capital or skill to enter into the business, to the great injury of the regular fishermen; so that notwithstanding the extension of the business, it was found, as is invariably the case with all departments carried on by means of a bounty, to be in a very unhealthy state. In consequence partly of the circumstances now stated, and partly in consideration of the real and substantial relief given to the fishery by the abolition of the duties on salt, it was resolved gradually to withdraw the bounty, which

totally ceased in 1830. And we are happy to have to state, Statistics that though the fishery fell off whilst the bounty was in the course of being withdrawn, it has since been materially increased, and is now in a better situation than at any former period.

The curing of herring in Scotland is still subjected to the supervision of a public board; but we are not aware that its interference has been or can be productive of any good effect; and it will, we hope, be dispensed with.

Account of the Quantity of Herrings Cured, Branded for Bounty, and Exported, from 1811 to 1831 both inclusive.

Years ending 5th April. Total Quantity of Herrings Cured. Total Quantity of Herrings Branded for Bounty. Total Quantity of Herrings Exported.
Gutted. Ungutted. Total. Gutted. Ungutted. Total.
181165,43026,397½91,827½55,662½18,88019,25338,133
181272,515½39,004111,519½58,43027,56435,25662,820
181389,900½63,587½153,488½70,027½40,100½69,625109,725½
181452,931½57,611110,542½38,184½34,92983,474½118,403½
1815105,372½54,767160,139½83,37668,93872,367½141,305½
1816135,98126,670½162,651½116,43681,544½26,143½107,688
1817155,77636,567½192,343½140,018½115,480½23,148138,628½
1818204,270½23,420½227,691183,059½148,147½14,192162,339½
1819203,777½37,116½340,894270,022½212,301½14,860½227,162
1820347,190½35,301382,491½309,700½244,0969,420253,516
1821413,30828,887½442,195½363,872289,445½5,360294,805½
1822291,626½24,897½316,522½263,205½212,890½2,065½214,956
1823225,03723,832248,869203,110169,459½985½170,445
1824335,45056,740½392,190½299,631238,505½1,125239,630½
1825303,39744,268½347,665½270,844½201,882½134202,016½
1826340,11839,115½379,233½294,422½217,053½20217,073½
1827259,171½29,324288,495½223,606165,741695166,406
1828339,36060,418399,778279,317½210,766893211,659
1829300,242½55,737355,979½234,827202,813½3,062205,875½
1830280,933½48,623½329,557218,418½177,7763,878½181,654½
1831371,09668,274439,370237,085260,9763,927264,903

Greenland was first discovered by the English; but in this, as in other branches of navigation, we long allowed the Dutch to take a lead. It was not till after 1750 that, government having granted a bounty of 40s. a ton on every vessel employed in the whale fishery, a considerable increase took place in this branch.

In 1750, the vessels employed were only nineteen; in 1756 they had increased to sixty-seven. The war soon caused a decrease of one half; but at the return of peace in 1763 this fishery revived, and in 1770 the vessels employed amounted to fifty, in 1773 to fifty-five, in 1775 to ninety-six. The American war again caused a decrease, and in 1782 the vessels so employed were only thirty-eight. In 1784 they increased to eighty-nine, and in 1785 to 140. After this they exceeded 200 annually till 1793; but the long continuance of the late wars reduced them below the half, and the advantages of peace have been counteracted by causes which have as yet prevented the English vessels from regaining the number employed previously to 1793. In 1832, the whale fishery employed thirty-nine English and forty-two Scotch ships, of the aggregate burden of 26,393 tons.

The Newfoundland fishery has been considerable for fully a century past. As a nursery for seamen, it is accounted of such consequence as to have formed the object of a specific article in most of our treaties of peace. The fish caught, particularly in time of peace, is sent less to Britain than to the Catholic countries in the south of Europe; a market subject to all the interruptions attendant on a change of political relations. The number of vessels employed in this fishery at different times was as follows:

In 1731.....70
1764.....140
1774.....254
The American war caused a diminution; but in 1784 the number was.....236
1785.....292

At this rate the fishery continued until the war of 1793, after which, particularly after our rupture with Spain in 1797, it fell off greatly; the fishing vessels in 1798 being only 140.

The continuance of war, and the aggrandisement of the French in Italy, occasioned additional depression; so that in 1810 the number of our vessels employed at Newfoundland did not exceed ninety-two. The peace seemed to promise a revival of this important nursery of seamen; and in the year 1816 the number of vessels which arrived in Newfoundland was 795, manned by 6000 seamen (Report of Committee in June 1817, p. 7); but the trade, both then and in 1817 and 1818, proved unprofitable, in consequence of indifferent seasons, of the high duty imposed on fish imported in British vessels into Naples, and of the competition of the French fishermen, supported by a high bounty from their government. Of late years very few British ships have gone to the Banks; but we carry on an extensive fishing along the coast of Labrador, and on the shores of Newfoundland. But the more convenient situation of the New Englanders, who are very expert fishermen, give them advantages with which the British find it very difficult to contend; and, partly from this cause, and partly from the forcing system of the French, and the greater duties laid on the importation of salted fish into

Statistics. most Catholic countries, the business appears to be rather in a depressed state. Mr McGregor estimates the total produce of the British fisheries in the seas and islands of America, on an average of the five years ending with 1832, at L.857,210 a year.

It is matter of surprise to foreigners that a maritime nation should not have more effectually cultivated this great means of facilitating the support of our population. The ample supply which might have been afforded by the Nymph Bank, on the south-east coast of Ireland, has been avowedly neglected; and it was only in 1818 that we made the discovery of a bank of almost equal productiveness in the vicinity of Orkney. Fish is little known to the mass of the people in our inland counties. Whilst the value of butcher's meat annually consumed in England exceeds L.30,000,000 sterling, the value of the fish caught upon our coasts and in our rivers hardly exceeds L.2,000,000. Yet its price, with the economy and improved arrangements attendant on a state of peace, would not exceed 20s. a cwt., whilst other animal food costs more than twice that sum. But the truth is, that fish has never been a favourite article of food with the bulk of the English people; and, notwithstanding all that has been said to the contrary, we are by no means satisfied that they would gain materially by a change in this respect.

VII.—Manufactures.

Woollen manufacture. In this great department of our productive industry we begin with woollens, which, although no longer the largest of our manufactures in point of exportation, nor even in the value annually made, is entitled to the first place from the priority of its establishment, as well as from the substantial basis on which it rests. England, from the extent of her pastures, abounded in wool from a very remote age, and the inhabitants were doubtless capable of manufacturing it into rude clothing; each weaver working in his separate cottage, and with very little aid from machinery. In the twelfth and thirteenth centuries we appear to have had only the most humble fabrics, and to have imported all cloth of finer texture; sending abroad our wool in quantities to Flanders, a country the inhabitants of which were at that period much further advanced than the rest of Europe, with the exception of Italy. It was in the middle of the fourteenth century that a better system was introduced. Flemish manufacturers were invited over to England, and improved greatly the quality of our home-

Statistics. made woollens. The seats of this branch of industry appear at that time to have been Kent and Essex; afterwards Gloucestershire, and subsequently the West Riding of Yorkshire. It occupied at first the southern and more improved districts, and spread afterwards to the northward, on account of the cheapness of labour, the abundance of coal, and the convenience of waterfalls for the machinery. The general character of the woollen manufacture of England has been that of slow progress, but of little fluctuation; the latter evidently a consequence of its depending more on home consumption than on exportation. In the long period from 1700 to 1780, the exports experienced a regular but not rapid rise, amounting in the latter years to about L.3,500,000, whilst our home consumption increased in proportion to our augmenting numbers. More recently the manufacture has been materially improved by the adoption of various important mechanical inventions in the spinning, weaving, and dressing departments. On the whole, however, improvement has been much less rapid in it than in the cotton manufacture; so that whilst our exports of cotton stuffs and yarn have increased beyond all precedent, those of woollens have been comparatively stationary.

As we shall enter fully, in the article WOOLLEN MANUFACTURE, into the details connected with its history, progress, and present state, it would be useless, even if our limits permitted, to anticipate these here. We shall only observe, therefore, that the entire value of the manufacture is estimated by the best authorities at L.18,000,000, which is believed to be distributed nearly as follows:

Raw material (wool)..... L.6,000,000
Oil, dye-stuffs, soap, &c..... 1,200,000
Wear and tear of capital and profit.... 3,500,000
Wages..... 7,300,000
Total..... L.18,000,000

Now, supposing that each person, young and old, male and female, engaged in the manufacture, earns, at an average, L.20 a year, the total number employed will be 365,000.

By far the largest proportion of the raw material of the manufacture is the produce of our own flocks; but for many years past, and especially since the peace, we have imported large quantities of wool, principally from Germany. The subjoined accounts give a full view of the state of the foreign woollen trade in 1831, the last year for which the details have been published.

Account specifying the Countries to which Woollen Goods were exported in 1831, exhibiting the Quantity and declared Value of those sent to each. (Parliamentary Paper, No. 550, September 1833.)

Countries to which Exported. Woollen Manufactures, viz.
Entered by the Piece. Entered by the Yard. Hosiery and Small Wares.
Quantity. Declared Value. Quantity. Declared Value. Declared Value.
NORTHERN EUROPE.
Russia..... Pieces. 31,796 L. 94,599 Yards. 112,320 L. 6,609 L. 478
Sweden..... 1,935 1,903 2,702 254 251
Norway..... 4,774 12,807 3,364 236 733
Denmark..... 1,094 1,827 10,851 489 358
Prussia..... 95 323 528 59 10
Germany..... 337,183 359,482 728,044 56,572 8,938
The Netherlands..... 90,011 161,101 392,775 24,579 14,525
Carry forward..... 466,888 L.632,042 1,250,584 L.88,798 L.25,293
Countries to which Exported. Woollen Manufactures, viz.
Entered by the Piece. Entered by the Yard. Hosiery and Small Wares.
Quantity. Declared Value. Quantity. Declared Value. Declared Value.
Brought forward..... Pieces.
466,888
L.
632,042
Yards.
1,250,584
L.
88,798
L.
25,293
SOUTHERN EUROPE.
France..... 5,034 9,090 24,999 2,144 279
Portugal, Proper..... 51,011 138,914 50,930 4,739 2,975
    Azores..... 2,336 8,659 7,700 564 56
    Madeira..... 1,153 4,912 2,612 200 109
Spain and the Balearic Islands..... 47,885 97,017 64,710 6,296 1,381
    Canaries..... 1,314 3,832 10,799 715 134
Gibraltar..... 5,251 12,376 23,267 2,102 981
Italy and the Italian Islands..... 97,091 196,126 87,915 5,877 2,183
Malta..... 1,853 7,576 6,713 623 108
Ionian Islands..... 175 681 1,510 151 192
Turkey and Continental Greece..... 5,117 17,275 8,633 898 125
Morea and Greek Islands..... ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
AFRICA.
Egypt (Ports on the Mediterranean)..... 72 380 356 26 50
Tripoli, Barbary, and Morocco..... ..... ..... 80 10 .....
Western coast of Africa..... 2,623 4,620 5,082 339 2,217
Cape of Good Hope..... 8,253 23,274 60,035 3,726 1,208
St Helena..... 128 936 7,538 581 32
Mauritius..... 2,865 6,939 3,427 294 340
ASIA.
East India Company's Territories, Ceylon
and China.....
224,641 634,074 105,398 8,945 2,563
Sumatra, Java, and other islands of the
Indian Seas.....
11,216 25,115 3,660 232 .....
Philippine Islands..... 240 455 7,776 518 .....
New South Wales, Van Diemen's Land,
and Swan River.....
3,918 16,145 93,774 8,404 1,711
New Zealand and South Sea Islands..... 188 483 13,500 1,220 .....
AMERICA.
British Northern Colonies..... 89,203 271,484 900,124 58,226 19,281
British West Indies..... 23,072 62,009 149,952 10,439 3,521
Hayti..... 1,454 5,156 675 87 .....
Cuba and other Foreign West Indies..... 8,737 31,263 74,077 5,065 990
United States of America..... 833,110 1,890,838 2,586,409 266,198 75,143
STATES OF CENTRAL AND SOUTHERN AMERICA, viz.
Mexico..... 15,094 61,938 15,467 2,080 473
Colombia..... 3,244 16,835 18,109 1,810 595
Brazil..... 24,175 76,865 71,323 5,407 1,063
States of the Rio de la Plata..... 14,910 58,137 49,119 5,077 1,705
Chili..... 21,282 137,307 18,315 1,353 759
Peru..... 15,911 101,333 19,385 2,488 2,164
ISLES OF GUERNSEY, JERSEY, ALDERNEY,
MAN, &c.....
7,954 26,816 52,693 5,324 1,524
Total export..... 1,997,348 L.4,580,902 5,797,546 L.500,956 L.150,155

Imports of Wool.—During the year 1831 we imported 31,652,029 lbs. of wool, of which 22,437,022 lbs. came from Germany, 3,474,823 lbs. from Spain, 2,493,337 lbs. from New South Wales and Van Diemen's Land, with smaller quantities from France, Portugal, Prussia, &c.

For an account of the prices and qualities of wool, &c. the reader is referred to article WOOL in this work, or in McCulloch's Commercial Dictionary.

Our cotton manufacture is entitled to the greatest attention on different accounts. Of all our manufactures, it

affords the largest export, and exhibits the most rapid improvements in machinery. Its introduction, though not remote, is less recent than is commonly supposed. It appears to have taken place about two centuries ago, when it was established at Manchester; but it was long conducted upon a very limited scale. The raw material, imported at first only from the Levant, in particular from Smyrna, began, after 1660, to be supplied by our West India colonies. The quantity imported amounted, about the year 1700, to 3500 bales; but, increasing with the ex-

tended cultivation of our colonies, it averaged, about the year 1720, something more than 7000 bales. From the colonial conquests of the war of 1756, our import of cotton received a further augmentation; but the manufacture increased very slowly, a great part of our cotton being re-exported to Holland, for the supply of Dutch and German weavers. It was not till after the peace of 1763, and the invention, first of the carding machine, and next of the spinning jenny, that this manufacture became considerably extended. In 1775, the average import of cotton approached to 18,000 bales. A variety of inventions, unequalled in the history of manufacturing industry, were now made (see our article on the COTTON MANUFACTURE), which gave an astonishing stimulus to the business. Fine calicoes and muslins were introduced; the workmen were withdrawn from their detached dwellings, and collected into large factories, and the price of the finished article experienced a reduction, notwithstanding a rise in the raw material, and in the wages of labour. The period which followed the peace of 1783 is perhaps unexampled for the reduction of price and the consequent extension of sale that took place in regard to cotton goods. The commencement of hostilities in 1793 gave a pretty severe shock to the business; but the improvements in machinery continuing, the manufacture soon recovered, and has gone on increasing, under many vicissitudes, with a rapidity unparalleled by any other business, either in this or any other country. Neither does there seem to be any ground for fearing that this progress will be speedily checked. On the contrary, our superiority in all that contributes to the advancement of the manufacture is so very decided, that, provided the public tranquillity be preserved unimpaired, we have nothing to fear from the competition of others.

The reader is referred to the article COTTON MANUFACTURE in this work for an account of the rise and progress of this great branch of national industry. But the following tabular statements are interesting, as exhibiting the present magnitude and importance of the trade, the sources whence the raw cotton is derived, and the foreign markets for the finished articles.

Statement of Cotton spun in England and Scotland in 1832, and the Quantity of Yarn produced; showing also the Quantity spun in England, and how disposed of.

Number of Bags consumed. Average Weight of Bags in lbs. Total Weight in lbs. Weekly Consumption of Bags.
American cotton..... 615,402 345 212,313,690 11,834.34
Brazil ditto..... 135,298 180 24,353,640 2,601.46
Egyptian ditto..... 45,864 220 10,090,080 882.00
West India ditto..... 6,454 300 1,936,200 124.06
East India ditto..... 55,416 330 18,287,280 1,063.36
Taken from inland stock..... 33,160 310 10,279,600 637.36
Total number of bags consumed..... 891,594 277,260,490 17,146.20
Allowed for loss in spinning, 1\frac{1}{2} oz. per lb..... 30,325,366 lbs.
Total quantity of yarn spun in England and Scotland..... 246,935,124
Deduct yarn spun in Scotland..... 24,338,217
Total quantity of yarn spun in England..... 222,596,907
HOW DISPOSED OF.
Exported in yarn during the year..... 71,662,850
    thread..... 1,041,273
    manufactured goods..... 61,251,380
Estimated quantity of yarn sent to Scotland and Ireland..... 5,700,000
Exported in mixed manufactures not stated in the above named articles, consumed in cotton banding, healds, candle and lampwick, wadding, and loss in manufacturing goods..... 12,000,000
Balance left for home consumption and stock..... 70,941,404 222,596,907

Mr McCulloch gives, in the second edition of his Dictionary, the following estimate of the total value of the cotton manufacture of Great Britain, and of the amount of capital, and the number of persons employed in it.

Total value of every description of cotton goods annually manufactured in Great Britain..... L.34,000,000
Raw material, 240,000,000 lbs. at 7d. per lb..... L.7,000,000
Wages of 800,000 weavers, spinners, bleachers, &c. at L.22. 10s. a year each..... 18,000,000
Wages of 100,000 engineers, machine-makers, smiths, masons, joiners, &c. at L.30 a year each..... 3,000,000
Profits of the manufacturers, wages of superintendence, sums to purchase the materials of machinery, coals, &c..... 6,000,000
L.34,000,000

The capital employed may be estimated as follows:
Capital employed in the purchase of raw material 4,000,000
Capital employed in payment of wages.....10,000,000
Capital vested in spinning-mills, power and hand-loom, workshops, warehouses, stocks on hand, &c.....20,000,000

L.34,000,000
Of 288,674,000 lbs. of cotton wool imported into the united kingdom in 1831, 219,333,000 lbs. were from the United States, 31,695,000 lbs. from Brazil, 25,805,000 from the East Indies, 7,714,000 lbs. from Egypt, 2,401,000 lbs. from the British West Indies, 334,000 lbs. from Colombia, 366,000 lbs. from Turkey and Continental Greece, 344,000 lbs. from Malta, &c. (Parl. Paper, No. 550, Sess. 1833.)

Burns' Glanee, a tabular statement, annually published at Manchester, and admitted to be drawn up with great care, contains an account of the cotton spun in Great Britain in 1832, and how that spun in England was disposed of, with several other interesting particulars.

Statistics. This annual quantity of 222,596,907 lbs. gives a weekly supply of 4,280,709 lbs. Mr Burns estimates the quantity spun per spindle, per week, at 8½ oz. making the total number of spindles employed in England and Wales, in 1832, amount to 7,949,208. Those employed in Scotland during the same year are estimated, in the same way, at 881,020. Mr Burns further calculates the number of looms

employed in England and Wales at 203,703. The consumption of flour in the manufacture is much greater than any one not pretty well acquainted with it would really suppose. The average quantity required for each loom is estimated at 4 lbs. per week; making the total annual consumption in England and Wales 42,301,584 lbs. or 215,824 barrels of 196 lbs. each. Statistics.

Account of the Export of Cotton Goods and Yarn in 1831, specifying the Countries to which they were sent, and the Quantity and Value of those sent to each. (Parl. Paper, No. 550, September 1833.)

Countries to which Exported. Cotton Manufactures. Cotton Twist and Yarn.
Entered by the Yard. Hosiery, Lace, and Small Wares. Quantity. Declared Value.
Quantity. Declared Value. Declared Value.
Yards. L. L. Lbs. L.
Northern Europe, Russia..... 1,960,634 68,412 7,252 13,959,666 790,371
Sweden..... 18,280 615 216 708,510 34,885
Norway..... 434,744 18,704 1,829 34,440 1,553
Denmark..... 312,461 6,213 992 118,316 5,716
Prussia..... 1,456 80 20 19,448 1,556
Germany..... 41,520,616 940,441 205,527 20,435,442 1,195,718
The Netherlands..... 13,285,524 383,127 214,123 9,091,238 794,536
Southern Europe.—France..... 946,660 35,357 13,613 2,616 1,127
Portugal Proper..... 23,377,245 373,916 13,454 251,096 17,534
    Azores..... 780,099 17,126 383 3,240 149
    Madeira..... 569,794 14,577 677 ..... .....
Spain and the Balearic Islands..... 4,756,652 129,778 9,503 36,170 3,147
    Canaries..... 631,079 15,646 515 2,500 131
Gibraltar..... 9,909,009 238,732 6,158 39,196 3,178
Italy and the Italian Islands..... 38,164,564 1,035,748 44,172 8,444,518 438,834
Malta..... 1,967,953 49,594 1,403 342,740 13,468
Ionian Islands..... 216,159 5,210 615 62,450 3,643
Turkey and Continental Greece..... 24,565,580 585,473 3,335 1,735,760 90,015
Morea and Greek Islands..... 344,893 6,540 ..... 11,000 600
Africa.—Egypt, ports on the Mediterranean..... 2,354,628 56,088 26 93,600 6,000
    Tripoli, Barbary, and Morocco..... 7,810 123 ..... ..... .....
    Western coast of Africa..... 2,384,000 75,058 446 280 34
    Cape of Good Hope..... 2,904,106 83,612 3,807 193 19
    St Helena..... 73,371 2,173 254 ..... .....
    Mauritius..... 2,432,894 65,185 3,400 ..... .....
Asia.—East India Company's territories, Ceylon and China..... 43,385,852 1,182,574 13,972 6,624,823 467,861
Sumatra, Java, and other islands of the Indian Seas..... 5,915,088 194,889 1,730 312,000 22,653
Philippine Islands..... 1,132,583 33,639 13 18,800 1,796
New South Wales, Van Diemen's Land, and Swan River..... 1,905,428 61,567 8,380 7,233 380
New Zealand and South Sea Islands..... 5,014 135 ..... ..... .....
America.—British Northern Colonies..... 15,618,106 413,737 25,536 307,997 10,376
British West Indies..... 21,975,459 606,923 31,568 14,416 835
    Hayti..... 6,828,576 178,743 4,731 320 30
    Cuba and other Foreign West Indies..... 11,569,441 364,547 11,329 200 10
    United States of America..... 68,587,893 2,518,824 344,427 317,392 19,063
    States of Central and Southern America, viz. Mexico..... 12,150,426 471,208 23,712 784,215 37,972
    Colombia..... 5,757,562 177,559 9,060 28,880 1,580
    Brazil..... 26,271,527 681,461 20,540 2,740 334
    States of the Rio de la Plata..... 6,242,134 176,874 9,743 800 30
    Chili..... 12,793,220 431,323 26,851 4,800 130
    Peru..... 6,312,931 222,708 19,605 ..... .....
Isles of Guernsey, Jersey, Alderney, Man, &c..... 1,013,852 44,364 35,755 4,405 755
Total export..... 421,385,303 12,163,513 1,118,672 63,821,440 3,975,091

Such being the vast extent and importance of the cotton manufacture, the probability of our preserving our ascendancy in it becomes a very interesting topic of inquiry. But it is obvious that a great deal of conjecture must always insinuate itself into our reasonings with respect to the future state of any branch of manufacturing industry. They are all liable to be affected by so many contingent and unforeseen circumstances, that it is impossible to predicate, with any thing like certainty, what may be their condition a few years hence. But abstracting the effects of national struggles and commotions, which can neither be foreseen nor calculated, we do not think there is any thing in our state, or in that of the different commercial and manufacturing countries of the world, which should lead us to anticipate that the gloomy forebodings of those who contend that the cotton manufacture of England has reached its zenith, and that it must now begin to decline, will be realized. The natural capabilities we possess for carrying on the business of manufacturing are, all things considered, decidedly superior to those of any other people. But the superiority to which we have already arrived is perhaps the greatest advantage in our favour. Our master manufacturers, engineers, and artisans, are more intelligent, skilful, and enterprising, than those of any other country; and the extraordinary inventions they have already made, and their familiarity with all the principles and details of the business, will not only enable them to perfect the processes already in use, but can hardly fail to lead to the discovery of others. Our establishments for spinning, weaving, printing, bleaching, &c. are infinitely more complete and perfect than any that exist elsewhere; the division of labour in these is carried to an extent incomparably greater; the workmen are trained from infancy to industrious habits, and have attained that peculiar dexterity and slight of hand in the performance of their separate tasks, which can only be acquired by long and unremitting application to the same employment. Why, then, having all these advantages upon our side, should we not keep the start which we have already gained? Every other people who attempt to set up manufactures must obviously labour under the greatest difficulties as compared with us. Their establishments cannot at first be sufficiently large to allow the division of employments to be carried to any considerable extent, at the same time that expertness in manipulation, and in the details of the various processes, can only be attained by slow degrees. It appears, therefore, reasonable to conclude that such new beginners, having to withstand the competition of those who have already arrived at a very high degree of perfection in the art, must be immediately driven out of every market equally accessible to both parties; and that nothing but the aid derived from restrictive regulations and prohibitions will be effectual to prevent the total destruction of their establishments in the countries where these are set up. (McCulloch's Commercial Dictionary, article Cotton Manufacture.)

The seats of the cotton manufacture of England are, first, Manchester, which takes decidedly the lead of all other places; and, secondly, Preston, Bolton, Blackburn, and Wigan, all situated in Lancashire. After these come several other places, partly in Lancashire, in Cumberland, and the West Riding of Yorkshire. The introduction of cotton works into the last, the great seat of the woollen manufacture, is owing to the practicability of the same workmen turning, in case of need, from wool to cotton, and vice versa.

We have already noticed the surprising increase in the produce of our iron mines since 1780. This increase of the raw material, joined in some cases to the command of

coal in the vicinity, and in all to a facility of conveyance of coal and iron by canals, has, in the last forty years, given a great extension to our hardware manufacture. In it we take the lead of foreigners as decidedly as in our cottons; and if the ratio of increase has not been altogether so rapid, it is owing, not to inferior ingenuity in the workmen, but to radical differences in the two manufactures. In no department has the subdivision of employment been carried to so great a length; in none are its effects in cheapening production so conspicuous. Birmingham and Sheffield are the two great work-shops for our hardware; the latter is confined to iron and steel; whilst, in the former, not only iron and steel, but copper and brass, constitute the materials of labour. Sheffield fabricates articles which are less for ornament than utility, and which possess, in general, a certain bulk, such as grates, spades, sickles, files, knives, fenders, fire-irons; whilst in Birmingham there is, in addition to articles of solidity, a surprising variety of toys, fancy goods, and petty manufactures; each trifling when considered separately, but the whole forming an aggregate of great value. The most insignificant of these, such as a brass cock or a button shank, passes through a number of hands; and each artisan performs only a single operation. He thus acquires an extraordinary dexterity in his limited department, and, in the course of a day, dispatches several hundred, perhaps even a thousand articles, through his particular stage; the result of all which is, that the price, when sold in quantities, is incredibly low. Another very interesting feature in the situation of Birmingham, is the populousness of its neighbourhood. Yet in none of our large towns is living less expensive; an advantage owing partly to the abundance of coal, partly to the ready supply of milk and vegetables from the wide space occupied by the population.

The nail trade is carried on, not in the town of Birmingham, but in a part of the surrounding district: it is computed to employ 30,000 men, women, and children; for even this heavy article admits of a subdivision of employment, which lightens the labour, and enables the workman to avail himself of the aid of his family. Of the two towns, Sheffield is by much the more ancient; the command of coal and iron in the same neighbourhood having rendered it, so far back as the thirteenth or fourteenth century, a place for the fabrication of the homely articles used in these days by our ancestors. It is about a century since its razors, knives, and files began to take a more delicate shape. Birmingham, however, embraced a wider range, and advanced with much greater rapidity; but Sheffield also has its adjacent district inhabited by manufacturers, though to a much less extent than the vicinity of Birmingham. This district, called Hallamshire, extends six or seven miles to the west of Sheffield.

Hardware is made in several other places, such as Bilston, Wolverhampton, Dudley, and Walsall. Each of these towns is situated in Staffordshire, and, in point of manufacture, is small only in comparison with Birmingham or Sheffield. Articles apparently very trifling are manufactured to a surprising extent in different places, such as pins at Gloucester, needles at Red-ditch in Worcestershire, watch movements and main springs at Prescott in Lancashire. The total value of our articles of iron, steel, brass, and copper, including the manufacture from its earliest to its most finished stage, is necessarily fluctuating, but may be computed at £16,000,000 annually; two thirds of which appear to be consumed amongst ourselves, whilst the other third is exported to two great markets, the Continent of Europe and the United States of America. A return during three years of peace, but of unequal mercantile prosperity, will suffice to show the average of annual export.

Quantity and Real Value of Metals and Hardware exported from Britain in 1831.
1. Metals, as a raw material, or in the first stage of manufacture. Quantity. Real Value.
Iron and steel, wrought and unwrought..... Tons 124,312 L.1,123,372
Lead and shot (partly from Scotland)..... ... 6,777 96,333
Tin, unwrought..... Cwts. 21,763 77,718
2. MANUFACTURES in a finished state.
Hardware and cutlery..... ... 336,194 1,622,429
Brass and copper manufactures..... ... 181,951 803,124
Plate, plated ware, jewellery, and watches..... ... .. 188,144
Tin and pewter wares, and tin plates..... ... .. 230,143

The number of persons, young and old, employed in the hardware manufacture, is reckoned at between 300,000 and 400,000. In no branch of industry is the transition from war to peace more sensibly felt; government, the great customer for arms and artillery, withdraws entirely from the market; whilst the stagnation of commerce, the postponement of new buildings and new machinery, in short, the various evils inseparable from a sudden and general change, which have been so cruelly felt throughout Britain since the peace, all operate most materially against the sale of the heavier and more useful articles. Similar causes cast a damp over the purchase of ornamental and fancy goods; so that in no department of our population have the sufferings of the labouring classes or the augmentation of the poor's rate been greater. But there is happily a point beyond which depression cannot go; the reduced price of a commodity rendering it applicable to more extended uses, and adapting it to the means of humbler customers. Iron has not been found suitable as a substitute for stone in paving the streets of the metropolis; but, if its price continue low, it is likely to supplant timber for a variety of purposes, of which the public at large are not as yet aware. Reduction of price will lead also to a demand from the Continent for our hardware; the article in which of all others the French and Germans are most behind us. Their mines of iron are seldom adjacent to their mines of coal, and, with the exception of a few places, such as Liège in the Netherlands, and St Etienne near Lyons, the hardware workmen are not collected in such large associations as to admit of the necessary subdivision of labour. As improvement advances, and a taste for comfort becomes diffused, the inhabitants of the Continent will extend their purchases; they will see in the keys, the locks, and other neat and convenient articles of English fabric, a substitute for the bolts, the latches, and other coarse contrivances, with which they have hitherto been obliged to content themselves. In the United States, iron and coal are found, it is said (Mellish's Travels in America, chap. 67), in abundance, in a quarter (Pittsburgh in Pennsylvania) where land and provisions are certainly much cheaper than in Britain; but the scattered state of American population must, during several ages, oppose serious obstacles to the division of employment necessary in all the nicer branches of the hardware manufacture; particularly as the ease with which the Mississippi and Ohio are navigated by steam opens even the western states to the importation of British goods. Upon the whole, therefore, we look on our hardware manufactures, notwithstanding their present depression, as resting on a solid basis, because in them we combine several advantages:—the raw material, the command of cheap fuel, and the use of machinery, which, the more it is adopted, will bring a greater proportion of the work within the compass of women and boys, and thus lessen the proportion borne by wages in the cost of the finished article.

Linen has never formed one of the staple manufactures of England, flax having been less cultivated amongst us than on the opposite shore of the Netherlands; a country

which, in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, supplied the rest of Europe with the finest linens and woollens. When England subsequently advanced in manufacturing arts, the abundant supply of wool pointed out the most suitable branch; and we were contented to continue our imports of linen from the Netherlands, from France, and from Germany, or to favour the manufacture of the sister island in a department which did not excite our jealousy. In Ireland, the linen manufacture dates about two centuries ago, and is said to have owed much of its extension to the measures of the unfortunate Wentworth in the reign of Charles I. The annual consumption of linen in England a century ago was probably not far below that of her double population at present, owing to the very general substitution in our time of cotton articles. Then, as at present, the linen manufacture of England was established chiefly in Lancashire, in Cumberland, and in a county very remote from these, namely, Dorsetshire. In 1745 government, apprised of the extension of the manufacture of coarse linen in Silesia and other parts of Germany, and actuated by the fallacious notion of making a monopoly of all kinds of productive industry, granted a bounty of 1½d. per yard on the exportation of all British linen of a value from 6d. to 18d. per yard; in other words, a premium of 20 or 25 per cent. on the prime cost of all inferior qualities exported. So large a grant soon augmented the manufacture of osnaburges and other coarse cloths, particularly in Scotland, although the ratio of increase was infinitely smaller than in the case of cotton, where there was no premium, but a rapid improvement of machinery. The demand for bounty, in the ten years ending in 1785, was about L.33,000 annually. More recently these impolitic issues were greatly increased; but at length the impolicy of forcing a manufacture in this way having become obvious to every one, the bounties, after being gradually reduced, ceased finally in 1830.

Ireland and Scotland, particularly Dundee, are both superior to England in the manufacture of linen. But some of the flax mills established at Hull are on a more extensive scale than any other in the empire. The reader will find under the head of LINEN, in this work, an account of the value of the manufacture in each division of the empire, of the amount of capital, and the number of hands employed in it, &c.

In the silk manufacture, as in linen, we have had to contend with a formidable opposition in other countries, particularly in France and Italy; and we have also had to import the whole of the raw material. It would therefore hardly have been attempted by our countrymen, but for the great profits expected from an article of general use amongst the higher classes. Its introduction amongst us goes back to the fifteenth century. About the beginning of the seventeenth it seems to have been carried to a considerable extent, owing certainly not to the luxury of the age, nor to any great proportion of affluent persons in the community, but to silk being almost the only article of apparel in which the vanity of dress could display itself. Towards the end of the reign of Charles II., about the year 1680, raw silk

abilities began to be imported in quantities from India; and the English manufacture received a substantial addition by the numbers and ingenuity of the Frenchmen who settled in this country after the revocation of the edict of Nantes in 1683. Various circumstances thus contributed to preserve and extend the manufacture, which continued rather upon the increase till the general substitution of cottons for silks about 1790. This gave a serious shock to the manufacture, from which it recovered only by slow degrees. Its situation had not indeed been at any time prosperous; and the continued complaints of the manufacturers occasioned within these few years a fundamental change in the policy under which it had previously been conducted.

From the first introduction of the manufacture into England down to 1825, foreign silks were either positively or virtually excluded. But the monopoly which was thus secured to the manufacturers produced, what all monopolies invariably do, an indifference to improvement. Instead of trusting to the ingenuity or to the superior skill which they might have called to their aid for preserving their ascendancy in the market, the manufacturers depended upon custom-house regulations, and additional penalties on smuggling. In consequence, invention was quite at a stand. Such indeed was the influence of the system in this respect, that in 1826 the member for Coventry (Mr Edward Ellice) affirmed in his place in the House of Commons that the improved silk looms in use in various parts of the Continent enabled the workman to execute five times as much work as he could do here; whilst in every business not protected by a monopoly the result was precisely opposite. At length, after a great deal of discussion, it was resolved to adopt a more liberal system. In 1825 a bill was in consequence passed, allowing the importation of foreign silks on payment of an ad valorem duty of 30 per cent., accompanied, however, by the effectual reduction of the singularly oppressive duties which had previously been imposed on the imports of raw and thrown silk. This measure, though vehemently opposed at the time, has proved most successful. We are quite sure that we are within the mark when we affirm that the silk trade has made more progress since 1826, when the new system was introduced, than it did during the whole of the preceding century. The following is an account of the raw and thrown silk imported since 1820:—

Years. Raw and Thrown Silk.
lbs.
Years. Raw and Thrown Silk.
lbs.
1820..... 2,641,866 1827..... 3,610,727
1821..... 2,542,195 1828..... 4,765,241
1822..... 2,680,568 1829..... 3,805,933
1823..... 2,880,634 1830..... 4,318,181
1824..... 3,477,648 1831..... 4,621,874
1825..... 3,894,770 1832..... 4,224,897
1826..... 2,665,225

This table shows conclusively that the manufacture has increased nearly 50 per cent. since the adoption of those sound and liberal measures which have been the theme of so much ignorant invective. It is of importance too to observe, that not only our imports of raw silk, but also our exports of manufactured silk goods, are rapidly increasing. The following table shows this.

Declared Value of all Sorts of British Manufactured Silk Goods exported each Year since 1820.

Years. Declared Value. Years. Declared Value.
1820..... L.371,775 1823..... L.251,409
1821..... 374,473 1824..... 442,596
1822..... 381,703 1825..... 296,736
Years. Declared Value. Years. Declared Value. Statistics.
1826..... L.168,801 1830..... L.521,010
1827..... 236,344 1831..... 578,874
1828..... 250,870 1832..... 529,990
1829..... 267,931

It is plain, therefore, that the manufacture is not increasing merely by reason of an increased demand in the home market, but because we are rapidly gaining on our rivals in the markets of foreign countries. This affords unquestionable evidence of the improvement as well as the extension of the manufacture. In 1832 our exports of wrought silks to France itself amounted to about L.75,000.

Leather, however little it may figure as an article of Leather export, is necessarily one of extensive home consumption manufacture in every civilized country, particularly in such a climate as ours, and where there are so many rich and sumptuous equipages. It is matter of regret that we should have so very few data, official or otherwise, on which to form an estimate of the export or import of hides in former ages. Such an estimate would possess interest, as indicating the extent of our pasturage and the number of our cattle in comparison with our population. Whatever may have been the case at a remote date, the custom-house returns, for many years past, show, by the annual imports, that the demand for leather has greatly exceeded the home supply of hides. For a long time this importation took place from the Continent of Europe, and from the least civilized quarters; from countries, such as Lithuania and Poland, where the quantity of hides furnished by the cattle materially exceeds that of the leather required by the inhabitants. But since the opening of the trade to South America, it has been found more advantageous to import hides from that continent, where the herds of wild cattle are so numerous as to meet the eye of the traveller in almost every point of the horizon.

On an average of the two years ending with 1832 there were imported 199,033 cwt. of untanned, and 24,334 cwt. of tanned hides. The quantity of leather annually made in England and Wales may be estimated at about 45,000,000 lbs. The largest tanneries are at Bermondsey in Southwark; but there are also very extensive establishments of the kind in the country, as in Cheshire, Lancashire, Westmoreland, Cumberland; and also in Lincolnshire. The late war, by its long continuance, and the magnitude of our army and navy, produced great orders from government for our leather manufacture. Shoes were and still are made wholesale in several towns of Staffordshire, Cheshire, and Northamptonshire; but those made in London, by the principal dealers, are, though expensive, by far the best.

Of the annual value of the leather manufactured into shoes, boots, harness, saddlery, &c. there are no means of forming a correct estimate; but we have merely to consider the population of England, and the unavoidable extent of their wants, to be satisfied that from ten to twelve millions sterling are rather below than above the mark. But whilst our home consumption is so considerable, our export is comparatively small, and does not exceed half a million sterling. To Ireland, the leather we ship is merely tanned; to other countries our exports are in a manufactured shape. The duty on leather was wholly abolished in 1830.

Connected with our general manufacture of leather is Glove the glove trade, a branch of no inconsiderable extent, trade being carried on in several of the midland and western counties, viz. at Woodstock, Worcester, Ludlow, Hereford, Yeovil in Somersetshire, &c. This branch of industry enjoyed for a lengthened period the protection of monopoly, which, however, was abolished in 1825. Many

Statistics. contradictory statements have been made as to the effects of this measure. We believe, however, that the depression so much complained of has not been produced by it, but by the substitution of cotton gloves for those of leather; and we have no doubt that, had it not been for the greater cheapness and improved quality of leather gloves, caused by the abolition of the monopoly, this substitution would have been carried much farther than it has been. The increased imports of the lamb and kid skins used in the manufacture show conclusively that it is not declining.

Brewery. We come next to a branch of industry of a very different description, namely, the brewery. The amount of capital and labour invested in brewing establishments in England is very large, and particularly striking to those who

have lived on the Continent, and have contrasted our situation with that of the wine countries of the south of Europe. It is only in Flanders and Germany that breweries are numerous; and, in the latter, from the limited capital, and the scattered state of their population, there are hardly any of those large establishments which exist in our metropolis. In London this important branch of business is chiefly in the hands of about a dozen great houses, who, conjointly with the smaller establishments, brew at an average 1,800,000 barrels of porter.

The following account exhibits within a brief compass all the information that can be desired with respect to the consumption of malt and beer in England, and the duties thereon.

Account of the Quarters of Malt charged with Duty in England and Wales, with the Amount and Rate of such Duty; of the Malt used by Brewers and Victuallers in the same; of the Number of Barrels of each sort of Beer, and the Duties thereon; in each year from the 5th January 1821 to the 5th January 1833.

Years ended
5th January.
Malt in England. Beer in England.
Quarters
charged with
Duty.
Rate per
Quarter.
Amount of Duty. Quarters used
by Brewers
and
Victuallers.
Strong, at
9s. 10d.
per Barrel.
Table, at
1s. 11d.
per Barrel.
Interme-
diate, at
4s. 11d.
per Barrel.
Amount of Duty.
s. d. L. s. d. Barrels. Barrels. Barrels. L. s. d.
1821 2,985,530 28 10½ 4,311,446 2 6 No account has
been kept of
the quantities
used during
these years.
5,666,817 1,518,696 ... 2,888,149 1 1
1822 3,267,304 ... ... 4,718,360 10 0 5,969,891 1,528,575 ... 2,987,366 8 6
1823 3,386,064 20 8 3,624,242 8 0 6,306,981 1,570,043 ... 3,153,661 5 7
1824 3,105,644 ... ... 3,203,502 17 6 6,395,835 1,483,045 7,018 3,190,908 12 8
1825 3,451,922 ... ... 3,560,693 0 0 6,660,968 1,544,048 15,660 3,326,277 14 2
1826 3,696,592 ... ... 3,813,072 7 6 7,014,395 1,606,899 6,160 3,495,597 9 1
1827 3,416,996 ... ... 3,586,084 19 8 6,607,133 1,603,653 7,707 3,268,655 9 9
1828 3,137,042 ... ... 3,241,610 6 0 6,403,302 1,532,308 17,158 3,131,662 6 0
1829 3,814,727 ... ... 3,941,884 19 1 6,570,310 1,530,419 62,617 3,222,807 2 11
1830 2,928,509 ... ... 3,026,126 6 9 5,961,048 1,380,469 55,498 2,923,118 1 5
1831 3,362,618 ... ... 3,474,699 16 10 3,570,332 1,066,262 41,834 ... ... ...
1832 4,120,486 ... ... 4,257,781 10 10 ... ... ... ... ... ...
1833 3,958,721 ... ... 4,090,678 9 11 ... ... ... ... ... ...

The duty on beer having ceased on the 10th of October 1830, there are no subsequent accounts of the quantities brewed. There can be no doubt, however, from the increased quantity of malt, that the production of beer has been materially increased.

Spirituos liquors form one of the branches of manufacture in which England is dependent on her neighbours, as she imports an annual supply of corn spirit from Scotland and Ireland, rum from the West Indies, and brandy from France. It has been generally supposed that the consumption of gin has increased materially in England since 1825, when the duties were reduced. We are, however, inclined to doubt whether such be really the case, and are disposed to believe that the effect is more apparent than real; in fact, that it has resulted rather from a diminution of smuggling than from a positive increase of consumption. That such has been the case in Scotland and Ireland is beyond all question; and there seems no reason to conclude that it is otherwise in England. We subjoin a statement of the quantity of the different sorts of spirits entered for home consumption in England in 1832, and of the duties thereon. The consumption of British spirits has declined about 500,000 gallons during the last three years. The annual average consumption of brandy is about 1,200,000 gallons. Its increase in 1832 is to be ascribed to the notion then prevalent, but since exploded, that brandy potations formed one of the best antidotes to cholera.

Consumption of and Duty on Spirits in England in 1832.

Gallons. L.
Brandy..... 1,508,924 1,697,095
Geneva..... 13,833 15,567
Rum..... 3,377,507 1,518,994
Home made Spirits. 7,259,287 2,722,233
Total.... 12,159,551 5,953,889

To the remaining manufactures our limits allow of little space, though several of them would be accounted of great importance in any other country than England. The extent to which such articles as soap and paper are made among us is amply shown by the excise returns; but the list of our exports is of more consequence to the political economist, not from the vulgar notion that it is by export only that national profit is realized, but as indicative of those commodities for which we possess, in our soil, our climate, or our colonial possessions, advantages that give us a superiority over our neighbours. Thus, in the case of glass, the abundance and cheapness of our coal outweigh the disadvantages arising from the duty, and enable us to make an annual export of between £1,400,000 and £1,500,000. In the manufacture of hats, likewise, our command of wool for the coarser kind, and of furs from our North American colonies for beaver hats, enables us to ship

Statistics. to an extent of nearly £200,000 real value a year. In earthenware we have the advantage of clay, of fuel, and of ready communication by canals. These, joined to the taste and ingenuity of individuals engaged in the manufacture, carried it, in the course of the eighteenth century, to an extent which has rendered it a national object; a tract of seven or eight miles in Staffordshire, called the Pottery District, being almost entirely appropriated to it. The population of this tract is about 60,000. The great outlet is Liverpool, and the shipments take place partly to the United States, partly to the continent of Europe. Our exports, comprising porcelain, average from £400,000 to £500,000 real value.

The stocking manufacture is carried on chiefly in the counties of Nottingham, Derby, and Leicester. It formerly employed vast numbers of women in knitting; but in this, as in most other branches, machinery has greatly superseded manual labour. Lace is made in vast quantities in the midland counties; and here also machinery has of late years been extensively applied. And so extraordinary has been the progress of invention in this department, that British lace at present commands a ready sale in all foreign markets, and is largely smuggled even into France.

We shall give, in a subsequent section, an account of the number of persons supposed to be employed in trade and manufacture, according to the returns obtained under the population act for 1821.

VIII.—Commerce and Shipping.

Much of what relates to the commerce of England has been already treated of under the preceding section, and the colonial part of our trade shall be noticed in the next. At present we are to exhibit a brief sketch of our commercial intercourse with Ireland and the continents of Europe and America.

With Ireland the intercourse of England is very great, that country sending us grain, salted and fresh provisions, live cattle, butter, &c. to the amount of six or seven millions annually, and taking largely in return our manufactures, particularly cotton, woollen, and hardware.

North of Europe.—From Russia our chief imports are tallow, hemp, flax, corn, linen, timber, pitch, &c.; from the Swedish dominions, iron and timber; from Poland, wheat, timber, and potash; from Prussia, wheat, timber, and flax. All these countries take our cottons, hardware, and colonial produce.

Central part of Europe.—From Holland our imports are not foreign merchandise, as in the seventeenth century, when the Dutch were the carriers of Europe, but agricultural produce, as oats, wheat, seeds, hemp, cheese, butter; also gin; the whole to a large amount; in return for which the Dutch take our hardware, cottons, and woollens. From France our imports have long been burdened with heavy duties, but still they are large and increasing; consisting

chiefly of wine and brandy, and also of silk, lace, and gloves. Statistics. With Germany our chief intercourse is through the medium of Holland and Hamburg. Our exports are large, particularly in cottons, hardware, and colonial produce. Our imports are also very various and large, consisting of wool, corn, flax, timber, linen, and wine, from the vicinity of the Rhine.

South of Europe.—Here we enter on countries of much less industry. From Portugal we take wine in very large, and fruit in smaller quantities, in return for our cottons, our woollens, and our hardware. From Spain we receive wool, wine, brandy, oil, fruits, barilla, &c. Italy, without any commercial treaty, takes annually a large quantity of our manufactures, and gives in return silk, oil, and fruit. With the Levant our traffic is similar; consisting of an export of manufactures, particularly printed cottons and hardware, and of an import of silk, fruit, and drugs.

The United States are, notwithstanding their tariff, our best customers, receiving from us manufactures of almost every kind to a great amount, and sending us in return vast quantities of cotton, tobacco, rice, and flour; but the merchandise received from them being far inferior to the value of our exports, the difference is paid by remittances in money from the Continent of Europe, arising from American merchandise sold there. With South America a wide field of commercial intercourse has been opened; at present, however, the chief articles received from that vast region are bullion, hides, skins, indigo, and cochineal. The trade is, and will long be, subject to the various disadvantages of a newly-settled country, bare of capital, deficient in industry, and possessing but a small number of consumers of European commodities in proportion to its extent and fertility.

From Asia we import tea, indigo, cotton, coffee, sugar, piece goods, ivory, drugs, &c. Our principal article of export is cotton goods, for which, how singular soever it may appear, India has, since the opening of the trade in 1814, become one of our very best markets. Besides cotton stuffs and yarn, we send to Asia woollen goods, copper, and a great variety of other articles.

From Africa we import drugs, ivory, teak wood, hides, &c. Our exports are but inconsiderable, consisting principally of cotton and linen manufactures. The hopes so frequently entertained, of opening an advantageous trade with the interior of Africa, have hitherto been altogether disappointed, and we do not suppose that they are destined to be more successful in future.

The following accounts refer to the trade of Great Britain. It appears, however, from the statement of the trade, that the foreign trade of Scotland does not, on an average, exceed an eleventh or twelfth part of that of England. The trade of Ireland is about as great as that of Scotland.

1.—Official and Declared1 Value of Exports of British and Irish Produce and Manufacture, and Official Value of Exports of Foreign and Colonial Merchandise from Great Britain, and Official Value of Imports into the same, for the following Years.—(Parl. Paper, No. 243, Sess. 1830; and Finance Accounts.)

Year ending the 5th of January. Exports. Imports.
British and Irish Produce and Manufactures from Great Britain. Foreign and Colonial Merchandise from Great Britain. Into Great Britain.
Official Value. Declared Value. Official Value. Official Value.
1799L.18,556,891L.31,252,836L.8,760,196L.25,122,203
180022,284,94135,903,8507,271,69624,066,700
180122,831,93636,929,00711,549,68128,257,781
180224,501,60839,730,65910,336,96630,435,268
180325,195,89345,102,23012,677,43128,308,373
180420,042,59636,127,7878,032,64325,104,541
180522,132,36737,135,7468,938,74126,454,281
180622,907,37137,234,3967,643,12027,334,020
180725,266,54639,746,5817,717,55525,554,478
180822,963,77236,394,4437,624,31225,326,845
180924,179,85436,306,3855,776,77525,660,953
181032,916,85846,049,77712,750,35830,170,292
181133,299,40847,000,9269,357,43537,613,294
181221,723,53230,850,6186,117,72025,240,904
181328,447,91239,334,5269,533,06524,923,922
1814x....................
181532,200,58043,447,37319,157,81832,620,771
181641,712,00249,653,24515,708,43531,822,053
181734,774,52140,328,94013,441,66526,374,921
181839,233,46740,349,23510,269,27129,910,502
181941,960,55545,180,15010,835,80035,845,340
182032,983,68934,252,2519,579,23629,681,640
182137,820,29335,569,07710,525,02631,515,222
182240,194,68135,823,12710,602,09029,769,122
182343,558,48836,176,8979,211,92829,432,376
182443,166,03934,589,4108,588,99634,591,264
182548,024,95237,600,02110,188,59636,056,551
182646,453,02238,077,3309,155,30542,660,954
182740,332,85430,847,52810,066,50336,174,350
182851,279,10236,394,8179,806,34343,489,346
182952,019,72836,150,3799,928,65543,536,187
183055,465,72335,212,87310,606,44142,311,649
183160,492,63737,691,3028,535,78644,815,397
183260,090,12336,652,69410,729,94348,161,661
183364,582,03736,046,02711,036,75943,237,417

1 For an explanation of the difference between official and real value, see EXCHANGE.

x Records destroyed by fire.—From the year ending the 5th of January 1815 inclusive, British produce and manufactures have been included in the returns of Irish produce, &c. from Ireland, and consequently omitted in the column headed Exports, Foreign, Colonial, and British, under which they had been previously returned.

11.—Account of the Official Value of the Imports into the United Kingdom, and of the Exports of British and Irish Produce and Manufactures, and of Foreign and Colonial Merchandise, in the year 1831, specifying the Imports from and Exports to each Country.—(Parl. Paper, No. 336, Sess. 1833.)

Countries. United Kingdom.
Official Value of Imports. Official Value of Exports.
British and Irish Produce and Manufactures. Foreign and Colonial Merchandise. Total Exports.
L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d.
Europe—Russia..... 4,696,368 17 11 1,746,972 12 5 856,856 14 8 2,603,829 7 1
Sweden..... 212,639 13 1 94,587 5 1 67,788 12 8 162,375 17 9
Norway..... 91,678 10 1 92,599 1 1 58,225 5 6 150,824 6 7
Denmark..... 410,981 7 2 173,280 1 11 83,423 8 3 256,703 10 2
Prussia..... 1,200,102 7 5 264,618 2 1 564,684 12 10 829,302 14 11
Germany..... 1,684,165 8 3 7,667,147 0 3 1,806,480 8 9 9,473,627 9 0
Netherlands..... 1,276,081 12 3 3,179,298 13 6 3,270,927 0 11 6,450,225 14 5
France..... 3,056,154 12 4 635,927 13 5 256,081 19 7 892,009 13 0
Portugal, Azores and Madeira..... 520,616 18 8 2,251,584 3 0 68,197 17 1 2,319,782 0 1
Spain and the Canaries..... 1,293,924 0 4 1,036,623 17 8 318,038 7 8 1,354,662 5 4
Gibraltar..... 19,668 7 0 879,382 3 7 121,340 18 3 1,000,723 1 10
Italy..... 1,475,304 6 10 4,528,154 10 4 820,651 1 0 5,348,805 11 4
Malta..... 63,550 2 10 257,537 8 8 20,485 2 6 278,022 11 2
Ionian Islands..... 187,185 11 4 71,592 13 2 13,383 8 7 84,976 1 9
Turkey and Continental Greece..... 759,797 19 1 2,113,928 9 2 95,777 3 2 2,209,705 12 4
Morea and Greek Islands..... 29,273 6 9 28,563 12 0 1,743 11 10 30,307 3 10
Isles Guernsey, Jersey, Alderney, and Man..... 202,940 14 7 445,410 2 4 126,435 1 2 571,845 3 6
17,180,433 15 11 25,467,207 9 8 8,550,520 14 5 34,017,728 4 1
Africa—Egypt, ports on the Mediterranean..... 275,547 19 7 236,189 15 3 2,068 9 9 238,258 5 0
Tripoli, Barbary, and Morocco..... 45,986 5 9 759 10 0 4,950 16 11 5,710 6 11
Western coast of Africa..... 299,105 0 5 352,182 17 9 155,275 19 7 507,458 17 4
Cape of Good Hope..... 183,481 14 2 351,107 13 3 28,940 6 1 380,047 19 4
Eastern coast of Africa..... 2,328 17 0 ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Cape Verde Islands..... ..... ..... ..... 123 17 6 75 3 8 199 1 2
St Helena..... 44,512 3 8 28,439 6 3 3,030 9 10 31,469 16 1
Mauritius..... 724,285 8 2 268,963 16 4 11,984 17 9 280,948 14 1
Asia—East Indies and China 7,920,182 3 9 6,521,532 19 7 426,068 0 7 6,947,600 11 2
New South Wales, Van Diemen's Land, & Swan River..... 191,841 3 2 427,378 18 8 149,735 11 9 577,114 10 5
New Zealand and South Sea Islands..... 6,442 10 0 4,056 12 6 815 8 3 4,872 0 9
America—British Northern Colonies..... 1,532,582 19 0 2,858,514 19 9 271,975 9 3 3,130,490 9 0
British West Indies..... 8,448,839 8 7 3,729,521 14 3 258,764 6 4 3,988,286 0 7
Foreign West Indies..... 615,594 7 2 2,186,482 5 7 48,762 14 11 2,235,245 0 6
United States..... 8,970,342 8 3 12,007,208 8 11 588,965 9 0 12,596,173 17 11
Mexico..... 160,751 12 3 1,112,916 12 11 138,852 4 10 1,251,768 17 9
Guatemala..... 8,065 4 6 ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Colombia..... 25,243 14 1 476,768 0 0 22,964 17 4 499,732 17 4
States of Rio de la Plata..... 476,272 14 10 582,086 6 4 8,224 8 10 590,310 15 2
Chili..... 21,030 16 11 1,057,621 17 2 10,842 2 8 1,068,463 19 10
Peru..... 42,377 9 3 624,639 11 10 21,392 9 3 646,032 1 1
Brazil..... 2,278,059 18 4 2,392,662 8 4 39,002 8 7 2,431,664 16 11
The Whale Fisheries..... 273,800 19 9 ..... ..... ..... 1,914 0 0 1,914 0 0
Total.....L. 49,727,108 14 6 60,686,364 12 10 10,745,126 9 7 71,431,491 2 5

III.—Value of the Produce and Manufactures of the United Kingdom, exported from Great Britain and Ireland to Foreign Parts, according to the Real or Declared Value thereof, specifying the Amount sent from each.

Species of Exports. Years ending the 5th of January.
1831. 1832. 1833.
GREAT BRITAIN.
Alum..... 3,008 7 6 5,855 5 11 4,771 15 9
Apparel, slops and Negro clothing..... 384,213 13 6 388,545 3 9 376,091 16 5
Arms and ammunition..... 241,623 0 10 562,729 1 2 274,950 17 0
Bacon and hams..... 31,833 18 1 29,834 6 10 17,970 1 6
Beef and pork, salted..... 85,850 15 9 83,428 3 9 66,180 5 6
Beer and ale..... 206,876 16 1 157,350 0 4 198,715 7 0
Books, printed..... 93,851 3 7 109,770 9 3 92,809 3 8
Brass and copper manufactures..... 863,313 6 8 892,879 1 5 916,226 4 9
Bread and biscuit..... 9,654 0 2 19,072 10 0 12,877 2 4
Butter and cheese..... 123,792 8 9 130,603 5 2 185,346 17 9
Cabinet and upholstery wares..... 55,567 19 2 41,316 11 4 43,997 10 2
Coals and culm..... 182,862 10 9 198,242 14 11 226,772 15 3
Cordage..... 78,441 10 10 75,821 14 4 95,930 2 8
Corn, grain, meal, and flour..... 35,842 4 11 37,026 16 9 27,407 9 2
Cotton manufactures..... 15,203,713 7 2 13,207,947 6 3 12,622,850 2 10
Cotton yarn..... 4,132,258 17 7 3,974,989 17 0 4,721,796 3 6
Cows and oxen..... 2,348 10 0 1,726 0 0 510 6 0
Earthenware of all sorts..... 439,666 19 2 458,965 11 11 489,990 17 7
Fish of all sorts..... 245,750 11 3 184,031 18 0 213,607 10 0
Glass of all sorts..... 396,662 6 1 423,828 19 4 396,407 5 0
Haberdashery and millinery..... 384,701 2 7 414,716 17 3 332,429 9 6
Hardware and cutlery..... 1,410,936 4 5 1,620,236 11 6 1,433,297 17 5
Hats, beaver and felt..... 208,497 19 5 169,076 6 5 144,111 3 5
Hats of all other sorts..... 15,072 5 9 15,148 7 8 15,189 14 0
Hops..... 6,614 4 8 11,284 5 9 71,067 19 0
Horses..... 49,243 10 0 29,212 0 0 57,886 0 0
Iron and steel, wrought and unwrought..... 1,076,166 11 3 1,119,967 3 1 1,189,250 10 2
Lard..... 4,326 15 0 3,390 15 0 5,529 3 0
Lead and shot..... 106,768 15 5 96,215 17 0 144,598 10 10
Leather, wrought and unwrought..... 243,142 16 6 234,491 6 10 235,505 1 0
Leather, saddlery and harness..... 78,071 18 10 69,950 8 9 54,229 6 11
Linens manufactures..... 1,926,256 15 1 2,301,893 7 3 1,655,478 16 8
Machinery and mill-work..... 208,736 17 2 105,505 15 3 92,714 11 1
Mathematical and optical instruments..... 21,446 12 11 17,103 7 8 16,430 18 5
Mules..... 7,248 0 0 2,715 10 0 1,056 0 0
Musical instruments..... 51,784 11 4 88,372 5 9 36,691 13 10
Oil, train, of Greenland fishery..... 45,063 3 8 21,170 11 3 33,394 4 1
Painters' colours..... 99,985 3 0 101,986 12 6 115,910 8 0
Plate, plated ware, jewellery, and watches..... 190,207 15 9 187,930 15 0 173,617 13 1
Potatoes..... 5,451 17 4 6,106 8 0 7,707 10 0
Salt..... 181,209 9 2 162,706 3 9 147,176 12 0
Salt-petre, British refined..... 8,682 9 0 29,683 10 6 24,482 0 10
Seeds of all sorts..... 4,510 13 0 5,257 18 4 4,996 0 5
Silk manufactures..... 519,919 9 4 578,260 10 0 529,898 3 10
Soap and candles..... 220,315 9 2 210,170 8 7 288,674 0 0
Spirits..... 5,341 13 6 5,218 18 0 7,193 11 6
Stationery of all sorts..... 167,679 15 11 177,698 0 2 176,497 9 7
Sugar, refined..... 1,287,887 14 10 1,237,774 6 6 1,038,519 16 0
Tin, unwrought..... 106,134 7 2 77,718 7 2 111,797 7 10
Tin and pewter wares, and tin plates..... 249,619 12 2 230,004 10 10 243,191 5 10
Tobacco (manufactured) and snuff..... 21,734 10 2 16,258 12 9 15,133 9 6
Tongues..... 1,345 11 0 1,500 8 0 1,550 13 0
Umbrellas and parasols..... 32,503 15 9 47,512 18 0 40,490 8 2
Whalebone..... 41,893 5 0 8,287 10 0 16,975 15 0
Wool, sheep's..... 144,712 11 3 173,103 19 6 219,650 1 0
Wool of other sorts..... 33,460 2 6 66,835 4 0 24,088 0 0
Woollen manufactures..... 4,347,398 9 6 5,385,811 5 4 5,475,298 12 2
All other articles..... 859,063 19 0 843,542 17 0 880,255 0 6
Total real or declared value of the produce and manufactures of the United Kingdom, exported from Great Britain to foreign parts..... 37,694,302 5 4 36,652,694 17 9 36,046,927 11 5
IRELAND.
Total real or declared value of the produce and manufactures of the United Kingdom, exported from Ireland to foreign parts..... 560,200 4 11 510,952 16 1 398,497 7 2
UNITED KINGDOM.
Total real or declared value of the produce and manufactures of the United Kingdom, exported from the same to foreign parts..... 38,251,502 10 3 37,163,647 13 10 36,444,524 18 7

IV.—Account of the Quantities of the Principal Articles of Foreign and Colonial Merchandize imported and retained for Home Consumption, and also the Quantity exported, in the year 1829 (fractional quantities omitted).

Quantities Imported. Retained for Home Consumption. Quantities Exported.
Ashes, pearl and pot.....cwt. 162,258 143,657 19,780
Barilla.....ditto 165,338 236,563 .....
Bark, oak, and cork tree.....ditto 1,009,816 1,004,070 .....
Brimstone, rough.....ditto 302,038 313,766 .....
Bristles.....lbs. 1,715,488 1,695,088 .....
Butter.....cwt. 148,139 147,951 .....
Cassia lignea.....lbs. 817,968 62,252 795,242
Cheese.....cwt. 168,900 166,484 .....
Cinnamon.....lbs. 544,225 29,720 386,108
Cloves.....ditto 36,071 48,638 57,904
Cochineal.....ditto 288,456 127,954 158,738
Coco-nuts.....ditto 3,209,933 393,847 1,674,613
Coffee.....ditto 39,071,215 19,466,028 23,023,410
Copper, unwrought.....cwt. 10,267 14 13,743
Cork, unmanufactured.....ditto 46,494 45,636 .....
Corn:—
  Wheat.....qrs. 1,544,969 1,267,914 52,190
  Barley.....ditto 281,713 202,405 10,297
  Oats.....ditto 541,858 192,889 58,635
  Rye.....ditto 65,910 65,331 7,861
  Peas and beans.....ditto 82,139 96,513 2,345
  Wheat-meal and flour.....cwt. 461,895 337,065 70,652
Cortex Peruvianus or Jesuits' bark.....lbs. 405,552 103,695 290,382
Cotton, piece goods of India, not printed.....pieces 1,403,397 value L.44,883 614,085
Cottons, printed.....sq. yds. 131,420 2,873 171,969
Currants.....cwt. 119,927 114,076 .....
Dye and hard woods:—
  Fustic.....tons 7,364 6,006 .....
  Logwood.....ditto 13,893 8,851 6,226
  Mahogany.....ditto 19,335 16,546 .....
Elephants' teeth.....cwt. 4,345 3,605 .....
Figs.....ditto 21,938 19,702 .....
Flax and tow, and codilla of hemp, &c.....ditto 922,039 909,709 .....
Furs:—
  Bear.....number 12,583 884 14,227
  Beaver.....ditto 76,427 68,665 .....
  Fitch.....ditto 278,740 278,846 .....
  Marten.....ditto 151,937 121,741 49,712
  Mink.....ditto 77,361 34,109 .....
  Musquash.....ditto 1,070,016 491,978 281,347
  Nutria.....ditto 618,187 629,170 .....
  Gitter.....ditto 14,862 857 14,751
  Onger.....cwt. 11,007 5,947 11,209
Gum:—
  Arabic.....ditto 8,232 17,249 2,049
  Lac-dye.....lbs. 594,494 462,988 26,763
  Shell-lac.....ditto 703,886 316,070 446,598
Hats, straw.....number 160,195 234,254 .....
Hemp, undressed.....cwt. 374,932 422,121 .....
Hides, untanned.....ditto 286,416 231,874 .....
Indigo.....lbs. 6,748,281 2,113,830 4,286,605
Iron in bars.....tons 15,720 13,067 3,024
Lead, pig.....ditto 1,508 35 1,700
Leather gloves.....pairs 865,157 837,208 .....
Lemons and oranges:—
  Packages not exceeding 5000 cubic inches..... 53,215 48,921 .....
  Ditto above 5000, and not exceeding 7300..... 130,946 130,348 .....
  Ditto above 7300, and not exceeding 14,000..... 67,336 65,669 .....
Linens,—Cambrics, &c.....pieces 40,778 41,224 .....
Linens, plain and diaper:—
  Entered by the ell.....ells 372,697 ..... 451,533
  Entered by the piece.....pieces 31,638 ..... 30,175
  Entered by the square yard.....sq. yds. 138,458 692 124,200
Account of the Quantities of the Principal Articles of Foreign and Colonial Merchandise, &c. continued.
Quantities Imported. Retained for Home Consumption. Quantities Exported.
Linens, plain and diaper—entered at value..... L. 4,031 6,674 1,144
Liquorice juice.....cwts. 4,440 5,795 .....
Mace.....lbs. 6,841 14,254 20,106
Madder.....cwts. 70,017 69,658 .....
Madder root.....ditto 33,541 39,804 .....
Molasses.....ditto 391,432 386,142 .....
Nutmegs.....lbs. 38,868 113,273 47,913
Oil:—
Castor.....lbs. 396,104 293,028 .....
Olive.....gallons 1,153,834 1,334,758 .....
Palm.....cwts. 179,945 175,393 .....
Train—Blubber.....tuns. 5,754 5,754 .....
Spermaceti.....ditto 5,571 5,694 .....
Not blubber or spermaceti.....ditto 11,974 9,047 .....
Opium.....lbs. 48,634 23,970 41,919
Pepper.....ditto 2,015,184 1,933,641 2,962,063
Pimento.....ditto 3,599,268 339,013 2,732,493
Prunes.....cwts. 6,283 6,245 .....
Quicksilver.....lbs. 635,905 162,816 575,552
Raisins.....cwts. 145,750 121,737 .....
Rhubarb.....lbs. 146,881 33,673 91,738
Rice.....cwts. 222,547 116,854 95,584
Rice in the husk.....bushels 293,354 222,472 .....
Safflower.....cwts. 4,623 4,370 .....
Sago.....ditto 486 4,026 .....
Saltpetre.....ditto 176,489 155,095 34,537
Sarsaparilla.....lbs. 228,164 104,679 .....
Seeds:—
Clover.....cwts. 40,529 88,662 .....
Flax and Linseed.....bushels 2,052,258 1,899,936 .....
Rape.....ditto 378,304 375,162 .....
Tares.....ditto 87,101 101,160 .....
Senna.....lbs. 187,492 122,601 .....
Shumac.....cwts. 80,191 78,874 .....
Silk:—
Raw and waste.....lbs. 3,594,754 2,601,516 221,412
Thrown.....ditto 211,179 168,985 26,715
Manufactures of Europe.....ditto 132,313 121,584 6,909
Manufactures of India, viz.
Bandanas, Romans, &c.....pieces 99,393 67,465 79,886
Crape in pieces.....ditto 53 Before July 5.
lbs. 7,675
602
Crape scarfs, shawls, &c.....number 70,299 After July 5.
L. 5,926
13,981
Taffeties, damasks, &c.....pieces 9,052 4,064
Skins:—
Calf and kid, untanned.....cwts. 43,764 43,046 .....
Deer, undressed.....number 123,276 36,314 101,387
Goat, undressed.....ditto 306,579 182,062 113,724
Kid, undressed.....ditto 106,319 107,513 .....
Kid, dressed.....ditto 591,094 591,091 .....
Lamb, undressed.....ditto 1,888,487 1,887,891 .....
Seal, undressed.....ditto 289,541 262,446 .....
Smalts.....lbs. 376,675 353,468 .....
Spelter.....cwts. 84,603 12,430 79,279
Spirits:—
Rum.....proof gallons 6,938,426 3,375,866 1,644,663
Brandy.....ditto 1,994,649 1,300,746 661,097
Geneva.....ditto 177,847 37,146 148,176
Sugar, unrefined.....cwts. 4,856,393 3,539,821 207,912
Tallow.....ditto 1,177,908 1,024,993 .....
Tar.....lasts 5,812 6,492 .....
Tea.....lbs. 30,544,404 29,495,205 251,971
Timber:—
Battens and batten ends.....great hundreds 11,149 11,065 .....
Account of the Quantities of the Principal Articles of Foreign and Colonial Merchandise, &c. concluded.
Quantities Imported. Retained for Home Consumption. Quantities Exported.
Timber:—Deals and deal ends..... great hundreds 51,587 51,890 .....
Lathwood..... fathoms 10,386 10,282 .....
Masts, yards, &c. under 12 inches diameter.... number 13,475 13,676 .....
Ditto, 12 inches and above..... ditto 4,803 5,591 .....
Oak plank, two inches thick or upwards..... loads 1,433 1,551 .....
Staves..... great hundreds 95,953 89,009 .....
Teak..... loads 16,924 16,835 .....
Timber, eight inches square or upwards..... ditto 549,259 541,565 .....
Wainscot logs, ditto..... ditto 4,221 3,407 .....
Tin..... cwt. 2,674 2 2,581
Tobacco, unmanufactured..... lbs. 22,399,335 18,819,021 7,369,749
Tobacco, manufactured, and snuff..... ditto 169,634 66,743 27,813
Turpentine, not worth more than 12s. per cwt..... cwt. 262,832 277,509 .....
Valonia..... ditto 111,391 110,773 .....
Wax, bees'..... ditto 11,699 6,568 .....
Whale-fins..... ditto 13,305 12,876 .....
Wool, cotton..... lbs. 222,767,767 204,097,037 30,289,115
Wool, sheeps'..... ditto 21,525,542 22,614,550 406,566
Wine:—
Cape..... gallons 967,363 579,744 20,162
French..... ditto 498,320 365,336 109,292
Portugal..... ditto 2,405,342 2,682,084 246,670
Spanish..... ditto 2,841,030 1,964,162 442,881
Madeira..... ditto 320,581 229,392 168,446
Canary..... ditto 199,026 101,699 115,640
Rhenish..... ditto 85,858 76,396 9,153
Other sorts..... ditto 300,677 218,839 85,366
Yarn, linen, raw.... cwt. 29,646 29,645 .....
Zaffre..... lbs. 158,026 157,085 .....

The increase in the official, and the decline in the real or declared value of the exports, since 1815, has given rise to a great deal of irrelevant discussion. It has been looked upon as a proof that our commerce is daily becoming less prosperous, whereas, in point of fact, a precisely opposite conclusion should be drawn from it. We have already stated, that the rates according to which the official values of the exports are determined, were fixed as far back as 1696; so that they have long ceased to be of importance as affording any criterion of the actual value, their only use being to show the fluctuations in the quantities exported. To remedy this defect, a plan was formed during the early part of Mr Pitt's administration, for keeping an account of the real value of the exports, as ascertained by the declarations of the exporters. Those who contend that our trade is getting into a bad condition, argue that the great increase in the official value of the exports since 1815 shows that the quantity of the articles exported has been proportionally augmented, whilst the fall in their real value shows that we are selling this larger quantity for a smaller price, a result which, they affirm, is most injurious. But the circumstance of a manufacturer or a merchant selling a large or a small quantity of produce at the same price, affords no criterion by which to judge as to the advantage or disadvantage of the sale; for if, in consequence of improvements in the arts or otherwise, a particular article may now be produced for half the expense that its production cost ten or twenty years ago, it is obvious that double the quantity of it may be afforded at the same price without injury to the producers. Now this is the case with some of the most important arti-

cles which are exported from England. Cottons and cotton-twist form a full half or more of our entire exports; and since 1814 there has been an extraordinary fall in the price of these articles, occasioned partly by cotton wool having fallen from about 1s. 6d. per lb. to about 7d. per lb., but more by improvements in the manufacture. To such an extent have these causes operated, that yarn No. 40, which in 1812 cost 2s. 6d., in 1830 cost 1s. 2½d.; in 1812 No. 60 cost 3s. 6d., in 1830 it cost 1s. 10½d.; in 1812 No. 80 cost 4s. 4d., in 1830 it cost 2s. 6½d., and so on; and in the weaving department the reduction has been similar. Hence, whilst the official value of the exports of cotton goods and twist has increased from about L.18,000,000 in 1814, to about L.37,000,000 in 1830, their declared value has sunk from about L.20,000,000 at the former period to about L.16,000,000 at the latter. Surely, however, this is, if any thing can be, a proof of increasing prosperity; it shows that we can now export and sell with a profit (for unless such were the case, does any one imagine the exportation would continue?) nearly double the quantity of cotton goods and yarn which we exported in 1814 for about the same price. In as far, therefore, as an abundant and cheap supply of cottons may be supposed to increase the comforts of society, it is plain that they must be about double, not in this country only, but in all those countries to which we export. (McCulloch's Commercial Dictionary, art. Cotton.)

The subjoined tables give a complete view of the ship-
ping belonging to the different ports of the British empire,
and of the navigation with foreign countries, in 1829 and
1830, since which time there has been no sensible variation.

1.—Number of Ships and Vessels belonging to the different Ports or Places of the British Empire in 1829, stated in succession, agreeably to the Amount of Tonnage belonging to each.

/> tish Islands...
ENGLAND. Ships. Tons. Ships. Tons.
Ships. Tons. Ships. Tons. Ships. Tons. Ships. Tons. Ships. Tons.
London..... 2,663 572,835 Berwick..... 57 4,784 Inverness..... 136 7,338
Newcastle..... 987 202,379 Ramsgate..... 70 4,397 Port Glasgow..... 46 6,807
Liverpool..... 805 161,780 Ilfracombe..... 64 4,095 Banff..... 133 5,818
Sunderland..... 624 107,628 Wells..... 66 3,962 Lerwick..... 94 3,314
Whitehaven..... 496 72,967 Newport..... 50 3,824 Kirkwall..... 68 3,312
Hull..... 579 72,248 Rye..... 68 3,704 Stornoway..... 74 3,093
Bristol..... 316 49,535 Goole..... 50 3,625 Campbeltown..... 68 2,779
Yarmouth..... 585 44,134 Padstow..... 68 3,587 Thurso..... 39 2,441
Whitby..... 258 41,576 Blackney and Clay 50 3,390 Stranraer..... 42 1,497
Scarborough..... 169 28,070 Lyme..... 39 3,335
Plymouth..... 302 24,838 Llanelly..... 69 3,264 3,228 308,297
Dartmouth..... 349 24,114 Bridgewater..... 46 2,921
Beaumaris..... 389 22,076 Carlisle..... 40 2,886
Poole..... 168 17,860 Chichester..... 62 2,805 IRELAND.
Exeter..... 196 17,166 Cardiff..... 38 2,742 Belfast..... 247 24,989
Lynn..... 118 14,659 Arundel..... 25 2,711 Dublin..... 289 23,904
Cardigan..... 281 14,643 Aldbrough..... 49 2,698 Cork..... 256 17,093
Gloucester..... 247 13,026 Woodbridge..... 38 2,659 Newry..... 161 8,281
Rochester..... 255 10,816 Southwold..... 37 2,638 Waterford..... 26 6,942
Bideford..... 116 10,182 Wisbech..... 43 2,487 Wexford..... 135 6,701
Lancaster..... 107 9,410 Shoreham..... 42 2,272 Londonderry..... 32 4,306
Ipswich..... 188 8,532 Barnstaple..... 40 2,087 Baltimore..... 86 2,478
Portsmouth..... 184 8,485 Truro..... 25 1,727 Drogheda..... 30 2,387
Southampton..... 178 8,120 Grimsby..... 39 1,390 Limerick..... 39 1,874
Milford..... 116 8,104 Newhaven..... 21 1,205 Sligo..... 20 1,219
Boston..... 152 8,059 Minehead..... 20 957 Galway..... 19 864
Swansea..... 122 7,772 Scilly..... 22 792 Coleraine..... 10 409
Faversham..... 217 7,392 Deal..... 19 557 Dundalk..... 6 339
Maldon..... 190 7,373 Gweek..... 8 557 Westport..... 7 208
Stockton..... 74 7,296 1,413 101,994
Weymouth..... 85 7,175 Total..... 13,977 1,758,065
Colchester..... 235 6,745
Falmouth..... 78 6,614 SCOTLAND. Isle of Jersey..... 200 18,217
Aberystwith..... 120 6,423 Aberdeen..... 350 46,201 Isle of Guernsey.. 75 7,672
Bridlington..... 40 6,290 Glasgow..... 235 41,121 Isle of Man..... 217 5,714
Cowes..... 151 6,015 Greenock..... 371 36,241
Chepstow..... 72 5,805 Dundee..... 299 31,986 Total of the
St Ives..... 87 5,570 Leith..... 263 26,362 United King-
Dover..... 120 5,525 Grangemouth..... 204 24,327 dom and Bri-
Harwich..... 96 5,513 Montrose..... 173 16,17919,110 2,199,959
Fowey..... 81 5,470 Kirkcaldy..... 192 14,802 Plantations..... 4,343 317,041
Penzance..... 92 4,981 Irvine..... 135 13,379 Grand Total... 23,453 2,517,000
Chester..... 74 4,816 Dumfries..... 183 12,192
Bo'ness..... 123 9,108

Number of men belonging to ships of United Kingdom and British Islands..... 134,516
Number of men belonging to ships of Plantations..... 20,292

Total of men belonging, in 1829, to the mercantile navy of the United Kingdom and Plantations, 154,808

Mercantile Navy in 1830.

Vessels. Tons. Men.
Great Britain and Plantations, 23,721 2,531,819 154,812

II.—General Statement of the Shipping employed in the Trade of the United Kingdom in the Year 1830, exhibiting the Number and Tonnage of Vessels entered Inwards and cleared Outwards (including their repeated Voyages), with the Number of their Crews; separating British from Foreign Ships, and distinguishing the Trade with each Country. (Parl. Paper, No. 350, Seas. 1831.)

Countries, &c. Inwards. Outwards.
British. Foreign. British. Foreign.
Ships. Tons. Men. Ships. Tons. Men. Ships. Tons. Men. Ships. Tons. Men.
Russia..... 1,661 321,426 14,698 90 26,905 1,280 1,231 240,636 11,253 88 22,858 1,036
Sweden..... 82 32,116 583 127 23,158 1,175 55 8,020 412 67 9,624 526
Norway..... 66 6,459 395 556 84,585 4,570 53 5,148 326 582 93,176 4,780
Denmark..... 111 12,210 608 655 51,420 3,175 540 83,981 4,133 926 98,694 5,377
Prussia..... 666 102,758 4,920 720 139,646 6,132 341 50,931 2,539 339 73,133 3,251
Germany..... 986 150,997 7,516 616 54,369 3,018 876 133,847 6,724 612 52,118 2,824
United Netherlands..... 1,156 120,301 7,030 863 92,811 5,096 587 87,559 5,301 783 32,357 4,657
France..... 1,367 116,766 10,029 933 47,940 6,369 1,339 111,779 9,968 642 33,955 3,847
Portugal, Proper..... 395 43,336 2,542 78 8,394 705 339 38,930 2,313 99 14,724 894
    the Azores..... 161 12,006 836 2 185 18 105 8,332 571 4 489 28
    Madeira..... 8 1,339 73 ... ... ... 7 1,327 90 1 194 11
Spain and the Balearic Islands..... 428 46,503 2,615 61 5,639 459 353 37,412 2,230 58 6,751 465
    Canaries..... 42 4,793 258 ... ... ... 46 5,590 324 2 641 40
Gibraltar..... 30 4,196 239 ... ... ... 83 10,677 606 8 968 64
Italy and the Italian Islands..... 353 51,512 2,848 13 2,253 157 418 58,307 3,347 14 2,407 159
Malta..... 17 2,162 118 1 225 10 38 9,306 512 1 160 8
Ionian Islands..... 32 4,394 240 ... ... ... 38 5,513 292 ... ... ...
Turkey and Continental Greece..... 95 13,610 780 ... ... ... 95 13,424 783 ... ... ...
Moresa and Greek Islands..... 7 1,055 55 ... ... ... 11 1,607 98 ... ... ...
Egypt (Ports on the Mediterranean)..... 14 3,853 188 ... ... ... 22 4,281 236 1 1,613 110
Tripoli, Barbary, and Morocco Coast of Africa, from Morocco to the Cape of Good Hope..... 11 1,127 63 ... ... ... 3 331 19 ... ... ...
Cape of Good Hope..... 126 34,763 1,852 ... ... ... 137 38,601 2,192 ... ... ...
Cape Verde Islands..... 23 4,276 230 ... ... ... 33 7,737 463 ... ... ...
St Helena and Ascension..... 1 142 13 ... ... ... 2 307 19 1 85 11
Isle of Bourbon..... ... ... ... ... ... ... 3 615 33 ... ... ...
Mauritius..... 55 17,189 893 ... ... ... 33 8,036 481 2 407 28
East India Company's Territories and Ceylon..... 148 65,498 4,525 ... ... ... 141 59,605 4,043 ... ... ...
China..... 22 27,782 2,700 ... ... ... 16 21,033 2,169 2 780 41
Sumatra and Java..... 3 1,189 59 1 370 20 2 577 53 1 459 22
Philippine Islands..... 6 2,466 121 ... ... ... 1 237 16 2 393 32
Other islands of the Indian Seas..... ... ... ... ... ... ... 1 369 31 ... ... ...
New South Wales and Van Diemen's Land..... 26 8,668 502 ... ... ... 65 22,587 1,633 ... ... ...
Swan River..... ... ... ... ... ... ... 2 764 42 ... ... ...
New Guinea..... ... ... ... ... ... ... 1 405 30 ... ... ...
New Zealand and South Sea Islands..... 2 431 26 ... ... ... 3 728 71 ... ... ...
British North American Colonies..... 1,700 452,397 21,338 ... ... ... 1,714 450,987 22,045 ... ... ...
British West Indies..... 911 253,572 13,782 ... ... ... 868 240,664 13,647 ... ... ...
Hayti..... 21 3,719 198 ... ... ... 46 7,642 472 ... ... ...
Cuba and other Foreign West Indies..... 25 4,637 238 12 3,111 139 67 12,584 741 16 4,636 214
United States of America..... 197 65,130 2,948 609 214,166 9,189 281 91,551 4,344 611 211,714 9,439
Mexico..... 35 6,236 351 ... ... ... 51 8,574 503 2 483 22
Colombia..... 17 3,268 186 ... ... ... 16 3,108 178 ... ... ...
Brazil..... 168 38,322 1,963 1 270 9 254 57,682 3,044 ... ... ...
States of the Rio de la Plata..... 51 9,784 531 1 320 21 36 6,294 373 3 569 41
Chili..... 7 1,242 78 ... ... ... 14 2,510 152 ... ... ...
Peru..... 11 2,085 116 ... ... ... 10 1,899 118 ... ... ...
The Whale Fisheries..... 97 31,897 3,835 ... ... ... 123 40,166 5,044 ... ... ...
The Isles of Guernsey, Jersey, Alderney, and Man..... 2,199 117,298 8,949 20 2,561 141 1,897 95,547 7,829 ... ... ...
Foreign Parts, not otherwise described..... ... ... ... ... ... ... 34 4,338 202 250 44,771 1,822
Total, all parts of the world..... 13,548 2,160,042 122,103 5,359 758,828 41,670 12,747 2,102,147 122,625 5,158 758,368 39,796

Steam-Boats belonging to Great Britain in 1829, and to Ireland in 1829.

Vessels. Tons.
England..... 241 20,611
Scotland..... 75 5,953
Ireland..... 26 4,791
Statistics.
IX.—Establishments for Religion and Education.

The church of England has two archbishops and twenty-four bishops, all peers of the realm, and all indebted for their appointment to the crown. The bishop of the Isle of Man, formerly appointed by the Duke of Atholl, is now also appointed by the crown, but has no seat in the House of Lords. The province of York comprises four bishoprics, viz. Durham, Carlisle, Chester, and the Isle of Man; all the rest, to the number of twenty-one, are in the province of Canterbury. The clerical dignitary next to the bishop is the archdeacon, whose duty, though very different in different dioceses, may be termed that of a representative of the bishop in several of his less important functions. The number of archdeacons in England is about sixty. The name of Dean (Decanus) was probably derived from his originally superintending ten canons or prebendaries. Each bishop has a chapter or council appointed to assist him, and each chapter has a dean as its president; but there are in the church of England many deaneries of other descriptions. Rector is, in general, the title of a clergyman holding a living, of which the tithes are entire; vicar is understood of a living where the great tithes have passed into secular hands. The very general name of curate signifies sometimes (as curé in France) a clergyman in possession of a living, but more frequently one exercising the spiritual office in a parish under the rector or vicar. The latter are temporary curates, their appointment being a matter of arrangement with the rector or vicar; the former, being more permanent, are called perpetual curates, and are appointed by the proprietor of the tithe in a parish which has neither rector nor vicar. The name of priest is, in general, confined to the clergy of the church of Rome; in the church of England the corresponding term is a clerk in orders. A parson (persona ecclesiæ) denotes a clergyman in possession of a parochial church. Deacon is, in England, not a layman, as in Calvinist countries, but a clergyman of limited qualifications, entitled to preach, baptize, marry, and bury, but not to give the sacrament. Readers are not regular clergymen, but laymen of good character, licensed by the bishop to read prayers in churches or chapels where there is no clergyman. (See Adolphus on the British Empire, vol. i.)

A clerical education in England is of much less length than in Calvinist countries; in Scotland, Holland, Switzerland, or the north of Germany, after going through a course of classics and philosophy, a second course is required for theology solely; but in England the former is sufficient. The degree of bachelor of arts requires an examination and a university residence of three or four years; but to qualify for the acceptance of a curacy, a certificate of attending a single course of lectures in divinity is all that is necessary.

Livings.

The number of church livings in England and Wales is very great, being fully 10,500. From this multiplicity of benefices, and from the general smallness of the incomes, have arisen two great irregularities, pluralities and non-residence, both forbidden by the ancient statutes of the church, but both long sanctioned by usage. Many clergymen hold livings without doing duty at any of them; others do duty in one or in two which are adjacent to each other, and have a curate for the more distant; whilst curates frequently do duty at two and sometimes at three distinct places of worship. To prevent, or at least to lessen, the abuse of non-residence, an act of parliament was passed in 1813, directing that every non-resident incumbent should nominate a curate at a salary of not less than £80 a year, unless the entire living should be less. The effect of this act was to reduce the number of non-resi-

dent clergymen by 800 fully; they had previously been Statistics about 4700; but in 1815 the official return to parliament of the incumbents in England and Wales was as follows:

Non-resident from the following causes:
Sinecures.....52
Vacancies.....164
Sequestrations.....40
Recent Institutions.....87
Dilapidated Churches.....32
Held by Bishops.....22
Law-suits, absence on the Continent, &c.....122
Livings from which no report.....279
798
Incumbents non-resident from other causes.....3,856
Incumbents resident.....5,847
10,501

The rental of England and Wales was, by a late return, Tithes discriminated as follows in regard to tithes:

Tithe-free in toto.....L.7,904,379
Tithe-free in part.....856,185
Free on payment of a modus.....498,823
Subject to tithe.....20,217,467

Total.....L.29,476,854

A part, and by no means an inconsiderable one, of the tithes of England, is held by laymen; but as the church has other sources of income, its total revenue is computed at nearly L.3,000,000; but the absorption of large sums by several of the prelates, as the Bishops of Durham, Winchester, and London, and the accumulation of the best livings amongst a few individuals of influence, reduce the annual average income of the curates, or most numerous class, to little more than L.100 a year.

Tithes necessarily fluctuate with the state of agriculture, and, during the distress of 1815, the deficiency in this respect became alarming. It was then that the clergy felt what they should have felt long before, that tithe was an unsuitable and impolitic source of revenue. Application was made to parliament, and the subject was for some time under serious discussion; but the rise of corn in 1816 and 1817 prevented any other measure than an act founded on a committee report of 18th June 1816, authorizing the possessors of tithes, laymen as well as clergymen, to grant leases of them for a term not exceeding fourteen years. The dissatisfaction with tithes has now, however, become so very general that we have no doubt a commutation of some sort or other must shortly take place.

A return to parliament, in June 1817, has specified the incomes of those benefices where there is no parsonage-house, or at least none that forms a suitable residence.

Livings.
From L.10 to L.100.....615
L.100 to L.150.....442
L.150 and upwards.....793

1850

A prior and more comprehensive return had stated the Church number of churches and chapels for the established faith at 2533; and as these were inadequate (the members of the established church being about five millions, or half the population of England and Wales), an act was passed in 1818, and even pecuniary aid given by government, for the erection of a number of additional churches. The previous attempts to raise the requisite funds by the issue of briefs and voluntary subscriptions had exhibited a miserable specimen of misapplied labour, the expenses of

the collection, and of the patent and stamps, absorbing more than half the money received from the subscribing parties.1

A prebend is a provision in land or money given to a church in prebendum, that is, for the support of a clergyman whose title may be either prebendary or canon. Adwouson (advocatio) is the right of presentation to a living, and was first vested in those laymen who were founders of or benefactors to livings. A living is held in commendam when, to prevent its becoming void, it is committed (commendatur) until it can be conveniently provided with a pastor. The modus (modus decimandi) is a composition for tithes; it may be either perpetual or during the lives of the contracting parties. The lay improprators of tithes, so frequent in England, date from the dissolution of the monasteries in the reign of Henry VIII.; patrons were then allowed to retain the tithes and glebe in their own hands, without appointing a clergyman; in cases of such appointment, the clergyman was called vicarius or representative of the patron.

The dissenters in England are, first, the Presbyterians, who nearly coincide with the church of England as to doctrine, but differ in church-government, allowing no hierarchy in individuals; next the Independents, who go further, and disclaim hierarchy in synods and other collective assemblies; thirdly, the well-known sect of Quakers, who date from the middle of the seventeenth century; and, lastly, the more numerous Methodists, who date from 1729. Of the Anabaptists, the chief characteristic is their not receiving baptism till they become adults. The Catholics in England are not numerous, but comprise a large proportion of wealthy families.

In regard to the mode of education in England, there is much both to commend and to censure. Scotland has for a century past been in possession of a larger proportion of parish schools; but the utility of these is much lessened by an established routine of teaching Latin to almost all youths, whatever be their intended line of life. In England this absurdity is less prevalent, because most of the schools are private undertakings, the managers of which are necessarily guided by considerations of utility. The youth destined for a life of business are thus saved a serious waste of time; their education, if imperfect, is not supererogatory; but, on examining the higher seminaries of England, we find much ground for disappointment, and many marks of a blind adherence to ancient usage. Two universities are evidently inadequate for the education of the nobility, the gentry, and the clergy of so populous a country. Their course of study, also, is quite unsuitable to the future occupations of many of the students. They were originally designed for the education of churchmen; and, to this day, Latin, Greek, and mathematics form the chief objects of instruction. Under a government which has so long borne the representative form, there are no classes for the study of political science and legislation. In the country of Locke there are no classes devoted to the study of the philosophy of the mind. In short, there are scarcely any of those public lectures which, in the rest of Europe, constitute the grand characteristic of a university, and distinguish it from schools; all, or nearly all, is done by private tuition. Again, in point of constitution, whilst in other countries a university forms, in general, one large association, in England each college is a distinct body, having its head, its fellows, and its students, who, as far as education is concerned, have very little connection with the rest of the university. In one point, however, these venerable

seminaries redeem their faults, and assert the dignity of Statistics. their character; we mean in their public examinations. These, since the early part of the present century, have been put on an admirable footing, both at Oxford and Cambridge; distinguishing the relative degrees of proficiency with great accuracy, and converting into a full and impartial trial that which in other universities is almost always a mere matter of form.

No country rivals England in the magnificence of her Education academic buildings. Whilst in France, Germany, or of the poor. Holland, an university possesses only a single pile of building, Oxford and Cambridge can boast for every college a large, commodious, and generally an elegant structure. The endowments appropriated to them are very various, both in their origin and destination, but these arise chiefly from land, and, having increased with the rise of rents, are in many cases very ample. The destination of these funds is regulated by the bequest of the donors and the established usage of the colleges; part going to the students under the name of exhibitions or scholarships; part to the head and fellows; and a further part consisting in livings, which devolve in succession on the fellows, and lead to their removal from the university. A hall is an inferior college; an academic establishment not incorporated or endowed, but possessed of exhibitions or other provisions for students. Oxford has nineteen colleges and five halls; Cambridge has twelve colleges and four halls.

Within these few years two institutions of a novel kind, the London University and King's College, have been founded in the metropolis, in the view of obviating the defects complained of at Oxford and Cambridge, and of cheapening and diffusing the advantages of an academic education; but their success has not corresponded with the expectations of their projectors. Their constitution appears ill fitted to attain the objects in view; and it is very questionable, unless they be materially modified, whether they will ever be of any material service. The education which they afford is neither very good nor very cheap.

Boys in England are taught the classics, either in the lesser schools established at every town of consequence throughout the kingdom, or at the great public schools. Of the latter, the principal are Eton, Westminster, Winchester, and Harrow; also the Charter-house, St Paul's, and Merchant Tailors' School. These seminaries, at present so expensive, and attended by youths of the first family, had their origin in a fund or provision set apart for scholars of humbler birth. This has served as the basis of a stately superstructure, each school having attracted, by the advantage of situation or the repute of the teachers, a much greater number of pupils in independent circumstances. But in each a proportion of the scholars are still on the foundation. At Eton there are seventy thus provided for; and the same number at Winchester. This subject will be resumed, and treated in detail, under the articles NATIONAL EDUCATION, SCHOOLS, and UNIVERSITIES.

X.—Establishments for purposes of Charity.—Poor-Rates.

The public charities of England are very numerous; the bequests of benevolent founders in this country exceeding those of the zealous Catholics of France or Spain, as well as those of the once affluent Protestants of Holland. Our limits admit of the notice of only a few of the foundations in the metropolis and its neighbourhood.

1 See Return of Briefs delivered to Parliament, 19th May 1819.

Reports of the Education Committee, 1817 and 1818.

Amongst the principal Hospitals are,
Bethlem Hospital.
St Luke's, Old Street.
St Bartholomew's, West Smithfield.
Guy's, in Southwark.
The Lock Hospital, Hyde-Park-Corner.
The London Hospital, Whitechapel Road.
The Magdalen Hospital, St George's Road.
The Middlesex Hospital, Berner's Street.
The Foundling Hospital.
Amongst the Dispensaries and medical charities are,
The General Dispensary, Aldersgate Street.
City Dispensary in the Poultry.
Finsbury Dispensary.
Various Vaccine Dispensaries.
The Fever Hospital, instituted in 1801.

A College, in the sense of a charity, is an alms-house on an enlarged scale, under the direction of a master and other incorporate officers. There are only three in the neighbourhood of London, namely, Bromley, Morden, and Dulwich Colleges.

Alms Houses.—These are very numerous, viz. the Haberdashers', Mercers', Skinners', East India Company's, &c.

School Charities.—These institutions are also very numerous. Amongst the most remarkable are,
Christ's Hospital, or the Blue Coat School.
Marine Society.
School for the Indigent Blind.

Deaf and Dumb Asylum.
Debtors' Children.
Ladies' Charity School.
Masonic Charity.
Raines' Charities.

Miscellaneous Charities.—Under this head are comprehended several extensive and well-known associations.
The African Institution.
The British and Foreign Bible Society.
Society for Bettering the Condition of the Poor.
Society for Promoting Christian Knowledge.
The Missionary Society.
The Literary Fund.

A compulsory provision for the support of the poor has existed in England for a lengthened period. Its introduction dates from the reign of Henry VIII., and it was perfected in that of Elizabeth; the famous statute of the 43d Eliz. cap. 2, having embodied all the principles, with many of the regulations, still to be found in the system. The law has, however, been repeatedly modified, and very great alterations have taken place in its administration. These changes will be fully detailed in our article on the POOR-LAWS; and in it also the reader will find an examination of the important and difficult question as to the policy of a compulsory provision for the support of the unemployed poor. Here we have only to state what has been the amount of the rates levied on account of the poor, from what sources they have been derived, and how they have been distributed.

Account of Monies levied for Poor's Rates and County Rates in England and Wales; of the Payments thereout for other purposes than the Relief of the Poor, at all the several periods for which Returns have been required by Parliament; also the Average Price of Wheat at every such period, and the Amount of Population.

Years. Total Sum levied for Poor's Rates and County Rates. Payments thereout for other purposes than the Relief of the Poor. Expended in Law Removals and similar Incidents. Expended for the Relief of the Poor. Total Expenditure. Average Price of Wheat per Quarter. Population.
By the Winchester Bushel of Eight Gallons. By the Imperial Bushel of Eight Gallons.
(Average.)
1748-49-50
£ 730,135 £ 40,164 ..... £ 689,971 £ 730,135 27 11 ..... 6,467,000
1775-6 1,720,316 137,072 35,072 1,530,800 1,703,528 45 0 ..... 7,690,000
(Average.)
1783-4-5
2,167,749 163,511 91,998 2,004,239 2,259,748 46 6½ ..... 8,260,000
(Average.)
1801-2-3
5,348,205 1,034,105 190,072 4,077,891 5,302,068 64 8 ..... 9,000,000
1812-13 8,646,841 1,860,347 324,957 6,656,106 8,841,410 125 5 ..... 10,284,000
1813-14 8,388,974 1,880,817 332,663 6,294,581 8,508,061 108 9 ..... .....
1814-15 7,457,676 1,762,406 324,596 5,418,846 7,505,848 73 11 ..... .....
1815-16 6,937,425 1,214,071 ..... 5,724,839 6,938,910 64 4 ..... .....
1816-17 8,128,418 1,210,720 ..... 6,910,925 8,121,645 75 10 ..... .....
1817-18 9,320,440 1,432,332 ..... 7,870,801 9,303,133 94 9 ..... .....
1818-19 8,932,185 1,408,905 ..... 7,516,704 8,925,609 84 1 ..... .....
1819-20 8,719,655 1,342,658 ..... 7,330,254 8,672,912 73 0 ..... .....
1820-21 8,411,893 1,375,868 ..... 6,959,251 8,335,119 65 7 ..... } 11,978,000
1821-22 7,761,441 1,336,533 ..... 6,358,704 7,695,237 54 5 .....
1822-23 6,898,153 1,148,230 ..... 5,772,962 6,921,192 43 3 ..... .....
1823-24 6,836,505 1,137,598 ..... 5,736,900 6,874,498 51 9 ..... .....
1824-25 6,972,323 1,212,199 ..... 5,786,989 6,999,188 62 0 ..... .....
1825-26 6,965,051 1,246,145 ..... 5,928,505 7,174,650 66 6 ..... .....
1826-27 7,784,351 1,362,377 ..... 6,441,089 7,803,466 ..... 58 9 .....
1827-28 7,715,055 1,372,433 ..... 6,298,003 7,670,436 ..... 56 9 .....
1828-29 7,642,171 1,280,328 ..... 6,332,411 7,612,739 ..... 60 5 .....
1829-30 ..... ..... ..... 6,829,042 ..... ..... 66 3 .....
1830-31 8,279,218 1,540,198 ..... 6,798,888 8,339,087 ..... 64 3 } 13,894,000
1831-32 8,622,920 1,646,493 ..... 7,036,969 8,683,461 ..... 66 4

Statistics. The following account for 1825-26 shows the sources whence the poor-rates are derived, and the amount furnished by each.

Account of Monies levied by Assessment for Poor's Rate and County Rate in each County of England and Wales, in the year ending 25th March 1826; distinguishing the amount, and showing the proportion of amount levied in each County on Land, on Dwelling-Houses, on Mills and Factories, and on Manorial Profits and Incidentals.

Counties. Land. Dwelling Houses. Mills, Factories, &c. Manorial Profits, &c. Total Levied.
L.
L. Parts of 1000. L. Parts of 1000. L. Parts of 1000. L. Parts of 1000.
Bedford.....77,9209176,298745687183284,969
Berks.....89,59678721,0141852,446218397113,895
Bucks.....123,47085817,4951212,702192482143,915
Cambridge.....85,61284614,4271431,049101431101,231
Chester.....88,60676220,5921775,315461,75215116,265
Cornwall.....85,97978714,0161281,858177,40868109,261
Cumberland.....40,76574112,378225714131,1292154,986
Derby.....71,37681412,7351452,128241,4551787,694
Devon.....180,87376647,8982023,925173,39614236,092
Dorset.....74,81179917,17018375089141093,645
Durham.....63,29766616,6681753,9243811,44212095,031
Essex.....243,11282742,7611456,829231,3695294,071
Gloucester.....100,11764449,0173154,962321,4569155,552
Hereford.....58,6238956,73610386135165,480
Hertford.....74,92774023,1102282,756275125101,305
Huntingdon.....38,9128635,5041225701397245,083
Kent.....253,375681103,58427911,660313,3279371,946
Lancaster.....168,422482118,26133850,46114412,52536349,669
Leicester.....93,88283417,63415678273103112,608
Lincoln.....174,76686223,3061153,887198874202,846
Middlesex.....57,22195509,36584436,353607871603,726
Monmouth.....25,6628054,206132791251,2143831,873
Norfolk.....240,52679749,0851638,097273,92413301,632
Northampton.....131,64490412,3728553641,0227145,574
Northumberland.....50,83465315,2331968,7741132,9813877,822
Nottingham.....52,62565824,1243012,97137291480,011
Oxford.....109,30682321,8631651,14994693132,787
Rutland.....10,960922847717567111,889
Salop.....72,76380214,5151601,227132,2472590,752
Somerset.....141,24779830,3061712,380143,04217176,975
Southampton.....165,60276746,1742143,374166663215,816
Stafford.....85,67068734,9632616,655497,12953134,417
Suffolk.....221,33284236,5251394,398177122262,967
Surrey.....80,357321144,06457622,983922,64511250,049
Sussex.....214,30481842,7521634,610174662262,132
Warwick.....94,84260049,39331310,674683,08219157,991
Westmoreland.....24,1868762,83110249618103427,616
Wilts.....157,23184324,6621323,234181,3217186,448
Worcester.....62,88874915,8921893,111372,0922583,983
York, East Riding.....71,53065232,4142952,338213,47832109,760
York, North Riding.....83,5238928,205881,20813669793,605
York, West Riding.....180,59762778,47227223,269815,78220288,120
England.....4,523,2886791,788,865269255,7753893,559146,661,487
Wales.....272,19489325,363833,790133,32310304,670
Total of England and Wales.....4,795,4826881,814,228261259,5653796,882146,966,157

It is obvious, from the preceding tables, that, allowing for the increase of population, the increase of the rates has not been nearly so great as is commonly supposed. In point of fact, too, more than half the rates really form part of the wages of labour. The pernicious practice of eking out wages by means of contributions from the rates began in 1795; and as it forms at this moment one of the principal evils in the state of the English poor, we may be excused, perhaps, for subjoining the following statements illustrative of its tendency.

The price of corn, which had, upon an average of the three preceding years, averaged 54s., rose in 1795 to 74s. As wages continued stationary at their former elevation, the distress of the poor was very great; and many able-bodied labourers, who had rarely before applied for parish assistance, became claimants for relief. But instead of meeting this emergency as it ought to have been met, by temporary expedients, and by grants of relief proportioned to the exigency of every given case, one uniform system was adopted. The magistrates of Berks, and some

Statistics. other southern counties, issued tables, showing the wages which, as they affirmed, every labouring man ought to receive, according to the variations in the number of his family, and the price of bread; and they accompanied these tables with an order, directing the parish officers to make up the deficit to the labourer, in the event of the wages paid him by his employers falling short of the tabular allowance. An act was at the same time passed to allow the justices to administer relief out of the workhouse, and also to relieve such poor persons as had property of their own. As might have been expected, this system did not cease with the temporary circumstances which gave it birth, but has ever since been acted upon. It is now almost universally established in the southern half of England, and has been productive of an extent of mischief that could hardly have been conceived possible.

"It is needless to dwell on the folly of attempting to make the wages of labour vary directly and immediately with every change in the price of bread. Every one must see, that if this system were bona fide acted upon, if the poor were always supplied with the power of purchasing an equal quantity of corn, whether it happened to be abundant and cheap, or scarce and dear, they could have no motive to lessen their consumption in seasons when the supply is deficient, so that the whole pressure of the scarcity would, in such cases, be removed from them and thrown entirely upon the other, and chiefly the middle classes. But, not to insist on this point, let us look at the practical operation of this system as it affects the labourer and his employers. The allowance scales now issued from time to time by the magistrates are usually framed on the principle that every labourer should have a gallon loaf of standard wheaten bread weekly for every member of his family and one over; that is, four loaves for three persons, five for four, six for five, and so on. Suppose, now, that the gallon loaf costs 1s. 6d., and that the average rate of wages in any particular district is 8s. a week, A, an industrious unmarried labourer, will get 8s.; but B has a wife and four children, hence he claims seven gallon loaves, or 10s. 6d. a week; and as wages are only 8s., he gets 2s. 6d. a week from the parish. C, again, has a wife and six children; he consequently requires nine gallon loaves, or 13s. 6d. a week, and gets of course a pension, over and above his wages, of 5s. 6d. D is so idle and disorderly that no one will employ him, but he has a wife and five children, and is in consequence entitled to eight gallon loaves for their support, so that he must have a pension of 12s. a week to support him in his dissolute mode of life.

"It is clear that this system, by making the parish allowance to labourers increase with every increase in the number of their children, acts as a bounty on marriage, and that, by increasing the supply of labourers beyond the demand, it necessarily depresses the rate of wages. And it is further clear, that by giving the same allowance to the idle and disorderly as to the industrious and well-behaved workman, it operates as a premium on idleness and profligacy, and takes away some of the most powerful motives to industry and good conduct. These, however, are not the only effects of this system. Under its operation a labourer dares not venture to earn beyond a certain amount; for if he did, his allowance from the parish would either be withheld altogether, or proportionally reduced. In consequence, working by the piece is now comparatively unknown in the southern counties of England; and the whole labouring population are reduced to the condition of paupers, deprived of the means

and almost of the desire to emerge from the state of he-Statisties lotism in which they are sunk.

"It must be obvious to every one, that if we would avert the plague of universal poverty from the land, a vigorous effort must be made to counteract this system; and we have experience to teach us how this may be done. All, in fact, that is necessary, is to revert to the regulations established previously to 1795, to abolish every vestige of the allowance system, and to enact that henceforth no able-bodied labourer shall have a legal claim for relief, unless he consent to accept it in a workhouse. This condition would go far to prevent relief from being claimed by any except the really necessitous; for there is nothing of which the idle and disorderly are so much afraid, as of the strict discipline, scanty fare, and hard labour that ought to be enforced in every workhouse. It is not, however, meant to recommend that relief should in all cases be refused except to the inmates of such establishments. In the great majority of instances, that temporary assistance which the able-bodied poor only require may be more advantageously afforded at their own houses. But to prevent its being abused, it is indispensable that authority to refuse it, except under condition of residence in a workhouse, and of unconditional submission to all its regulations, should be vested in the administrators of the law. The maimed and impotent poor may, in all cases, be more cheaply and better provided for in their own houses than in workhouses.

"Were the change now proposed effected, most of the inconveniences attached to the poor-laws would be removed, and their salutary and sustaining influence would alone remain." (McCulloch's Principles of Political Economy, 2d edit. pp. 418-421.)

XI.—Establishments for the purposes of War and Defence.

These consist, of course, principally of the army and navy. But as detailed accounts, derived from the very best sources, are given, under the articles ARMY and NAVY in this work, of all the most important particulars relating to the history and present state of each of these grand departments of the public force, it would be quite superfluous to enter into any details with respect to them in this place. The subjoined accounts of revenue and expenditure during the three years ended with 1831, contain statements of the number of troops and seamen, and of the expense incurred on account of each branch of the service, in each of these years. They seem, therefore, to include every thing to which it is necessary to direct the reader's attention in this place.

Exclusively of the army and navy, great numbers of individuals in all parts of the country are enrolled as special constables, who may be called upon by the magistrates and other civil authorities to assist in suppressing disorders, and in preserving the public peace. In London and in other great towns strong bodies of police are also employed, constituting, as it were, a half military and half civil force.

2. Revenue and Expenditure.

The various taxes, the produce of which forms the public revenue of the kingdom, will be described in the article TAXATION in this work, where also their real incidence and practical operation will be pointed out. The subjoined tables give an account of the income and expenditure of the empire during each of the three years ending with 1831.

Account of the Public Income of the United Kingdom during each of the three years ending with the 5th of January 1832, specifying the different Taxes, and the produce of each.

HEADS OF INCOME. YEARS.
1830. 1831. 1832.
L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d.
Customs and Excise.
Foreign 1,519,572 8 7 1,480,507 3 2 1,432,179 8 0
Spirits
  Rum 1,434,782 13 1 1,599,445 6 11 1,629,331 9 5
  British 4,783,931 2 1 5,185,574 4 9 5,195,125 5 6
Malt 3,814,305 1 5 3,435,272 14 2 4,359,333 16 8
Beer 3,055,453 15 11 2,345,132 10 8 6,388 19 1
Hops 242,658 0 10 118,912 5 3 148,594 19 2
Wine 1,473,607 11 4 1,524,177 18 3 1,537,484 2 4
Sugar and Molasses 5,089,315 0 3 4,927,025 7 6 4,307,472 5 8
Tea 3,321,722 2 6 3,387,097 18 9 3,344,918 12 9
Coffee 498,951 8 1 579,353 10 7 583,751 5 6
Tobacco and Snuff 2,849,766 7 8 2,924,264 13 11 2,990,325 7 4
Batter 147,839 3 4 102,752 3 8 121,256 4 11
Cheese 87,122 14 4 54,870 19 5 68,256 16 0
Currants and Raisins 383,102 2 6 420,217 0 3 503,440 9 1
Corn 898,793 15 2 790,109 17 8 544,792 4 3
Cotton Wool,* and Sheep's, im-
ported
317,074 10 5 452,274 11 11 476,682 17 7
Silks 205,615 9 0 209,047 7 3 213,847 14 6
Printed Goods 552,270 12 4 570,330 15 0 58,968 4 6
Hides and Skins 452,768 15 7 255,278 3 10 52,134 17 0
Paper 684,563 10 11 690,610 1 4 680,140 5 4
Soup 1,182,245 11 1 1,251,921 12 11 1,139,313 3 5
Candles and Tallow 652,971 16 11 662,944 18 8 615,554 12 3
Coals, sea-borne 983,919 9 2 1,021,862 5 11 125,745 15 11
Glass 670,494 12 3 567,632 18 11 548,050 5 6
Bricks, Tiles,* and Slates 398,145 14 8 383,935 5 7 368,418 11 6
Timber 1,394,407 10 11 1,319,233 9 11 1,278,995 14 10
Auctions 251,562 19 6 234,854 2 11 218,085 4 7
Excise Licenses 845,300 18 3 848,469 14 11 919,175 4 9
Miscellaneous Duties of Cus-
toms and Excise
1,092,668 2 4 1,971,223 8 3 1,743,795 6 1
11,975,957 18 6 11,836,718 18 7
Total of Customs and Excise 40,059,983 10 5 39,344,482 12 8
35,600,609 4 1
Stamps.
Deeds and other Instruments 1,663,145 14 6 1,621,427 1 8 1,512,167 3 1
Probates and Legacies 2,035,719 0 4 2,034,432 15 3 2,001,932 4 7
Insurance
  (Marine†) 226,897 6 6 219,565 6 1 248,156 11 3
  (Fire) 764,939 0 11 769,931 3 11 764,755 11 11
Bills of Exchange, Bankers'
  Notes, &c. 593,485 1 1 508,546 1 8 606,794 14 9
Newspapers and Advertis-
ments
433,385 5 10 613,848 2 2 655,724 10 3
Stage Coaches 426,472 1 3 418,598 5 9 422,520 14 9
Post Horses 252,772 2 8 220,357 12 10 231,863 3 4
Receipts 225,096 2 6 223,600 6 2 218,847 6 10
Other Stamp Duties 663,164 5 9 516,716 18 8 416,068 15 0
7,285,976 1 7 7,248,983 14 6
7,138,636 16 5
Assessed and Land Taxes.
Land Taxes 1,260,159 10 11 1,184,790 12 5 1,161,312 7 1
Houses 1,324,327 18 9 1,361,625 0 5 1,357,041 13 11
Windows 1,163,760 17 8 2,185,283 7 10 1,178,344 2 3
Servants 286,552 7 0 295,087 5 6 295,111 13 6
Horses 405,678 1 9 425,125 17 0 417,841 2 0
Carriages 374,677 14 0 397,013 10 0 392,947 4 0
Dogs 183,060 8 4 186,102 2 0 181,894 1 0
Other Assessed Taxes 268,175 2 9 259,242 11 7 239,117 19 3
5,206,392 1 3 5,294,870 6 10
Post Office 2,184,667 2 4 2,212,206 5 6
Crown Lands 465,481 4 5 363,742 0 4
Other Ordinary Revenues and
other Resources
622,302 0 0 376,805 0 6
5,222,718 5 1
2,257,364 4 11
373,770 10 2
347,214 0 5
Grand Total 55,824,802 0 1 54,840,190 0 4
50,990,315 10 3

N. B.—The duties marked * are now repealed; those marked † are reduced.

There are no means by which it is possible to assign to each portion of the empire what may be considered its proper share of the total expenditure. But the following table shows how much each contributes to the revenue:—

Return of the Revenue collected in 1831, in England, Wales, Scotland, and Ireland, respectively; distinguishing the Customs, Excise, Stamps, and Assessed Taxes.

Places. Customs. Excise. Stamps. Land and Assessed Taxes. Post Office. Total.
L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d.
England..... 16,515,911 0 0 14,147,252 6 5 6,410,573 6 10 4,804,829 5 4 1,031,715 0 0 42,910,280 18 7
Wales..... 26,189 0 0 176,046 4 6 ..... ..... ..... 105,530 0 0 40,995 0 0 348,710 4 6
Scotland..... 1,478,231 0 0 2,576,965 4 1 534,985 15 0 318,578 0 7 204,593 6 9 5,118,353 6 5
Ireland..... 1,463,624 0 0 2,193,079 4 7 482,040 19 8 ... ... ... 253,356 16 5 4,392,101 0 8
Total.....L. 19,483,905 0 0 19,093,342 19 7 7,427,600 1 6 5,228,937 5 11 1,530,660 3 2 52,764,445 10 2

Account of the Public Expenditure of the United Kingdom during each of the three years ending with the 5th of January 1832, specifying each separate item, with the number of Troops, Seamen, &c.

HEADS OF EXPENDITURE. YEARS.
1830. 1831. 1832.
L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d.
Revenue Charges of Collection:
Customs { Civil Departments..... 1,100,050 3 10 ..... ..... ..... 1,027,870 17 11 1,002,251 6 91
          { Preventive Service..... 268,478 10 3 ..... ..... ..... 260,043 1 4 313,674 13 72
          Total..... 1,368,528 19 2 ..... ..... ..... 1,287,913 18 6 1,315,926 0 5
Excise..... 1,240,948 12 0 ..... ..... ..... 1,225,429 10 91 1,144,150 5 41
Stamps..... 193,279 13 9 ..... ..... ..... 190,157 7 11 183,109 19 11
Assessed and Land Taxes..... 287,183 2 2 ..... ..... ..... 281,939 12 1 281,304 2 4
Other Ordinary Revenues (except the Post Office)..... 28,162 10 6 ..... ..... ..... 28,782 2 10 29,355 16 2
    Total Revenue..... 3,118,102 17 3 3,014,224 11 4 2,955,846 3 5
Public Debt.
Interest of Permanent Debt..... 23,318,866 10 7 ..... ..... ..... 24,091,759 7 10 24,027,666 2 6
Actual Payment of Terminable Annuities..... 1,854,695 8 4 ..... ..... ..... 1,843,106 11 7 1,844,498 4 1
Actual Payment for Life Annuities and Annuities for Terms of Years..... 826,402 13 10 ..... ..... ..... 1,453,269 2 5 1,501,991 5 6
Interest of Exchequer Bills..... 878,494 1 3 ..... ..... ..... 813,300 16 5 655,329 11 3
Management..... 275,143 7 12 ..... ..... ..... 275,179 3 4 273,296 8 9
    Total Debt..... 29,153,602 1 3 28,476,606 1 7 28,392,781 12 2
Civil Government.
Civil List; Privy Purse; Tradesmen's Bills; Salaries of the Household..... 409,700 0 0 ..... ..... ..... 401,628 16 10 411,800 0 0
The Allowances to the Junior Branches of the Royal Family, and to H. R. H. Leopold George Frederick Prince of Coburg..... 247,974 4 6 ..... ..... ..... 245,923 1 6 212,375 0 0
The Lord Lieutenant of Ireland's Establishment..... 67,935 1 8 ..... ..... ..... 32,749 9 3 16,379 14 1
The Salaries and other Expenses of the Houses of Parliament (including Printing)..... 141,599 18 5 ..... ..... ..... 144,374 6 5 238,037 19 11
Civil departments in Great Britain, exclusive of those in the Army, Navy, and Ordnance Estimates..... 328,706 0 11 ..... ..... ..... 320,045 1 8 339,376 9 8
Pensions on the Consolidated Fund and Gross Revenue..... 204,870 7 9 ..... ..... ..... 264,247 3 2 348,275 2 3
Ditto on Civil List..... 193,114 4 11 ..... ..... ..... 170,000 0 0 75,000 0 0
    Total Civil Government..... 1,596,899 17 4 1,578,967 19 0 1,641,244 6 8
Carry forward..... 33,663,604 16 3 33,009,798 12 0 32,899,672 1 7

1 This item of Welsh revenue cannot be discriminated.

HEADS OF EXPENDITURE. YEARS.
1830. 1831. 1832.
L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d. L. s. d.
Brought forward... 33,868,604 16 33,069,798 12 0 32,899,872 1
Justice.
Courts of Justice in England, Scotland, and Ireland..... 426,828 16 2 407,801 9 415,953 7
Police, and Criminal Prosecutions..... 203,639 11 3 222,450 9 4 210,523 4 11
Corrections.....
  Convicts at Home and Abroad..... 145,925 18 3 150,305 16 1 5,129,587 5 1
  Convicts New S. Wales..... 167,500 0 0 167,500 0 0 3,167,500 0 0
  Other Expenses..... 60,704 12 8 53,620 6 11½ 63,184 0 0
    Total Justice..... 1,004,593 13 4 993,678 2 986,747 17
Diplomatic.
Salaries and Retired Allowances of Foreign Ministers..... 224,950 0 0 220,930 15 141,437 15 3
Ditto ditto Consuls..... 192,470 0 0 117,575 0 0 112,195 0 0
Civil Contingencies, Diplomatic..... 59,118 5 2 37,097 7 1 45,193 3 8
    Total Diplomatic..... 403,538 5 2 375,625 2 10½ 298,825 18 11
Forces.
Army.....
  Effective { Number of Men..... (83,721.) (64,172.) (78,493.)
  Effective { Charge..... 4,829,282 12 4,492,638 5 4,808,362 16 2
  Non- { Number of Men..... (96,595.) (96,081.) (94,024.)
  Effective { Charge..... 2,939,896 0 0 2,939,606 9 6 2,924,694 17 4
    Total Army..... 7,769,178 12 7,432,294 15 7,732,967 13 6
Ordnance.....
  Effective { Number of Men..... (8,879.) (8,878.) (12,791.)
  Effective { Charge..... 1,363,282 0 0 1,332,354 0 0 1,062,913 0 0
  Non- { Number of Men..... (12,494.) (12,364.) (13,052.)
  Effective { Charge..... 365,626 0 0 357,090 0 0 355,904 0 0
    Total Ordnance..... 1,728,908 0 0 1,689,444 0 0 1,418,817 0 0
Navy.....
  Effective { Number of Men..... (32,458.) (31,444.) (33,749.)
  Effective { Charge..... 4,299,645 11 11 4,063,398 7 4,243,846 7 3
  Non- { Number of Men..... (30,467.) (29,922.) (32,621.)
  Effective { Charge..... 1,579,149 0 0 1,531,646 17 11½ 1,626,704 14 5
    Total Navy..... 5,878,794 11 11 5,594,955 5 8 5,870,551 0 8
    Total Forces..... 15,376,881 4 14,716,694 0 15,022,335 15 2
Bounties for promoting Fisheries, Linen Manufactures, &c. paid out of the Gross Revenue..... 236,898 3 207,066 10 173,955 18
Public Works..... 606,396 8 4 474,242 0 1 825,210 8 3
Payments out of the Revenue of Crown Lands, for Improvements and various Public Services..... 427,015 2 252,691 5 254,433 11
Post-Office Charges of Collection and other Payments..... 696,801 16 11½ 718,359 8 673,317 5
Quarantine and Warehousing Establishments..... 191,552 18 214,037 14 203,734 0
Spanish Claims, as granted by Parliament..... 200,000 0 0
Miscellaneous Services, not classed under the foregoing heads, consisting of Grants of Parliament, Payments out of the Consolidated Fund and of Civil List..... 1,336,287 16 7 1,988,530 7 1,236,875 18 5
    Grand Total..... 54,348,875 9 53,011,533 4 52,575,308 16
* Terminable and Life Annuities paid as above..... 2,681,098 2 2 3,296,375 14 0 3,346,489 9 7
Corresponding Perpetuities, as estimated by Mr Finlaison..... 1,811,529 15 9 2,143,685 13 6 2,104,507 18 2
    Difference..... 869,568 6 5 1,152,689 0 6 1,241,981 11 5

The national debt consists, as every one knows, of sums borrowed to make up deficiencies of revenue. It originated during the wars carried on by William III. against France. Its contraction was then not a matter of choice, but of necessity; for, owing to the numerous adherents the exiled family of Stuart had in the country, it would have been impossible to have imposed such an amount of taxes as would have sufficed to defray the expenses of the war, without inflaming the popular discontent to such a degree as would most probably have been subversive of the new government. At first it was usual to fund the amount of stock equal to the sums borrowed; but since the reign of George II. a different practice has

obtained; and it has been judged advisable to fund generally in a stock bearing a low rate of interest, by proportionally increasing its amount. Thus suppose interest were five per cent. and that government wished to borrow in three per cent. stock; in such a case they would give L.166\frac{2}{3} of stock for every L.100 money paid into the exchequer. By affording, in consequence of the increase of the stock, greater scope for speculation, this practice is supposed to have enabled government to borrow on rather lower terms at the time; but, by disabling them from reducing the interest on such loans at the close of a war, when the market rate of interest uniformly falls, it has proved most signal injurious. It is not going too far to say that this blunder costs the public at this moment L.7,000,000 a year.

Principal. Interest.
Debt at the accession of Queen Anne in 1702..... L.16,394,702 L.1,310,942
Debt at the accession of George I. in 1714..... 54,145,363 3,351,358
Debt at the accession of George II. in 1727..... 52,092,238 2,217,551
Debt in 1763..... 138,865,430 4,852,051
Debt at the commencement of the American war in 1775..... 128,583,635 4,471,571
Debt at the conclusion of the American war in 1784..... 249,851,628 9,451,772
Debt at the commencement of the French war in 1793..... 239,350,148 9,208,495
Debt 5th January 1817, when the English and Irish exchequers were consolidated..... 848,292,477 33,854,466

Since 1817 a deduction has been made of about sixty-four millions from the principal of the debt, and about 5\frac{1}{2} millions from the interest on its account. This diminution has been principally effected by taking advantage of the fall in the rate of interest since the peace, and offering to pay off the holders of the different stocks unless they

consented to accept of a reduced payment; and had it not been for the highly objectionable practice already adverted to, of funding large capitals at a low rate of interest, the saving in this way would have been incomparably larger. We subjoin an account of the funded and unfunded debt of Great Britain and Ireland as at 5th January 1833.

Capital of Unredeemed Debt.
GREAT BRITAIN.
Debt due to the South Sea Company, at 3 per cent..... L.3,662,784 8 6\frac{1}{2}
Old South Sea annuities..... 3,497,870 2 7
New South Sea annuities..... 2,460,830 2 10
South Sea annuities, 1751..... 523,100 0 0
Debt due to the Bank of England..... 14,696,800 0 0
Bank annuities created in 1726..... 874,949 19 0
Consolidated annuities..... 347,458,931 7 0\frac{1}{2}
Reduced annuities..... 123,029,913 5 3
Total bearing interest at 3 per cent..... L.496,195,179 5 2\frac{1}{2}
Annuities at 3\frac{1}{2} per cent. anno 1818..... 12,350,801 16 1
Reduced annuities, ditto..... 63,453,824 2 1
New 3\frac{1}{2} per cent. annuities..... 137,613,820 7 2
L.4 per cent. annuities created in 1826..... 10,796,340 0 0
New 5 per cent. annuities..... 462,736 13 4
Great Britain..... L.720,872,702 3 10\frac{1}{2}
IRELAND.
Irish consolidated annuities at 3 per cent..... 2,803,780 18 4
Irish reduced annuities ditto..... 162,062 6 2
L.3. 10s. per cent. debentures and stock..... 14,605,670 3 11
Reduced 3\frac{1}{2} per cent. annuities..... 1,234,509 4 3
New 3\frac{1}{2} per cent. annuities..... 11,784,394 14 0
Debt due to the Bank of Ireland at 4 per cent..... 1,615,384 12 4
New 5 per cent. annuities..... 6,661 1 0
Debt due to the Bank of Ireland at 5 per cent..... 1,015,384 12 4
Ireland..... L.33,227,847 6 4
Total united kingdom..... 754,100,549 10 2\frac{1}{2}
Exchequer bills outstanding 5th January 1833..... 27,278,060 0 0
Total funded and unfunded debt 5th January 1833..... L.781,378,549 10 2\frac{1}{2}
Annual Charge on Account of Public Debt.
In Great Britain. In Ireland. Total Annual Charge.
£ s. d. £ s. d. £ s. d.
Due to the public creditor. Annual interest on unredeemed capital..... 22,810,491 8 1,171,553 0 11½ ..... .....
Long annuities, expire 1860..... 1,192,943 4 10 73 19 8 ..... .....
Annuities per 4 Geo. IV. c. 22, expire 1867, 585,740 0 0 ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Annuities per 10 Geo. IV. c. 24, expire at
various period.....
870,998 2 0 ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Annuities to the trustees of the Waterloo
Subscription Fund, per 59 Geo. III. c. 34,
expire 5th of July 1833.....
7,900 0 0 ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Payable at the 717,529 5 0 ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Life Annuities, per 48 Geo. III.
National Debt Office. 22,371 13 3 ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
at the
Life Annuities,
per various acts,
English..... 34,230 8 7 6,823 7 3 ..... .....
Irish..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... .....
Interest of funded debt..... 20,242,204 2 1,178,450 7 27,420,654 9
Management of debt..... ..... ..... ..... ..... ..... 271,533 1 10½
Annual charge on account of public funded debt,
Interest on exchequer bills (1832).....
..... ..... ..... ..... ..... 27,692,187 11
Total annual charge on account of funded and
unfunded debt.....
..... ..... ..... ..... ..... 659,165 6 6
..... ..... ..... ..... ..... 28,351,352 18 11½

A sinking fund for the extinction of the public debt was established by Sir Robert Walpole as early as 1716; but it was virtually subverted in 1733. It was again instituted by Mr Pitt in 1786; and, singular as it may now appear, it was for a lengthened period supposed, that by means of the legerdemain operation of compound interest, the public debt might be reduced by borrowing money to pay it off. Dr Hamilton of Aberdeen has the merit of having dissipated this extraordinary delusion, the grossest, certainly, by which any civilized nation ever suffered itself to be imposed upon. He showed that the excess of revenue over expenditure is the only real sinking fund,—the only means by which any portion of the public debt had ever been, or ever could be, paid off; and that all sinking funds operating at compound interest, or otherwise, excepting in as far as they happened to be founded on this principle, were mere quackery and delusion. In fact, upon examining into the matter, it was found that the public debt would have been decidedly less had the sinking fund never been heard of. After such an exposition, the existence of the sinking fund was impossible; and having undergone various modifications, it was finally abolished by the 10th Geo. IV. cap. 27, which enacts, that the sum thenceforth annually applicable to the reduction of the public debt shall consist of the actual surplus revenue beyond the expenditure. In 1832 this surplus amounted to £614,758. 18s. 8d.

XIV.—Population.

The population of England and Wales at periods antecedent to 1801, can only be determined by computations founded on the returns obtained under poll and hearth

taxes, and on the registers of births and deaths. Unfortunately, however, none of these affords data from which the amount of population can be accurately deduced. During the latter part of last century the uncertainty in which this subject was involved afforded materials for a keen controversy, which was carried on by Dr Price on the one hand, and by Mr Howlett, vicar of Dunmow in Essex, and Mr Hales, on the other. The former contended that population had been declining in England from the Revolution downwards, and that it did not in 1777 exceed 4,763,000. Mr Howlett, however, showed conclusively that no reliance could be placed on either Dr Price's facts or arguments; and that there could be no reasonable doubt that the population had materially increased in the interval between 1700 and 1780. The returns obtained under the population acts put an end to this controversy, and proved the general accuracy of Mr Howlett's conclusions. The population, as deduced from them, after allowing for their defects and inaccuracies, is as follows:—

Years. Population of
England and Wales.
Years. Population of
England and Wales.
1700..... 5,475,000 1760..... 6,736,000
1710..... 5,240,000 1770..... 7,428,000
1720..... 5,565,000 1780..... 7,953,000
1730..... 5,796,000 1790..... 8,675,000
1740..... 6,064,000 1801..... 8,872,000
1750..... 6,467,000

The population for 1801 was determined by actual enumeration; and since then censuses have been taken in 1811, 1821, and 1831, the results of which are embodied in the following comprehensive table.

1 Exclusive of £34,521. 7s. 10d. the annual charge on capitals and long annuities, standing in the names of the National Debt Commissioners, on account of stock unclaimed ten years or upwards, and of unclaimed dividends; and also on account of donations and bequests.

Counties. 1801. Increase per cent. 1811. Increase per cent. 1821. Increase per cent. 1831.
ENGLAND.
Bedford..... 63,393 11 70,213 19 83,716 14 95,383
Berks..... 109,215 8 118,277 11 131,977 10 145,289
Buckingham..... 107,444 9 117,650 14 134,068 9 146,529
Cambridge..... 89,346 13 101,109 20 121,909 18 143,955
Chester..... 191,751 18 227,031 19 270,098 24 334,410
Cornwall..... 188,269 15 216,667 19 257,447 17 302,440
Cumberland..... 117,230 14 133,744 17 156,124 10 169,681
Derby..... 161,142 15 185,487 15 313,333 11 237,170
Devon..... 343,001 12 383,308 15 439,040 13 494,168
Dorset..... 115,319 8 124,693 16 144,499 10 159,252
Durham..... 160,361 11 177,625 17 207,673 22 253,827
Essex..... 226,437 11 252,473 15 289,424 10 317,233
Gloucester..... 250,809 12 285,514 18 335,843 15 386,904
Hereford..... 89,191 5 94,073 10 103,243 7 110,976
Hertford..... 97,577 14 111,654 16 129,714 10 143,341
Huntingdon..... 37,568 12 42,208 15 48,771 9 53,149
Kent..... 307,624 21 373,095 14 426,016 12 479,155
Lancaster..... 672,731 23 828,309 27 1,052,859 27 1,336,854
Leicester..... 130,081 16 150,419 16 174,571 13 197,003
Lincoln..... 208,557 14 237,891 19 283,058 12 317,244
Middlesex..... 818,129 17 953,276 20 1,144,531 19 1,358,541
Monmouth..... 45,582 36 62,127 15 71,833 36 98,130
Norfolk..... 273,371 7 291,999 18 344,368 13 390,054
Northampton..... 131,757 7 141,353 15 162,483 10 179,276
Northumberland..... 157,101 9 172,161 15 198,965 12 222,912
Nottingham..... 140,350 16 162,900 15 186,873 20 225,320
Oxford..... 109,620 9 119,191 15 136,971 11 151,726
Rutland..... 16,356 ... 16,380 13 18,487 5 19,385
Salop..... 167,639 16 194,298 6 206,153 8 222,503
Somerset..... 273,750 12 303,180 17 355,314 13 403,908
Southampton..... 219,656 12 245,080 15 283,298 11 314,313
Stafford..... 239,153 21 295,153 17 345,895 19 410,485
Suffolk..... 210,431 11 234,211 15 270,542 9 296,304
Surrey..... 269,043 20 323,851 23 398,658 22 486,326
Sussex..... 159,311 19 190,083 22 233,019 17 272,328
Warwick..... 208,190 10 228,735 20 274,392 23 336,988
Westmoreland..... 41,617 10 45,922 12 51,359 7 55,041
Wilts..... 185,107 5 193,828 15 222,157 8 239,181
Worcester..... 139,333 15 160,546 15 184,424 15 211,356
York (East Riding)..... 110,992 16 134,437 14 154,010 10 168,646
City of York and Ainstey 24,393 12 27,304 12 30,451 17 35,362
York (North Riding)..... 158,225 7 169,391 11 187,452 2 190,873
York (West Riding)..... 565,282 16 655,042 22 801,274 22 976,415
8,331,434 14\frac{1}{2} 9,538,827 17\frac{1}{2} 11,261,437 16 13,089,338
WALES.
Anglesey..... 33,806 10 37,045 21 45,063 7 48,325
Brecon..... 31,833 19 37,735 16 43,603 10 47,763
Cardigan..... 42,956 17 50,260 15 57,784 10 64,780
Carmarthen..... 67,317 15 77,217 17 90,239 12 100,655
Carnarvon..... 41,521 19 49,336 17 57,958 15 65,753
Denbigh..... 60,852 6 64,240 19 76,511 8 83,167
Flint..... 39,622 17 46,518 15 53,784 11 60,012
Glamorgan..... 71,525 18 85,067 19 101,737 24 126,612
Merioneth..... 27,506 4 30,924 11 34,382 3 35,609
Montgomery..... 47,978 8 51,931 15 59,899 9 66,485
Pembroke..... 56,280 7 60,615 22 74,009 9 81,424
Radnor..... 19,050 9 20,900 7 22,459 9 24,651
541,546 13 611,788 17 717,438 12 805,236
GREAT BRITAIN.
England..... 8,334,434 14\frac{1}{2} 9,551,888 17\frac{1}{2} 11,261,437 16 13,089,338
Wales..... 541,546 13 611,788 17 717,438 12 805,236
Scotland..... 1,599,068 14 1,805,688 16 2,093,456 13 2,365,807
Army, Navy, &c..... 470,598 ... 640,500 ... 319,300 ... 277,017
10,942,646 15\frac{1}{2} 12,609,864 14 14,391,631 15 16,537,398

Statistics. The following table contains an account of the houses inhabited, building, and uninhabited, the number of families, the distribution of families according to their occupations, with the number of males and the number of females, in England and Wales in the year 1821. It is necessary, however, to observe that the classification of employ-
Statistics. The following table contains an account of the houses inhabited, building, and uninhabited, the number of families, the distribution of families according to their occupations, with the number of males and the number of females, in England and Wales in the year 1821. It is necessary, however, to observe that the classification of employ-
Statistics. The following table contains an account of the houses inhabited, building, and uninhabited, the number of families, the distribution of families according to their occupations, with the number of males and the number of females, in England and Wales in the year 1821. It is necessary, however, to observe that the classification of employ-

Summary of Houses, Families, Occupations, and Persons, in 1821.
COUNTIES. HOUSES. OCCUPATIONS. PERSONS.
Inhabited. By how many Families occupied. Building. Uninhabited. Families chiefly employed in Agriculture. Families chiefly employed in Trade, Manufactures, or Handicraft. All other Families not comprised in the two preceding Classes. Males. Females. Total of Persons.
ENGLAND.
Bedford..... 15,412 17,373 105 202 10,754 4,827 1,792 40,385 43,331 83,716
Berks..... 24,705 27,709 154 622 14,769 8,773 4,158 65,546 66,431 131,977
Bucks..... 24,876 28,867 148 549 16,640 8,318 3,909 64,867 69,201 134,068
Cambridge..... 20,869 25,603 217 247 15,536 6,964 3,103 60,301 61,608 121,909
Chester..... 47,094 52,024 414 1,212 18,120 27,105 6,799 132,952 137,146 270,098
Cornwall..... 43,873 51,202 535 1,820 19,302 15,543 16,357 124,817 132,630 257,447
Cumberland..... 27,246 31,804 155 908 11,297 13,146 7,361 75,600 80,524 156,124
Derby..... 40,054 42,404 305 1,072 14,582 20,505 7,317 105,873 107,460 213,333
Devon..... 71,486 90,714 756 3,082 37,037 33,985 19,692 208,229 230,811 439,040
Dorset..... 25,926 30,312 278 766 14,821 10,811 4,680 68,934 75,565 144,499
Durham..... 32,798 45,940 257 966 9,427 20,212 16,301 99,100 108,573 207,673
Essex..... 49,978 59,629 298 1,161 33,206 17,160 9,263 144,909 144,515 289,424
Gloucester..... 60,881 72,156 705 2,555 23,170 35,907 13,079 160,451 175,392 335,843
Hereford..... 20,061 21,917 132 804 13,558 5,633 2,726 51,552 51,691 103,243
Hertford..... 23,178 26,170 172 509 13,485 7,935 4,750 64,121 65,593 129,714
Huntingdon..... 8,879 10,397 46 168 6,435 2,937 1,025 24,020 24,751 48,771
Kent..... 70,507 85,399 511 3,186 30,869 30,180 24,890 209,833 216,183 426,016
Lancaster..... 176,449 203,173 1,735 5,759 22,723 152,271 28,179 512,476 510,383 1,052,859
Leicester..... 34,775 36,806 225 1,141 13,028 20,297 3,481 86,390 88,181 174,571
Lincoln..... 53,813 58,760 302 979 34,900 15,845 8,015 141,570 141,488 283,058
Middlesex..... 152,969 261,871 2,879 7,327 9,393 161,356 91,122 533,573 610,958 1,144,531
Monmouth..... 13,211 14,122 166 520 6,020 6,147 1,955 27,278 34,555 71,833
Norfolk..... 62,274 74,497 525 1,209 36,368 26,201 11,928 166,892 177,476 344,368
Northampton..... 32,503 35,552 179 527 18,974 11,695 4,883 79,575 82,908 162,483
Northumberland..... 31,526 43,128 190 1,166 11,567 20,565 10,996 95,354 103,611 198,965
Nottingham..... 35,022 38,603 288 859 13,664 21,832 3,107 91,491 95,382 186,873
Oxford..... 25,594 28,841 245 531 15,965 8,971 3,905 68,817 68,154 136,971
Rutland..... 3,589 3,936 25 61 2,410 1,034 492 9,223 9,264 18,487
Salop..... 38,663 41,636 179 1,012 18,414 17,485 5,737 102,056 104,097 206,153
Somerset..... 61,852 73,537 850 1,974 31,448 27,132 14,957 170,199 185,115 355,314
Southampton..... 49,516 57,942 287 1,943 24,303 19,810 13,829 138,373 144,925 283,298
Stafford..... 63,319 68,780 429 2,326 18,285 42,435 8,060 171,668 169,372 341,040
Suffolk..... 42,773 55,064 270 656 30,795 17,448 6,851 132,410 138,132 270,542
Surrey..... 64,790 88,806 1,096 2,741 14,944 46,811 27,051 189,871 208,787 398,658
Sussex..... 36,283 43,565 576 1,272 21,920 15,463 6,182 116,705 116,314 233,019
Warwick..... 55,082 60,123 403 2,408 16,779 39,189 4,155 133,827 140,565 274,392
Westmoreland..... 9,243 10,438 113 301 5,096 3,801 1,541 25,513 25,846 51,359
Wilts..... 41,702 47,684 294 1,129 24,972 16,982 5,730 108,213 113,944 222,157
Worcester..... 34,738 39,006 232 980 14,926 18,566 5,514 90,259 94,165 184,424
York (East Riding).... 34,390 40,499 190 1,277 15,480 16,637 8,382 92,761 97,688 190,449
York (North Riding).... 35,765 38,731 148 835 16,737 11,570 10,424 90,153 93,228 183,381
York (West Riding).... 154,314 161,466 1,275 7,230 31,613 108,841 21,012 397,542 401,815 799,357
Total..... 1,051,973 2,346,717 18,289 66,055 773,732 1,118,295 454,690 5,483,679 5,777,758 11,261,437
Wales..... 136,183 146,706 985 3,652 74,225 41,680 30,801 350,487 366,951 717,438
Total of England and Wales..... 2,088,156 2,493,423 19,274 69,707 847,957 1,159,975 485,491 5,834,166 6,144,709 11,978,875

Rate of mortality, &c. Notwithstanding the defective state of the registers of marriages, births, and deaths, the results deduced from them are such as to establish beyond all question the fact of an extraordinary improvement having taken place in the healthiness of the mass of the people. Although about 919,000 were added to the population of England and Wales in the interval between 1780 and 1800, the annual average number of burials did not differ materially

Statistics during that period.1 It appears from the returns, that in 1780 the rate of mortality in England and Wales was one in forty; meaning by this, that one fortieth part of the whole population died annually. In 1790 the rate of mortality was reduced to one in forty-five. During the five years ending with 1800, it was one in forty-eight; during the five years ending with 1810, one in fifty-one; and during the five years ending with 1820, it had sunk to one in fifty-seven. During the five years ending with 1830, it seems to have slightly increased; having been, at an average of that period, one in fifty-four. See the subjoined table.

This extraordinary decrease of mortality is no doubt owing to a variety of causes; such as, the greater prevalence of habits of sobriety and cleanliness; the better lodging, feeding, and clothing of the labouring classes; improvements in medical science, &c. But to whatever it may be owing, it affords unquestionable evidence of the significantly improved condition of the population.

The increase of longevity has been particularly conspi-

uous in London and other great towns. During the first half of last century, the mortality in the metropolis is believed to have been as high as one in twenty-four; and it required, down to the American war, large supplies of recruits from the country to keep up its numbers. But from 1770 the rate of mortality has been gradually diminishing. In 1790 the births for the first time exceeded the burials; and since then the city would have gone on increasing, though it had not been indebted to the country for a single immigrant. In Manchester, Bristol, &c. the improvement has been equally striking.

The proportion of births and marriages to the population has continued pretty nearly stationary since 1790. We subjoin a table of the annual proportion of baptisms, burials, and marriages, to the population of England; calculated upon an average of the totals of such baptisms, burials, and marriages in the five years preceding the several enumerations of 1801, 1811, 1821, and 1831, and distinguishing the several counties.

COUNTIES. 1796—1800. 1806—1810. 1816—1820. 1826—1831.
Bap-tisms. Burials. Mar-rages. Bap-tisms. Burials. Mar-rages. Bap-tisms. Burials. Mar-rages. Bap-tisms. Burials. Mar-rages.
Bedford.....3550113345113135561243757129
Berks.....3351148335314433551403352149
Bucks.....3750129335112935551393655144
Cambridge.....3345118314413031561173246124
Chester.....3951130395113235521274357142
Cornwall.....3358120326214233701463465147
Cumberland.....3853145355313234551523656168
Derby.....3552138346113936611463656134
Devon.....3649109335211334601323560134
Dorset.....4162142355613936641443558138
Durham.....3842116345013334541343554148
Essex.....3544125344613036601463754154
Gloucester.....3755127366512036621113562116
Hereford.....4065183366114436601713756149
Hertford.....3854161345816835581713659127
Huntingdon.....3346104355013435631273647131
Kent.....3041116293811531511303449141
Lancaster.....3447114315111537551163857117
Leicester.....3549130385913436591273856127
Lincoln.....3249117315012531601343151135
Middlesex.....39379540469441511014045102
Monmouth.....5672168507014553721515983131
Norfolk.....3247126315013432591303354142
Northampton.....4250130385513237571293753135
Northumberland.....4757138435514141651494063141
Nottingham.....3251116335311933551243151120
Oxford.....3553139345614133571483252120
Rutland.....3350131345516135621423453138
Salop.....3454142356014236551483554140
Somerset.....3955139355512835611403660147
Southampton.....3446104304610232611283556131
Stafford.....3449124315311832521233251125
Suffolk.....3456129335513234661343760137
Surrey.....3742134374612939511393850129
Sussex.....3155126295312933691423358140
Warwick.....3552116354511936481183660119
Westmoreland.....3550142325513733521493357152
Wilts.....4160142365813836641343557145
Worcester.....3446137325212934531403152127
York (East Riding).....3955129304910834551223550116
York (North Riding).....3653142315112435611473556146
York (West Riding).....3449124335412336611243857136
Summary of England, (not including Wales)3648123345112235571273754129

1 Preliminary Remarks to Census of 1821. p. 26.

XV.—Crimes in England and Wales.

Crimes of violence have greatly decreased in England during the last half century. Highway robbery, once so prevalent, is now almost unknown; and though murders are occasionally perpetrated, they are not numerous compared with the amount of population. Latterly, however, the crime of arson has made a great and alarming progress; and, from the facility with which it may be committed, the difficulty of detection, and the destruction of property and life it is almost sure to occasion, no means should be left untried which may tend to arrest its progress. There would seem, from the accounts laid before parlia-

ment, to be of late years a very great increase in the offences against property. We believe, however, that much of this increase is apparent only, resulting from the establishment of a police force in most great towns, and from the consequent commitment and punishment of numerous culprits who were formerly allowed to escape. The law of England as to capital punishments has recently been much modified; and various opinions are entertained as to what will be the effect of the change. It has, however, been too recently effected, to allow of any inferences being drawn as to its practical operation. The subjoined tables give a very complete view of the state of crime in England and Wales during the seven years ending with 1832.

I.—Number of Persons Committed, Convicted, Sentenced, Acquitted, &c. in England and Wales.
In the Years 1826. 1827. 1828. 1829. 1830. 1831. 1832. Total Number in the Seven Years.
Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons.
COMMITTED FOR TRIAL.
Viz. Males..... 13,472 15,154 13,832 15,556 15,135 16,600 17,486 107,235
Females..... 2,692 2,770 2,732 3,119 2,971 3,047 3,343 20,675
Total..... 16,164 17,924 16,564 18,675 18,107 19,647 20,829 127,910
CONVICTED AND SENTENCED.
To death..... 1,203 1,529 1,165 1,385 1,397 1,601 1,449 9,729
Transportation for life..... 133 198 317 396 405 334 546 2,330
35 years.... ... ... ... 1 ... ... ... 1
28 years.... ... 1 1 ... 2 1 1 6
21 years.... ... 1 ... 2 ... 1 ... 4
14 years.... 185 293 508 691 659 638 764 3,736
10 years.... ... ... 1 ... ... 1 1 3
9 years.... ... ... ... ... 1 ... ... 1
7 years.... 1,945 2,232 2,046 2,285 2,169 2,340 2,603 15,620
5 years.... ... 1 ... ... ... ... ... 1
4 years.... ... ... 1 ... ... ... ... 1
3 years.... 11 11 11 7 1 5 3 49
Imprisonment, and severally to be whipped, fined, kept to hard labour, &c.... 297 296 243 235 209 226 230 1,736
1 year and above 6 months 1,204 1,433 1,117 1,277 1,220 1,311 1,304 8,866
6 months and under.... 5,819 6,251 5,991 6,646 6,458 7,012 7,644 45,821
Whipping, and fine..... 310 321 322 336 284 360 402 2,334
Total convicted..... 11,107 12,567 11,723 13,261 12,805 13,830 14,947 90,240
acquitted..... 3,271 3,407 3,169 3,614 3,470 3,723 3,716 24,370
no bills found, and not prosecuted..... 1,786 1,950 1,672 1,800 1,832 2,094 2,166 13,300
Total..... 16,164 17,942 16,564 18,675 18,107 19,647 20,829 127,910
Of whom were executed..... 57 73 58 74 46 52 54 414

II.—Specification of the Crimes of which Persons were convicted in England and Wales in 1826–1832, and of the Numbers annually convicted of such Crimes.

Nature of the Crimes of which Persons were
Convicted in the years.....
1826. 1827. 1828. 1829. 1830. 1831. 1832.
Number
of
Persons.
Number
of
Persons.
Number
of
Persons.
Number
of
Persons.
Number
of
Persons.
Number
of
Persons.
Number
of
Persons.
Arson, and other wilful burning..... 3 3 2 8 15 26 35
Bigamy..... 35 23 38 31 27 26 27
Burglary..... 311 368 171 108 104 99 118
Breaking into a dwelling-house, and lar-
ceny.....
125 240 353 561 535 517 583
Breaking into a building, shop, &c. (not
communicating with dwelling-house),
and larceny.....
... ... 151 164 208 163 203
Cattle stealing..... 21 31 28 25 25 20 42
— feloniously killing, and maiming... ... 1 2 2 2 7 8
Child stealing..... 1 5 3 3 4 4 2
Coining..... 7 14 6 ... ... 7 1
Coin, counterfeit, putting off, uttering,
and having, &c.....
210 223 205 256 243 257 349
Embezzlement (by servants)..... 91 101 135 130 122 127 154
Forgery of and uttering forged instru-
ments, other than Bank of England
notes.....
8 20 32 24 17 29 50
Forgery of and uttering forged Bank
of England notes.....
15 26 10 13 2 5 5
Forged Bank of England notes, having
in possession, &c.....
4 ... ... 1 ... ... 2
Fraudulent offences..... 157 206 215 282 290 266 280
Game laws, offences against..... 128 212 306 174 108 83 163
Horse stealing..... 121 147 135 147 131 125 155
Larceny..... 8,089 8,858 8,199 9,444 8,969 9,059 10,130
— in a dwelling-house, &c..... 222 223 69 81 100 113 127
— from the person..... 658 722 682 724 759 906 1,151
Letters, containing bank notes, &c.
secreting and stealing.....
... 3 1 ... 2 4 2
— sending threatening..... 2 ... 1 2 1 24 4
Manslaughter..... 62 83 72 56 82 79 66
Murder..... 13 12 20 13 16 14 20
— shooting at, stabbing, wound-
ing, and administering poison, with in-
tent to murder, &c.....
14 35 20 65 28 44 52
— concealing the birth of their infants 7 5 5 23 23 22 29
Perjury..... 6 6 7 4 9 6 6
Piracy..... ... ... ... ... 4 ... ...
Rape, &c..... 4 11 5 7 9 9 16
— assault with intent to commit..... 83 64 78 69 41 68 80
Riot and felony..... 48 ... 2 ... ... 105 44
Robbery of the person, on the highway
and other places.....
144 201 158 147 166 207 223
Sacrilege..... 4 8 7 11 8 15 13
Sheep stealing, and killing with intent
to steal.....
127 156 122 155 213 162 219
Sodomy..... 1 1 2 1 5 2 2
— assault with intent to commit,
and other unnatural offences.....
20 23 27 14 28 14 36
Stolen goods, receiving..... 157 235 229 277 277 271 347
Transports being at large, &c..... 12 12 7 8 8 10 4
Treason, high..... ... ... ... ... ... ... 1
Felony, transferring a stamp, to defraud... ... ... ... ... ... 1 ...
— trafficking in slaves..... ... ... ... ... 3 ... ...
— armed to assist smugglers, &c..... 1 16 11 ... 2 ... ...
— breaking thrashing machines, &c... ... ... ... ... 33 665 17
Felony, and misdemeanour (not other-
wise described).....
196 273 207 231 186 189 181
Total number of persons convicted
in each year.....
11,107 12,567 11,723 13,261 12,805 13,830 14,947

III.—Specification of the Crimes for which Persons were Executed in England and Wales in the years 1826–1832, and of the Numbers annually executed for such Crimes.

Crimes for which Persons were Executed, who were Sentenced to Death, in the Years..... 1826. 1827. 1828. 1829. 1830. 1831. 1832. Total Number in the Seven Years.
Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons. Number of Persons.
Arson, and other wilful burning.... 1 ... ... 3 6 16 16 42
Burglary..... 10 10 3 4 2 4 1 34
Breaking into a dwelling-house, {
and larceny.....
... ... 11 10 6 1 4 32
Coining..... 1 4 2 ... ... ... ... 7
Forgery of and uttering forged {
instruments, other than Bank {
of England notes.....
1 2 2 6 ... ... ... 11
Forgery of and uttering forged {
Bank of England notes.....
... 2 2 1 ... ... ... 5
Horse stealing..... 7 10 6 6 ... ... ... 29
Larceny in a dwelling-house, &c.... 5 4 1 1 2 1 ... 14
Letters containing bank notes, {
secreting and stealing.....
... 1 ... ... ... ... 1 2
Murder..... 10 11 17 13 14 12 15 92
— shooting at, stabbing, {
wounding, and admi- {
nistering poison, with {
intent to murder, &c. }
1 6 5 10 1 3 2 28
Piracy..... ... ... ... ... 2 ... ... 2
Rape, &c..... 2 2 3 3 3 4 7 24
Riot and felony..... ... ... ... ... ... 2 4 6
Robbery of the person, on the {
highway and other places.....
15 17 5 12 5 7 4 65
Sheep stealing..... 3 3 1 5 1 1 ... 14
Sodomy..... 1 1 ... ... 4 1 ... 7
Total number of persons exe- {
cuted in each year.....
57 73 58 74 46 52 54 414

END OF VOLUME EIGHTH.

III.—Applications of the Chemists and Pharmaceutical Manufacturers to the Government for the years 1844-1850.

Year. Number of Applications. Description of the Application.
1844. 1845. 1846. 1847. 1848. 1849. 1850.
Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications. Number of the Applications.
23 10 10 8 7 ... ... 11 ... and other with ...
22 1 4 2 4 2 10 10 ... and ...
20 5 1 0 10 11 ... ... ... and ...
7 ... ... ... ... 2 5 1 ... and ...
11 ... ... ... 0 2 2 1 ... and ...
6 ... ... ... 1 2 2 ... ... and ...
10 ... ... ... 0 0 10 5 ... and ...
11 ... 1 2 1 1 4 4 ... and ...
2 1 ... ... ... ... 1 ... ... and ...
10 10 12 14 10 17 11 10 ... and ...
20 2 2 1 10 2 0 1 ... and ...
2 ... ... 0 ... ... ... ... ... and ...
2 5 0 2 2 2 2 2 ... and ...
0 4 2 ... ... ... ... ... ... and ...
2 4 7 2 12 2 15 12 ... and ...
12 ... 1 1 0 1 2 2 ... and ...
7 ... 1 0 ... ... 1 1 ... and ...
112 22 25 20 70 80 72 55 ... and ...

Source: ... of ... 1850.

Fig. 1
Fig. 1: A technical drawing showing a side view of a diving apparatus. It features a vertical mast with a horizontal crossbeam at the top. A large rectangular weight is suspended from the crossbeam by a cable. The apparatus is shown in a cross-section, revealing its internal structure and how it interacts with the surrounding water.
Fig. 2
Fig. 2: A technical drawing showing a side view of a diving apparatus, similar to Fig. 1 but with a different structural configuration. It has a horizontal crossbeam with two sets of vertical supports. A weight is suspended from one of these supports. The drawing shows the internal framework and the way the apparatus is mounted to a base.
Fig. 3
Fig. 3: A technical drawing showing a top-down view of a diving apparatus. It depicts a rectangular weight suspended by a complex system of chains and hooks. The weight has a central opening, possibly for a diver's head or equipment.
Fig. 4: A technical drawing showing a side view of a diving apparatus mounted on a ship. The apparatus consists of a vertical mast, a horizontal crossbeam, and a weight suspended by cables. The ship's hull is visible at the bottom, and the entire structure is shown in a cross-section.
Fig. 5
Fig. 5: A technical drawing showing a top-down view of a diving apparatus. It depicts a rectangular weight with a central opening and a small hook or attachment point at the bottom.
Fig. 6
Fig. 6: A technical drawing showing a side view of a diving apparatus. It depicts a long, horizontal, oval-shaped weight with a central opening and a hook at one end. The drawing shows the internal structure and the way the apparatus is mounted to a base.

III.—Description of the Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

1. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

2. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

3. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

4. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

5. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

6. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

7. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

8. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

9. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

10. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

11. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

12. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

13. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

14. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

15. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

16. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

17. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

18. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

19. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

20. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

21. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

22. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

23. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

24. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

25. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

26. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

27. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

28. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

29. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

30. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

31. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

32. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

33. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

34. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

35. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

36. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

37. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

38. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

39. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

40. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

41. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

42. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

43. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

44. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

45. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

46. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

47. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

48. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

49. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

50. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

51. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

52. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

53. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

54. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

55. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

56. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

57. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

58. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

59. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

60. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

61. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

62. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

63. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

64. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

65. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

66. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

67. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

68. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

69. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

70. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

71. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

72. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

73. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

74. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

75. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

76. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

77. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

78. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

79. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

80. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

81. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

82. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

83. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

84. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

85. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

86. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

87. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

88. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

89. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

90. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

91. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

92. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

93. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

94. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

95. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

96. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

97. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

98. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

99. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

100. Claims for which Claims are allowed to be made under the provisions of the Act of Congress of June 1850-1851.

Fig. 1.
Fig. 1. A detailed cross-sectional diagram of a diving apparatus. It shows a large rectangular bucket (A) suspended by a cable (B) from a complex mechanical system on a platform. The system includes gears (O, M), pulleys, and a lever (K). The bucket is lowered into the water, where it is shown near a submerged object (X). A weight (W) is also shown. The platform is supported by a vertical post (L) and a horizontal beam (G). A scale at the bottom indicates distances of 5, 10, 15, 20, 25, and 30 feet.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2. A diagram showing two identical mechanical units mounted on a horizontal beam (F). Each unit consists of a pulley system (H, N, O) and a weight (W). The units are suspended from the beam by cables (B). The beam is supported by four triangular truss structures (L) anchored to a base (X). A scale at the bottom indicates distances of 15, 20, 25, and 30 feet.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5. A detailed view of a bucket (A) suspended by a chain (K) and a pulley (H). The bucket is shown in a cross-section, revealing its internal structure. A scale at the bottom indicates distances of 1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, and 8 feet.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3. A side-view diagram of a boat or vessel equipped with a diving apparatus. The apparatus includes a mast (I), a boom (G), and a pulley system (H, D, E, F) used to hoist a bucket (A) out of the water. A scale at the bottom indicates distances of 10, 20, 30, 40, 50, and 60 feet.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6. A top-down plan view of a rectangular mechanical component, possibly a control panel or a base for the apparatus. It features a central circular element (K) and several smaller circular elements (H) arranged in a grid. A scale at the bottom indicates distances of 1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, and 8 feet.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4. A side-view diagram of the boat's hull, showing the internal arrangement of the diving apparatus. It includes a mast (I), a boom (G), and a pulley system (H, D, E, F) used to hoist a bucket (A) out of the water. A scale at the bottom indicates distances of 10, 20, 30, 40, 50, and 60 feet.
A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, yellowish-beige tone, characteristic of old documents. It is heavily marked by numerous brown and tan stains, which appear to be water damage or foxing. These stains are most prominent in the upper half of the page, forming large, irregular blotches and smaller spots scattered across the surface. The lower half of the page is relatively clearer but still shows some minor discoloration and faint, larger stains. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page.
HARVEY'S DIVING APPARATUS

Fig. 6.
THERMALL'S DIVING BELL.

Technical drawing of Thermall's Diving Bell (Fig. 6). It is a conical structure with a rounded top and a flared bottom. It features a central vertical support and two side supports, with a chain or rope hanging from the bottom. Various parts are labeled with letters.
Technical drawing of Harvey's Diving Apparatus (Fig. 1). It shows a full-body view of a diver wearing a dark, segmented diving suit with a large, rounded headpiece. The diver is standing on a surface, holding a rope or hose in their right hand.

ROGER'S DIVING CHIRTY.

Fig. 4.

Technical drawing of Roger's Diving Chirty (Fig. 4). It is a large, horizontal, boat-shaped diving chamber with a rounded front and a flat back. It has a vertical mast or pole extending upwards from the top. Various parts are labeled with letters.

Fig. 3.

Technical drawing of a mechanical component (Fig. 3). It shows a vertical assembly with a horizontal bar at the top, a curved support in the middle, and a base at the bottom. Various parts are labeled with letters.

Fig. 2.

Technical drawing of a mechanical component (Fig. 2). It shows a horizontal assembly with several curved, pipe-like sections. Various parts are labeled with letters.

SPALLDICE'S DIVING BELL.

Fig. 7.

Technical drawing of Spaldice's Diving Bell (Fig. 7). It is a large, trapezoidal diving chamber with a flat top and a tapered bottom. It is suspended by a rope from a point above. A small bucket is attached to a rope on the left side. Various parts are labeled with letters.

HALLEY'S DIVING BELL.

Fig. 5.

Illustration of a sailing ship (Fig. 5) on the water, with a large, conical diving bell suspended from its rigging. The bell is shown in the water, with a person visible inside. The ship has two masts and several sails. The background shows a distant shoreline with hills.
A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper is a light cream or off-white color, showing signs of significant water damage and staining. Large, irregular brown stains are scattered across the surface, with a prominent cluster in the upper right quadrant and another in the lower left. The stains vary in intensity, from light tan to dark brown. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows some minor creasing and discoloration along the edges, particularly at the top and bottom. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page.
KLINGERT'S DIVING APPARATUS.

Fig. 6.
TRIEWALD'S DIVING BELL.

Diagram of Triewald's Diving Bell (Fig. 6). It is a conical metal structure with a pointed top (A) and a wide base. It is suspended by chains (D) from a horizontal bar. The interior is divided into sections (B, C, D).
Fig. 1.
Diagram of Klingert's Diving Apparatus (Fig. 1). It shows a person in a full-body diving suit (A) with a helmet. The suit includes a chest piece (B) with various valves and tubes, and a belt (C). The person is holding a tool (L) and a rope (M).
ROWE'S DIVING CHEST.
Fig. 4.
Diagram of Rowe's Diving Chest (Fig. 4). It is a horizontal cylindrical device with a curved front section (B). It is suspended by a rope (A) and has various tubes and valves (C, D, E, F, G, H) attached to its side.
Fig. 3.
Diagram of a mechanical component (Fig. 3). It shows a horizontal bar (h) with a central vertical support (n) and a curved arm (l).
Fig. 2.
Diagram of a mechanical component (Fig. 2). It shows a cross-section of a pipe or valve assembly with various parts labeled (r, s, u, k, h).
SPALDING'S DIVING BELL.
Fig. 7.
Diagram of Spalding's Diving Bell (Fig. 7). It is a large, trapezoidal metal structure with a pointed top (O) and a wide base. It is suspended by a rope (S) and has various internal components and valves (A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, P, Q, R, T, U, V, W).
HALLEY'S DIVING BELL.
Fig. 5.
Illustration of a sailing ship (Fig. 5) at sea, with a diving bell being lowered from its rigging. The bell is shown in the water, and a person is visible inside. The scene includes a rocky shore with various tools and equipment.
A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, yellowish-beige tone, characteristic of old documents. It is heavily marked by numerous brown and tan stains, which appear to be water damage or foxing. These stains are most prominent in the upper half of the page, with large, irregular blotches and smaller, scattered spots extending down towards the bottom. The texture of the paper looks slightly rough and uneven due to the age and the staining process. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page.

Fig. 1.

Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a frontal view, showing the iris, pupil, eyelids, and eyelashes.Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a frontal view, showing the iris, pupil, eyelids, and eyelashes.

Fig. 2.

Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a superior view, showing the eyelid and eyelashes.Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a superior view, showing the eyelid and eyelashes.

Fig. 3.

Anatomical drawing of a human eye in an inferior view, showing the eyelid and eyelashes.Anatomical drawing of a human eye in an inferior view, showing the eyelid and eyelashes.

Fig. 4.

Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a frontal view, showing the bridge, nostrils, and tip.Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a frontal view, showing the bridge, nostrils, and tip.

Fig. 5.

Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a lateral view, showing the profile and nostril.Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a lateral view, showing the profile and nostril.

Fig. 6.

Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a frontal view, showing the nostrils and lips.Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a frontal view, showing the nostrils and lips.

Fig. 7.

Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a lateral view, showing the profile and lips.Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a lateral view, showing the profile and lips.

Fig. 8.

Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in an inferior view, showing the nostrils and lips from below.Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in an inferior view, showing the nostrils and lips from below.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with numerous brown stains and a small greenish-blue mark in the top left corner.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper is heavily marked with numerous brown, irregular stains of varying sizes and intensities, which are characteristic of foxing or water damage over time. A small, distinct greenish-blue mark is visible in the upper left corner, possibly from a label or a piece of tape. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly rough and uneven due to the age and staining.
Fig. 1.
Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a frontal view, showing the iris, pupil, eyelashes, and eyebrow.Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a frontal view, showing the iris, pupil, eyelashes, and eyebrow.
Fig. 2.
Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a lateral (side) view, showing the eyelid and eyelashes.Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a lateral (side) view, showing the eyelid and eyelashes.
Fig. 3.
Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a frontal view, showing the iris, pupil, eyelashes, and eyebrow.Anatomical drawing of a human eye in a frontal view, showing the iris, pupil, eyelashes, and eyebrow.
Fig. 4.
Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a frontal view, showing the bridge, nostrils, and tip.Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a frontal view, showing the bridge, nostrils, and tip.
Fig. 5.
Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a lateral (side) view, showing the bridge, nostrils, and tip.Anatomical drawing of a human nose in a lateral (side) view, showing the bridge, nostrils, and tip.
Fig. 6.
Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a frontal view, showing the nostrils and lips.Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a frontal view, showing the nostrils and lips.
Fig. 7.
Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a lateral (side) view, showing the nostrils and lips.Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a lateral (side) view, showing the nostrils and lips.
Fig. 8.
Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a frontal view, showing the nostrils and lips.Anatomical drawing of a human nose and mouth in a frontal view, showing the nostrils and lips.
Fig. 1
Anatomical drawing of a human ear, labeled Fig. 1.A detailed anatomical drawing of a human ear, showing the outer ear (pinna), the ear canal, and the eardrum. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style.
Fig. 3
Drawing of a classical female head in profile, labeled Fig. 3.A drawing of a classical female head in profile, facing left. The head is adorned with a headband and has wavy hair. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style.
Fig. 2
Anatomical drawing of a human ear, labeled Fig. 2.A detailed anatomical drawing of a human ear, showing the outer ear (pinna), the ear canal, and the eardrum. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style.
Fig. 4
Drawing of a classical female head in profile, labeled Fig. 4.A drawing of a classical female head in profile, facing left. The head is adorned with a headband and has wavy hair. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style.
Fig. 5
Drawing of a classical female head in profile, labeled Fig. 5.A drawing of a classical female head in profile, facing left. The head is adorned with a headband and has wavy hair. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with significant water damage and staining, particularly a large brown stain in the upper left quadrant.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper exhibits significant signs of wear and aging, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and a large, irregular brown stain in the upper left quadrant, which appears to be water damage. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is framed by a darker border, possibly the book's binding or the background it was placed on.
Fig. 1.
Anatomical drawing of a human ear in profile, showing the outer ear, ear canal, and internal structures.Anatomical drawing of a human ear in profile, showing the outer ear, ear canal, and internal structures.
Fig. 3.
Marble bust of a woman with wavy hair, looking slightly to the right.Marble bust of a woman with wavy hair, looking slightly to the right.
Fig. 2.
Anatomical drawing of a human ear in profile, showing the outer ear, ear canal, and internal structures.Anatomical drawing of a human ear in profile, showing the outer ear, ear canal, and internal structures.
Fig. 4.
Marble bust of a woman with wavy hair, looking slightly to the left.Marble bust of a woman with wavy hair, looking slightly to the left.
Fig. 5.
Marble bust of a woman with wavy hair, looking slightly to the right.Marble bust of a woman with wavy hair, looking slightly to the right.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing significant water damage and staining, particularly a large, irregular brown stain in the upper center.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a light beige or cream-colored tint. There is a prominent, irregular brown stain in the upper center, which appears to be water damage or a large ink blot. The stain is somewhat diffuse, with darker edges and lighter, more translucent areas. The rest of the page is relatively clear, with some minor discoloration and a few small, dark specks scattered across the surface. The overall texture of the paper looks slightly grainy, typical of old paper.
Plate CXII showing various anatomical drawings of the human hand and arm, labeled Fig. 1 through Fig. 11.

This plate contains eleven detailed anatomical drawings of the human hand and arm, labeled Fig. 1 through Fig. 11. The drawings are arranged as follows:

  • Fig. 1: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 2: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 3: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 4: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 5: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 6: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 7: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 8: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 9: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 10: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.
  • Fig. 11: A hand shown from the palm side, with fingers slightly spread.

The drawings are rendered in a fine-lined, shaded style, showing the musculature and bone structure of the hand and arm. The plate is aged, with visible foxing and staining.

A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small, brownish-orange spots and stains, particularly concentrated along the left edge and center.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige background. The paper is covered with numerous small, brownish-orange spots and stains, which are characteristic of foxing or water damage. These spots are most concentrated along the left edge and in the center of the page. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly grainy and uneven due to the age and the presence of these stains.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A hand with fingers slightly spread, palm facing down, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A hand with fingers slightly spread, palm facing up, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A hand with fingers spread, palm facing down, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A hand gripping a handle, palm facing down, fingers wrapped around the handle.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A large central illustration of a hand gripping a sword hilt, palm facing down, fingers wrapped around the hilt.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A hand gripping a handle, palm facing up, fingers wrapped around the handle.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A hand with fingers curled, palm facing up, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A hand with fingers curled, palm facing down, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A hand with fingers spread, palm facing up, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A hand with fingers spread, palm facing down, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A hand with fingers spread, palm facing up, showing the underside of the hand and fingers.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and minor blemishes.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including several small, dark spots and larger, faint brownish stains, particularly near the top and bottom edges. There is no text or other markings on the page.
Fig. 1
Anatomical drawing of a human leg from the front, showing the thigh, knee, and lower leg. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the thigh and another on the lower leg.
Fig. 2
Anatomical drawing of a human foot from the side, showing the heel and the arch. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the heel and another on the arch.
Fig. 3
Anatomical drawing of a human foot from the back, showing the heel and the arch. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the heel and another on the arch.
Fig. 4
Anatomical drawing of a human leg from the back, showing the thigh, knee, and lower leg. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the thigh and another on the lower leg.
Fig. 5
Anatomical drawing of a human foot from the front, showing the toes and the arch. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the arch and another on the toes.
Fig. 6
Anatomical drawing of a human foot from the front, showing the toes and the arch. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the arch and another on the toes.
Fig. 7
Anatomical drawing of a human foot from the front, showing the toes and the arch. The drawing is rendered in a soft, shaded style. There are several brownish stains on the drawing, notably one on the arch and another on the toes.
A blank, aged page with numerous brown stains and foxing.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a light cream or off-white color. It is heavily marked with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are scattered across the entire surface. There are also larger, more distinct brown stains, particularly in the upper left and lower right areas, suggesting water damage or age-related discoloration. The texture of the paper appears slightly grainy. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 2: A line drawing of a human foot from a dorsal (top) view, showing the toes and the sole of the foot.
Fig. 1: A line drawing of a human leg and foot from a lateral (side) view, showing the calf muscle and the heel.
Fig. 3: A line drawing of a human foot from a lateral (side) view, showing the side of the foot and the heel.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A line drawing of a human foot from a dorsal (top) view, showing the toes and the sole of the foot.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A line drawing of a human foot from a lateral (side) view, showing the side of the foot and the heel.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A line drawing of a human foot from a dorsal (top) view, showing the toes and the sole of the foot.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A line drawing of a human foot from a lateral (side) view, showing the side of the foot and the heel.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A line drawing of a human foot from a dorsal (top) view, showing the toes and the sole of the foot.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing significant water damage and staining along the top edge.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige background. The top edge of the page is heavily stained with large, irregular brown spots, likely due to water damage or mold. There are also smaller, fainter spots scattered across the rest of the page. The overall texture appears slightly grainy, characteristic of old paper.
A seated female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand. A lion's head is visible at her left side.A seated female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand. A lion's head is visible at her left side.
A seated female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.A seated female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.
A standing female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.A standing female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.
A standing female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.A standing female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.
A standing female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.A standing female figure in classical attire, possibly a Roman matron, holding a small object in her left hand.
A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining. The paper is off-white or light beige, showing numerous brown and tan spots and blotches, particularly concentrated along the top edge and on the right side. The staining appears to be from moisture, possibly rain or liquid damage, which has spread across the surface. There are no markings, text, or illustrations on the page.
A seated female figure, Thalia, holding a scroll and a lion's head. A seated female figure, Thalia, is depicted in classical attire. She holds a long scroll in her left hand and a lion's head in her right hand. Her hair is styled in an elaborate updo.
THALIA
A seated female figure, Clio, holding a lyre. A seated female figure, Clio, is shown in classical dress. She holds a lyre in her left hand and a small object in her right hand. Her hair is styled in a simple updo.
CLIO
A standing female figure, Bacchus, holding a thyrsus and a bunch of grapes. A standing female figure, Bacchus, is depicted in a dynamic pose. She holds a thyrsus in her right hand and a bunch of grapes in her left hand. She is wearing a simple garment.
BACCHUS
A standing female figure, Venus or Arles, holding a mirror and a veil. A standing female figure, Venus or Arles, is shown in classical attire. She holds a mirror in her right hand and a veil in her left hand. She is wearing a long, flowing garment.
VENUS OR ARLES
A standing male figure, Discobolus, holding a discus. A standing male figure, Discobolus, is depicted in a dynamic pose. He holds a discus in his right hand and a small object in his left hand. He is wearing a simple garment.
DISCOBOLUS
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration, particularly along the top edge and left side.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and larger, irregular water stains, particularly along the top edge and left side. The overall color is a warm, off-white or light cream.
Marble statue of a standing male figure in a military or official robe.A marble statue of a standing male figure, possibly a Roman general or official, standing on a rectangular base. He is dressed in a military or official robe with a fur-trimmed collar and a sash. He holds a small object in his left hand.
Marble statue of a reclining male figure.A marble statue of a reclining male figure, possibly a Roman soldier or official, resting his head on his hand. He is wearing a military or official robe.
Marble statue of a standing female figure in a draped garment.A marble statue of a standing female figure, possibly a Roman matron or deity, standing on a rectangular base. She is wearing a draped garment and holding a small object in her left hand.
Marble statue of a reclining female figure.A marble statue of a reclining female figure, possibly a Roman matron or deity, resting her head on her hand. She is wearing a draped garment and holding a small object in her left hand.
D. L. M. M. M. M. M. M.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including several prominent water stains and discolorations. A large, irregular brownish stain is visible in the upper right quadrant, and smaller, more diffuse stains are scattered across the surface. The overall color is a light cream or off-white, with some areas appearing slightly darker due to the staining. The edges of the page are slightly irregular, and there is a faint vertical line near the left edge, possibly indicating where the page was bound.
Full-length marble statue of Hercules standing, wearing a lion's skin and holding a club.

HERCULES & TELEPHUS

Marble torso of a seated figure, showing the head, shoulders, and upper body.

TORSO

Full-length marble statue of Jason standing, leaning forward, wearing a tunic and holding a bow.

JASON

Marble statue of a fallen gladiator lying on his side, with a sword and a whip on his chest.

DEINO GLADIATOR

A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige background. The surface is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, characteristic of foxing or water damage. There are also some faint, illegible markings or smudges scattered across the page, particularly towards the top and left edges. The overall texture appears slightly grainy, typical of old paper.
A classical marble statue of a male figure, likely a youth or a deity, standing on a pedestal. The figure is nude, with a draped garment (himation) over his left shoulder and arm. He holds a small object in his raised right hand. The statue is set against a plain background.A classical marble statue of a male figure, likely a youth or a deity, standing on a pedestal. The figure is nude, with a draped garment (himation) over his left shoulder and arm. He holds a small object in his raised right hand. The statue is set against a plain background.
ANTHON WALTHER
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small, brownish-yellow spots (foxing) scattered across the surface.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a light beige or off-white color and a slightly textured appearance. It is covered with numerous small, irregular brownish-yellow spots, which are characteristic of foxing, a form of mold damage. These spots are scattered across the entire surface, with some areas appearing more densely spotted than others. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page. The edges of the paper are slightly worn, and the overall appearance is that of an old, weathered document.
A detailed black and white engraving of the Belvidere statue of Apollo. The figure is a young, muscular man with curly hair, standing on a circular pedestal. He is draped in a heavy, flowing chiton that covers his left side and hangs down to the ground. He holds a lyre in his raised right hand and has his left hand resting on a large, textured object, possibly a rock or a piece of wood. The statue is shown in a three-quarter view, facing slightly to the right. The engraving is signed 'Dud. by G. L. Smith. 1800' in the bottom right corner.

APOLLO BELVIDERE

Dud. by G. L. Smith. 1800

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including several small, dark brown spots (foxing) and larger, faint, irregular water stains that are more prominent towards the top and bottom edges. The overall color is a warm, off-white or light cream.
A detailed drawing of the Group of the Lacedaemon statue, showing four figures on a pedestal. The central figure is a muscular man with curly hair, holding a laurel branch aloft in his right hand. To his left, a woman is draped in a long, flowing robe, her head tilted back. To his right, another woman stands, looking upwards. A fourth figure is partially visible behind the central man. The figures are rendered in a classical style with fine line work and shading, set against a plain background.
GROUP OF THE LACEDAEMON.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small, irregular brown spots (foxing or water damage) and faint, wispy patterns.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a light beige or off-white color. It is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, which are likely foxing or water damage. There are also some faint, wispy patterns that look like smoke or steam, possibly from a previous page or a stain. The left edge of the page shows a slight fold or crease. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly rough or fibrous.
A detailed black and white line drawing of the Group of the Laocoön statue. The central figure is a muscular man, Laocoön, standing on a pedestal and holding a spear aloft. He is surrounded by three other figures: a woman on the left, a man in the foreground, and another man on the right. All figures are entwined with a large, multi-headed serpent, which is coiled around them and has its heads reaching towards the top of the frame. The figures are depicted with great anatomical detail, showing their muscles and expressions of distress. The entire group is set against a plain background and rests on a tiered base.
GROUP OF THE LAOCOON.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible texture, creases, and minor blemishes.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a visible texture and shows signs of wear, including creases, wrinkles, and small brown spots (foxing or staining). There is no text or other markings on the page.
A faint pencil sketch of a reclining figure, possibly a woman, wearing a long, flowing dress and a headscarf. The figure is positioned horizontally across the top of the page.A faint pencil sketch of a reclining figure, possibly a woman, wearing a long, flowing dress and a headscarf. The figure is positioned horizontally across the top of the page.
A faint pencil sketch of a reclining figure, possibly a woman, wearing a long, flowing dress and a headscarf. The figure is positioned horizontally across the middle of the page.A faint pencil sketch of a reclining figure, possibly a woman, wearing a long, flowing dress and a headscarf. The figure is positioned horizontally across the middle of the page.
A faint pencil sketch of a group of figures, possibly a family or a group of people, gathered around a central figure. The figures are positioned horizontally across the bottom of the page.A faint pencil sketch of a group of figures, possibly a family or a group of people, gathered around a central figure. The figures are positioned horizontally across the bottom of the page.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and a faint, large circular stain near the bottom center.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige background. The paper is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are most prominent in the lower half. A faint, large, circular stain is visible near the bottom center. The page appears to be part of a book, with a vertical line on the right side indicating the binding edge.
A detailed pencil sketch of a group of figures, likely a scene from a Raphael painting, showing a central figure reclining and being attended to by others.A detailed pencil sketch of a group of figures, likely a scene from a Raphael painting. The central figure is a man reclining on a stone ledge, looking upwards with a pained expression. He is surrounded by several other figures, some of whom are looking at him with concern. One figure is holding a book or tablet. The sketch is executed with fine lines and cross-hatching for shading. The figures are dressed in classical-style robes. The background is simple, suggesting an outdoor or architectural setting.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and larger, irregular water stains, particularly concentrated in the lower-left quadrant. The right edge of the page shows a slight vertical crease or binding edge.

SPECIMENS OF LANDSCAPE SKETCHING BY CLAUDE.

A landscape sketch by Claude showing a boat on a body of water with a rocky cliff and trees in the background.A landscape sketch by Claude, showing a boat on a body of water. In the background, there is a rocky cliff with trees. The style is characteristic of Claude's work, with soft, atmospheric tones and a focus on the interplay of light and shadow.
A landscape sketch by Claude showing a river or lake with trees in the foreground and a distant shoreline.A landscape sketch by Claude, showing a river or lake. In the foreground, there are trees and foliage. In the background, there is a distant shoreline with a small building or structure. The style is characteristic of Claude's work, with soft, atmospheric tones and a focus on the interplay of light and shadow.
SPECIMENS OF LANDSCAPE SKETCHING BY CLAUDE.
A landscape sketch by Claude showing a rocky shoreline with a large tree and a small boat with two figures.A detailed landscape sketch by Claude. The scene depicts a calm body of water in the foreground, with a small wooden boat carrying two figures. To the right, a steep, craggy cliff face rises, topped with a large, leafy tree. A lone figure stands on a rocky outcrop near the water's edge. The background shows distant, hazy hills under a pale sky.
A landscape sketch by Claude showing a river scene with a shepherd and a herd of goats, framed by large trees.A detailed landscape sketch by Claude. The scene is framed by two large, gnarled trees in the foreground. In the middle ground, a shepherd leads a herd of goats along a path. Beyond the path, a wide river flows past a small, classical building with columns. In the distance, a bridge spans the river, and a small boat is visible on the water. The background features rolling hills under a soft sky.
A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, yellowish-beige tone, characteristic of old documents. It is heavily marked by numerous brown and tan stains, which appear to be water damage or foxing. These stains are most prominent in the upper left and lower left areas, where they have formed larger, irregular blotches. Smaller, more discrete spots are scattered across the rest of the page. The overall texture of the paper looks slightly grainy and uneven due to the age and the staining process.
A faded, sepia-toned illustration of a landscape with a large tree on the left and a small building or structure on the right. The scene is heavily water-stained and discolored.

Fig. 1. Landscape.

A faded, sepia-toned illustration of a landscape with a large tree on the left and a small building or structure on the right. The scene is heavily water-stained and discolored.

Fig. 2.

Landscape, Country.

A faded, sepia-toned illustration of a landscape with a large tree on the left and a small building or structure on the right. The scene is heavily water-stained and discolored.

Fig. 3.

A faded, sepia-toned illustration of a landscape with a large tree on the left and a small building or structure on the right. The scene is heavily water-stained and discolored.

Fig. 4.

Landscape, Mountains.

A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper is off-white or light beige, showing signs of significant water damage and staining. There are several large, irregular brownish-yellow stains, particularly a prominent one in the lower-left quadrant and another in the lower-right. Smaller, more scattered spots are visible throughout the page. The texture of the paper appears slightly rough or fibrous. The overall appearance is that of an old, weathered document page.
Fig. 2. Outline drawing of a landscape with a house, trees, and a figure.

Fig. 2. Outline drawing of a landscape. It shows a small house with a chimney, a large tree with dense foliage, and a figure standing near a fence. The drawing is done in a simple line-art style with some light brown washes.

Outline.
Rest. Pyramus.
Fig. 3. Colored drawing of a landscape with a house, trees, and a figure.

Fig. 3. Colored drawing of a landscape. It shows a small house with a chimney, a large tree with dense foliage, and a figure standing near a fence. The drawing is done in a simple line-art style with some light brown washes.

Fig. 3.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4. Colored drawing of a landscape with a house, trees, and a figure.

Fig. 4. Colored drawing of a landscape. It shows a small house with a chimney, a large tree with dense foliage, and a figure standing near a fence. The drawing is done in a simple line-art style with some light brown washes.

General Pyramus.
Fetched Landscape.
Fig. 5. Colored drawing of a landscape with a house, trees, and a figure.

Fig. 5. Colored drawing of a landscape. It shows a small house with a chimney, a large tree with dense foliage, and a figure standing near a fence. The drawing is done in a simple line-art style with some light brown washes.

Fig. 5. Colored drawing of a landscape with a house, trees, and a figure.

Fig. 5. Colored drawing of a landscape. It shows a small house with a chimney, a large tree with dense foliage, and a figure standing near a fence. The drawing is done in a simple line-art style with some light brown washes.

A blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, yellowish-beige tone, characteristic of old documents. It is heavily marked by water damage, including large, irregular brown stains in the upper left and lower left corners, and numerous smaller, scattered brown spots (foxing) across the entire surface. The texture of the paper appears slightly rough and uneven due to the aging process. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page.

Fig. 1

Fig. 1: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 2

Fig. 2: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 3

Fig. 3: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 4

Fig. 4: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 5

Fig. 5: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 6

Fig. 6: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 7

Fig. 7: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 8

Fig. 8: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 9

Fig. 9: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 10

Fig. 10: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 11

Fig. 11: A detailed line drawing of a diamond's pavilion, showing the complex network of facets and lines that define its shape.

Fig. 12

Fig. 12: A series of ten small, square-shaped diagrams, each labeled with a number from 1 to 10, representing different facets or components of a diamond's pavilion.

Fig. 13

Fig. 13: A series of seven square-shaped diagrams, each labeled with a number from 11 to 17, representing different facets or components of a diamond's pavilion.

Fig. 14

Fig. 14: A series of four square-shaped diagrams, each labeled with a number from 18 to 21, representing different facets or components of a diamond's pavilion.

Fig. 15

Fig. 15: A square diagram with two diagonal lines crossing at the center, representing a specific facet or component of a diamond's pavilion.

Fig. 16

Fig. 16: A diamond-shaped diagram with two diagonal lines crossing at the center, representing a specific facet or component of a diamond's pavilion.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing significant water damage and staining. The left edge is torn and irregular. Faint, illegible text is visible through the paper, and a large, faint circular watermark or stamp is centered on the page.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a light beige or off-white color and shows signs of significant aging, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and larger, irregular stains, particularly along the left edge where the paper is torn. A large, faint, circular watermark or stamp is visible in the center of the page, though its details are not legible. There are also some very faint, illegible markings that appear to be bleed-through from the other side of the page. The overall texture of the paper looks slightly rough and uneven.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A triangular facet of a diamond, showing a grid of smaller triangles.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A complex diamond facet with multiple internal lines, showing a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A complex diamond facet with many internal lines, showing a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A diamond facet with a central square and surrounding triangles.
Fig. 12.
Fig. 12: A series of 18 diamond facets, numbered 1 through 18, arranged in three rows. Each facet is a square with rounded corners and a horizontal line at the bottom.
Fig. 13.
Fig. 13: A square facet with internal lines forming an 'X' shape and a central square.
Fig. 14.
Fig. 14: A diamond facet with internal lines forming an 'X' shape and a central square. It includes vertical dimension lines on the right side with labels: 1/2, 1/4, 1/8, and 1/16.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible foxing and minor stains.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with visible foxing (small brown spots) and some larger, faint stains, particularly near the top and left edges. There is no text or other markings on the page.
Fig. 1
Fig. 1: Plan and elevation of the head of a dock with a floating basin. A technical drawing showing a plan view and an elevation view of a dock head. The plan view shows a semi-circular structure with a central pier. The elevation view shows a cross-section of the structure with a floating basin at the top.
PLAN AND ELEVATION OF THE HEAD OF A DOCK WITH A FLOATING BASIN.
Fig. 2
Fig. 2: Plan and elevation of the head of a dock with a floating basin. A technical drawing showing a plan view and an elevation view of a dock head. The plan view shows a rectangular structure with a central pier. The elevation view shows a cross-section of the structure with a floating basin at the top.
Fig. 3
Fig. 3: Plan and elevation of the head of a dock with a floating basin. A technical drawing showing a plan view and an elevation view of a dock head. The plan view shows a rectangular structure with a central pier. The elevation view shows a cross-section of the structure with a floating basin at the top.
PLAN AND ELEVATION OF THE HEAD OF A DOCK WITH A FLOATING BASIN.
Fig. 4
Fig. 4: Plan and elevation of the head of a dock with a floating basin. A technical drawing showing a plan view and an elevation view of a dock head. The plan view shows a rectangular structure with a central pier. The elevation view shows a cross-section of the structure with a floating basin at the top.
Fig. 5
Fig. 5: Plan and elevation of the head of a dock with a floating basin. A technical drawing showing a plan view and an elevation view of a dock head. The plan view shows a rectangular structure with a central pier. The elevation view shows a cross-section of the structure with a floating basin at the top.
Fig. 6
Fig. 6: Sectional elevation of the dock. A technical drawing showing a sectional elevation of a dock. It shows a long, low structure with a series of vertical supports and a central pier. The drawing is labeled with 'High Water' and 'Low Water' levels.
PLAN AND ELEVATION OF THE EXTENSION TO THE DOCK WITH MOORING STAKES.
SECTIONAL ELEVATION OF THE DOCK.
Fig. 7.
PLAN OF A DOCK.
Fig. 7: Plan of a dock. A technical drawing showing a plan view of a dock. It shows a large, rectangular structure with a central pier and several smaller piers extending from the main structure. The drawing is labeled with 'High Water' and 'Low Water' levels.
Fig. 8.
TRANVERSE SECTION OF A DOCK WITH THE HEAD OF THE DOCKLY PIER IN PERMANENT ELEVATION AS WELL AS SHOWN BY THE DRAWINGS, SHOWING THE DOCK.
Fig. 8: Transverse section of a dock with the head of the dockly pier in permanent elevation. A technical drawing showing a transverse section of a dock. It shows a large, arched structure with a central pier and several smaller piers extending from the main structure. The drawing is labeled with 'High Water' and 'Low Water' levels.
Fig. 1.
Plan view of a dock entrance with a floating dam. A plan view showing a rectangular dock entrance. A floating dam is positioned across the entrance, supported by a central vertical post. The water level is indicated by a horizontal line.
PLAN AND ELEVATION OF THE ENTRANCE TO THE DOCK WITH A FLOATING DAM.
Fig. 2.
Elevation view of a dock entrance with a floating dam. An elevation view of the floating dam entrance. The dam is a flat, oval-shaped structure resting on the water surface. The water level is shown as a horizontal line.
Fig. 3.
Elevation view of a dock entrance with swinging gates. An elevation view of a dock entrance with swinging gates. The entrance is a rectangular opening in a brick wall. The water level is indicated by a horizontal line.
ELEVATION
OF THE ENTRANCE TO THE DOCK WITH SWINGING GATES.
Fig. 5.
Plan view of a dock entrance with wicket gates. A plan view of a dock entrance with wicket gates. The entrance is a rectangular opening in a brick wall. The water level is indicated by a horizontal line.
PLAN AND ELEVATION OF THE ENTRANCE TO THE DOCK WITH WICKET GATES.
Fig. 6.
Elevation view of a dock entrance with wicket gates. An elevation view of the wicket gate entrance. The gate is a vertical structure within the entrance. The water level is indicated by a horizontal line.
Fig. 4.
Sectional elevation of a dock. A sectional elevation of a dock. It shows a long, narrow structure with a series of vertical supports. The water level is indicated by a horizontal line.
SECTIONAL ELEVATION OF THE DOCK.
Fig. 7.
PLAN OF A DOCK.
Plan view of a dock. A plan view of a dock. It shows a large, oval-shaped structure with a central channel and several smaller channels branching off. The structure is surrounded by a wall.
Fig. 8.
TRANSVERSE SECTION OF A ROOF OVER THE HEAD OF THE DOUBLE DOCK AT PLYMOUTH, ERECTED IN 1817, DESIGNED BY SIR R. SKIPPANS, SURVEYOR OF THE NAVY.
Transverse section of a roof over the head of the double dock at Plymouth. A transverse section of a roof over the head of the double dock at Plymouth. The roof is a large, arched structure supported by two main pillars, labeled 'A' at the base and 'B' at the top. The roof is supported by a series of smaller pillars. The structure is shown over a building with multiple windows. The ground level is indicated by a horizontal line.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and larger, faint stains, particularly along the left edge and top center.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige or cream-colored background. The paper is covered with numerous small, brownish spots, known as foxing, which are most prominent in the upper half and along the left edge. There are also larger, faint, irregular stains, particularly a large, light brown stain in the upper center and another smaller one near the bottom center. The overall texture appears slightly grainy, characteristic of old paper.

BUCKET MACHINE.

Section of Tunnel and Elevation of Steam Engine and Raising Frame

Technical drawing of a bucket machine showing a section of a tunnel and an elevation of a steam engine and raising frame.

The image is a technical drawing of a bucket machine, presented in two views. The top view is a section of a tunnel, showing a large, arched structure with a series of horizontal and vertical supports. A large, complex mechanical structure, the steam engine and raising frame, is positioned at the top of the tunnel. The bottom view is an elevation of the steam engine and raising frame, showing a long, rectangular structure with a series of vertical supports and a large, arched opening at the top. The drawing is labeled 'Fig. 1.' and 'Steam Engine'.

A blank, aged page with significant yellowing and water damage.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, yellowish-beige tone, characteristic of old documents. There are several large, irregular water stains or foxing marks, primarily located in the upper half of the page. These stains are a darker yellow or light brown color and have a mottled, textured appearance. The rest of the page is relatively clear but shows some minor discoloration and small dark spots. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly rough or fibrous.
BUCKET MACHINE.
Section of Vessel and Elevation of Steam Engine and Bucket Frames.
Fig. 1. Section of Vessel and Elevation of Steam Engine and Bucket Frames. This technical illustration shows a side elevation of a steam-powered dredging vessel. The vessel has a large, flat hull with a central deck. On the left side, a tall smokestack labeled 'd' rises from the deck. Next to it is a large boiler labeled 'b'. A complex system of gears and shafts is shown, with a 'Lying Shaft' labeled 'm' running horizontally across the middle of the vessel. A series of buckets are suspended from a frame, with labels 'n' and 'o' indicating specific parts of the mechanism. Two figures are shown on the deck, one standing near the boiler and another further back. The vessel is shown in a body of water, with a shoreline and trees visible in the background.
Plan.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2. Plan. This technical illustration shows a top-down plan view of the dredging vessel. The vessel has an oval hull with a central longitudinal deck. A long, narrow frame with a series of buckets is positioned along the center of the deck. The frame is supported by a central longitudinal beam. The buckets are shown in various positions along the frame. The plan view includes various structural details, such as the arrangement of the buckets and the supporting beams. The hull is divided into several compartments, with labels 'Plan', 'of', and 'Elevs' visible in the lower part of the vessel.
A blank, aged page with visible water damage and staining.This image shows a blank, aged page with significant water damage and staining. The paper is a light beige or cream color, showing numerous brown and tan spots and streaks, particularly along the left edge and in the upper right quadrant. The texture of the paper appears slightly rough and uneven due to the aging process. There is no text or other content on the page.
Technical drawing of a steam drying boat with various labeled parts and a scale.

This technical drawing illustrates a steam drying boat, showing its mechanical components and overall structure. The drawing includes several labeled figures and a scale.

  • Fig. 1: A cross-sectional view of a component, possibly a hopper or a part of the hull, showing internal structure.
  • Fig. 2: A side view of a mechanical part, likely a hopper or a support structure.
  • Fig. 3: A side view of a large, complex mechanical assembly, possibly a boiler or a large gear mechanism, with various pipes and supports.
  • Fig. 4: A circular cross-section of a component, showing a central hub and several radial spokes or supports.
  • Fig. 5: A side view of a large, complex mechanical assembly, similar to Fig. 3, showing a large cylindrical body and various pipes and supports.
  • Fig. 6: A side view of a smaller mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor.
  • Fig. 7: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 8: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 9: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 10: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 11: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 12: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 13: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 14: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 15: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 16: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 17: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 18: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 19: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 20: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 21: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 22: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 23: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 24: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 25: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 26: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 27: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 28: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 29: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 30: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 31: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 32: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 33: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 34: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 35: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 36: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 37: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 38: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 39: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 40: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 41: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 42: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 43: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 44: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 45: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 46: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 47: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 48: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 49: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 50: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 51: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 52: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 53: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 54: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 55: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 56: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 57: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 58: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 59: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 60: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 61: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 62: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 63: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 64: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 65: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 66: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 67: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 68: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 69: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 70: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 71: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 72: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 73: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 74: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 75: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 76: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 77: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 78: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 79: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 80: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 81: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 82: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 83: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 84: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 85: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 86: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 87: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 88: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 89: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 90: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 91: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 92: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 93: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 94: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 95: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 96: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 97: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 98: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 99: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.
  • Fig. 100: A side view of a mechanical component, possibly a pump or a motor, showing a cylindrical body and a shaft.

Scale in Feet. A scale bar at the bottom left indicates measurements in feet, ranging from 0 to 10.

Drawing Board. A large rectangular frame on the right side of the drawing, with labels A, B, C, and D along its top edge, indicating different sections or parts of the boat.

Section of the A circular cross-section of a component, showing a central hub and several radial spokes or supports.

Steam Drying Boat. The main title of the drawing, located at the bottom right.

By C. Brown Esq. The artist's signature, located at the bottom right.

A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing signs of wear, discoloration, and faint smudges.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige or off-white background. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including faint smudges, discoloration, and small dark spots. There is no text or other content on the page.

Scale in Fathoms. Diameter, &c.
1/2 1 1 1/2 2 2 1/2 3 3 1/2 4 4 1/2 5 5 1/2 6 6 1/2 7 7 1/2 8 8 1/2 9 9 1/2 10 10 1/2 11 11 1/2 12 12 1/2 13 13 1/2 14 14 1/2 15 15 1/2 16 16 1/2 17 17 1/2 18 18 1/2 19 19 1/2 20 20 1/2 21 21 1/2 22 22 1/2 23 23 1/2 24 24 1/2 25 25 1/2 26 26 1/2 27 27 1/2 28 28 1/2 29 29 1/2 30 30 1/2 31 31 1/2 32 32 1/2 33 33 1/2 34 34 1/2 35 35 1/2 36 36 1/2 37 37 1/2 38 38 1/2 39 39 1/2 40 40 1/2 41 41 1/2 42 42 1/2 43 43 1/2 44 44 1/2 45 45 1/2 46 46 1/2 47 47 1/2 48 48 1/2 49 49 1/2 50 50 1/2 51 51 1/2 52 52 1/2 53 53 1/2 54 54 1/2 55 55 1/2 56 56 1/2 57 57 1/2 58 58 1/2 59 59 1/2 60 60 1/2 61 61 1/2 62 62 1/2 63 63 1/2 64 64 1/2 65 65 1/2 66 66 1/2 67 67 1/2 68 68 1/2 69 69 1/2 70 70 1/2 71 71 1/2 72 72 1/2 73 73 1/2 74 74 1/2 75 75 1/2 76 76 1/2 77 77 1/2 78 78 1/2 79 79 1/2 80 80 1/2 81 81 1/2 82 82 1/2 83 83 1/2 84 84 1/2 85 85 1/2 86 86 1/2 87 87 1/2 88 88 1/2 89 89 1/2 90 90 1/2 91 91 1/2 92 92 1/2 93 93 1/2 94 94 1/2 95 95 1/2 96 96 1/2 97 97 1/2 98 98 1/2 99 99 1/2 100 100 1/2 101 101 1/2 102 102 1/2 103 103 1/2 104 104 1/2 105 105 1/2 106 106 1/2 107 107 1/2 108 108 1/2 109 109 1/2 110 110 1/2 111 111 1/2 112 112 1/2 113 113 1/2 114 114 1/2 115 115 1/2 116 116 1/2 117 117 1/2 118 118 1/2 119 119 1/2 120 120 1/2 121 121 1/2 122 122 1/2 123 123 1/2 124 124 1/2 125 125 1/2 126 126 1/2 127 127 1/2 128 128 1/2 129 129 1/2 130 130 1/2 131 131 1/2 132 132 1/2 133 133 1/2 134 134 1/2 135 135 1/2 136 136 1/2 137 137 1/2 138 138 1/2 139 139 1/2 140 140 1/2 141 141 1/2 142 142 1/2 143 143 1/2 144 144 1/2 145 145 1/2 146 146 1/2 147 147 1/2 148 148 1/2 149 149 1/2 150 150 1/2 151 151 1/2 152 152 1/2 153 153 1/2 154 154 1/2 155 155 1/2 156 156 1/2 157 157 1/2 158 158 1/2 159 159 1/2 160 160 1/2 161 161 1/2 162 162 1/2 163 163 1/2 164 164 1/2 165 165 1/2 166 166 1/2 167 167 1/2 168 168 1/2 169 169 1/2 170 170 1/2 171 171 1/2 172 172 1/2 173 173 1/2 174 174 1/2 175 175 1/2 176 176 1/2 177 177 1/2 178 178 1/2 179 179 1/2 180 180 1/2 181 181 1/2 182 182 1/2 183 183 1/2 184 184 1/2 185 185 1/2 186 186 1/2 187 187 1/2 188 188 1/2 189 189 1/2 190 190 1/2 191 191 1/2 192 192 1/2 193 193 1/2 194 194 1/2 195 195 1/2 196 196 1/2 197 197 1/2 198 198 1/2 199 199 1/2 200 200 1/2 201 201 1/2 202 202 1/2 203 203 1/2 204 204 1/2 205 205 1/2 206 206 1/2 207 207 1/2 208 208 1/2 209 209 1/2 210 210 1/2 211 211 1/2 212 212 1/2 213 213 1/2 214 214 1/2 215 215 1/2 216 216 1/2 217 217 1/2 218 218 1/2 219 219 1/2 220 220 1/2 221 221 1/2 222 222 1/2 223 223 1/2 224 224 1/2 225 225 1/2 226 226 1/2 227 227 1/2 228 228 1/2 229 229 1/2 230 230 1/2 231 231 1/2 232 232 1/2 233 233 1/2 234 234 1/2 235 235 1/2 236 236 1/2 237 237 1/2 238 238 1/2 239 239 1/2 240 240 1/2 241 241 1/2 242 242 1/2 243 243 1/2 244 244 1/2 245 245 1/2 246 246 1/2 247 247 1/2 248 248 1/2 249 249 1/2 250 250 1/2 251 251 1/2 252 252 1/2 253 253 1/2 254 254 1/2 255 255 1/2 256 256 1/2 257 257 1/2 258 258 1/2 259 259 1/2 260 260 1/2 261 261 1/2 262 262 1/2 263 263 1/2 264 264 1/2 265 265 1/2 266 266 1/2 267 267 1/2 268 268 1/2 269 269 1/2 270 270 1/2 271 271 1/2 272 272 1/2 273 273 1/2 274 274 1/2 275 275 1/2 276 276 1/2 277 277 1/2 278 278 1/2 279 279 1/2 280 280 1/2 281 281 1/2 282 282 1/2 283 283 1/2 284 284 1/2 285 285 1/2 286 286 1/2 287 287 1/2 288 288 1/2 289 289 1/2 290 290 1/2 291 291 1/2 292 292 1/2 293 293 1/2 294 294 1/2 295 295 1/2 296 296 1/2 297 297 1/2 298 298 1/2 299 299 1/2 300 300 1/2 301 301 1/2 302 302 1/2 303 303 1/2 304 304 1/2 305 305 1/2 306 306 1/2 307 307 1/2 308 308 1/2 309 309 1/2 310 310 1/2 311 311 1/2 312 312 1/2 313 313 1/2 314 314 1/2 315 315 1/2 316 316 1/2 317 317 1/2 318 318 1/2 319 319 1/2 320 320 1/2 321 321 1/2 322 322 1/2 323 323 1/2 324 324 1/2 325 325 1/2 326 326 1/2 327 327 1/2 328 328 1/2 329 329 1/2 330 330 1/2 331 331 1/2 332 332 1/2 333 333 1/2 334 334 1/2 335 335 1/2 336 336 1/2 337 337 1/2 338 338 1/2 339 339 1/2 340 340 1/2 341 341 1/2 342 342 1/2 343 343 1/2 344 344 1/2 345 345 1/2 346 346 1/2 347 347 1/2 348 348 1/2 349 349 1/2 350 350 1/2 351 351 1/2 352 352 1/2 353 353 1/2 354 354 1/2 355 355 1/2 356 356 1/2 357 357 1/2 358 358 1/2 359 359 1/2 360 360 1/2 361 361 1/2 362 362 1/2 363 363 1/2 364 364 1/2 365 365 1/2 366 366 1/2 367 367 1/2 368 368 1/2 369 369 1/2 370 370 1/2 371 371 1/2 372 372 1/2 373 373 1/2 374 374 1/2 375 375 1/2 376 376 1/2 377 377 1/2 378 378 1/2 379 379 1/2 380 380 1/2 381 381 1/2 382 382 1/2 383 383 1/2 384 384 1/2 385 385 1/2 386 386 1/2 387 387 1/2 388 388 1/2 389 389 1/2 390 390 1/2 391 391 1/2 392 392 1/2 393 393 1/2 394 394 1/2 395 395 1/2 396 396 1/2 397 397 1/2 398 398 1/2 399 399 1/2 400 400 1/2 401 401 1/2 402 402 1/2 403 403 1/2 404 404 1/2 405 405 1/2 406 406 1/2 407 407 1/2 408 408 1/2 409 409 1/2 410 410 1/2 411 411 1/2 412 412 1/2 413 413 1/2 414 414 1/2 415 415 1/2 416 416 1/2 417 417 1/2 418 418 1/2 419 419 1/2 420 420 1/2 421 421 1/2 422 422 1/2 423 423 1/2 424 424 1/2 425 425 1/2 426 426 1/2 427 427 1/2 428 428 1/2 429 429 1/2 430 430 1/2 431 431 1/2 432 432 1/2 433 433 1/2 434 434 1/2 435 435 1/2 436 436 1/2 437 437 1/2 438 438 1/2 439 439 1/2 440 440 1/2 441 441 1/2 442 442 1/2 443 443 1/2 444 444 1/2 445 445 1/2 446 446 1/2 447 447 1/2 448 448 1/2 449 449 1/2 450 450 1/2 451 451 1/2 452 452 1/2 453 453 1/2 454 454 1/2 455 455 1/2 456 456 1/2 457 457 1/2 458 458 1/2 459 459 1/2 460 460 1/2 461 461 1/2 462 462 1/2 463 463 1/2 464 464 1/2 465 465 1/2 466 466 1/2 467 467 1/2 468 468 1/2 469 469 1/2 470 470 1/2 471 471 1/2 472 472 1/2 473 473 1/2 474 474 1/2 475 475 1/2 476 476 1/2 477 477 1/2 478 478 1/2 479 479 1/2 480 480 1/2 481 481 1/2 482 482 1/2 483 483 1/2 484 484 1/2 485 485 1/2 486 486 1/2 487 487 1/2 488 488 1/2 489 489 1/2 490 490 1/2 491 491 1/2 492 492 1/2 493 493 1/2 494 494 1/2 495 495 1/2 496 496 1/2 497 497 1/2 498 498 1/2 499 499 1/2 500 500 1/2 501 501 1/2 502 502 1/2 503 503 1/2 504 504 1/2 505 505 1/2 506 506 1/2 507 507 1/2 508 508 1/2 509 509 1/2 510 510 1/2 511 511 1/2 512 512 1/2 513 513 1/2 514 514 1/2 515 515 1/2 516 516 1/2 517 517 1/2 518 518 1/2 519 519 1/2 520 520 1/2 521 521 1/2 522 522 1/2 523 523 1/2 524 524 1/2 525 525 1/2 526 526 1/2 527 527 1/2 528 528 1/2 529 529 1/2 530 530 1/2 531 531 1/2 532 532 1/2 533 533 1/2 534 534 1/2 535 535 1/2 536 536 1/2 537 537 1/2 538 538 1/2 539 539 1/2 540 540 1/2 541 541 1/2 542 542 1/2 543 543 1/2 544 544 1/2 545 545 1/2 546 546 1/2 547 547 1/2 548 548 1/2 549 549 1/2 550 550 1/2 551 551 1/2 552 552 1/2 553 553 1/2 554 554 1/2 555 555 1/2 556 556 1/2 557 557 1/2 558 558 1/2 559 559 1/2 560 560 1/2 561 561 1/2 562 562 1/2 563 563 1/2 564 564 1/2 565 565 1/2 566 566 1/2 567 567 1/2 568 568 1/2 569 569 1/2 570 570 1/2 571 571 1/2 572 572 1/2 573 573 1/2 574 574 1/2 575 575 1/2 576 576 1/2 577 577 1/2 578 578 1/2 579 579 1/2 580 580 1/2 581 581 1/2 582 582 1/2 583 583 1/2 584 584 1/2 585 585 1/2 586 586 1/2 587 587 1/2 588 588 1/2 589 589 1/2 590 590 1/2 591 591 1/2 592 592 1/2 593 593 1/2 594 594 1/2 595 595 1/2 596 596 1/2 597 597 1/2 598 598 1/2 599 599 1/2 600 600 1/2 601 601 1/2 602 602 1/2 603 603 1/2 604 604 1/2 605 605 1/2 606 606 1/2 607 607 1/2 608 608 1/2 609 609 1/2 610 610 1/2 611 611 1/2 612 612 1/2 613 613 1/2 614 614 1/2 615 615 1/2 616 616 1/2 617 617 1/2 618 618 1/2 619 619 1/2 620 620 1/2 621 621 1/2 622 622 1/2 623 623 1/2 624 624 1/2 625 625 1/2 626 626 1/2 627 627 1/2 628 628 1/2 629 629 1/2 630 630 1/2 631 631 1/2 632 632 1/2 633 633 1/2 634 634 1/2 635 635 1/2 636 636 1/2 637 637 1/2 638 638 1/2 639 639 1/2 640 640 1/2 641 641 1/2 642 642 1/2 643 643 1/2 644 644 1/2 645 645 1/2 646 646 1/2 647 647 1/2 648 648 1/2 649 649 1/2 650 650 1/2 651 651 1/2 652 652 1/2 653 653 1/2 654 654 1/2 655 655 1/2 656 656 1/2 657 657 1/2 658 658 1/2 659 659 1/2 660 660 1/2 661 661 1/2 662 662 1/2 663 663 1/2 664 664 1/2 665 665 1/2 666 666 1/2 667 667 1/2 668 668 1/2 669 669 1/2 670 670 1/2 671 671 1/2 672 672 1/2 673 673 1/2 674 674 1/2 675 675 1/2 676 676 1/2 677 677 1/2 678 678 1/2 679 679 1/2 680 680 1/2 681 681 1/2 682 682 1/2 683 683 1/2 684 684 1/2 685 685 1/2 686 686 1/2 687 687 1/2 688 688 1/2 689 689 1/2 690 690 1/2 691 691 1/2 692 692 1/2 693 693 1/2 694 694 1/2 695 695 1/2 696 696 1/2 697 697 1/2 698 698 1/2 699 699 1/2 700 700 1/2 701 701 1/2 702 702 1/2 703 703 1/2 704 704 1/2 705 705 1/2 706 706 1/2 707 707 1/2 708 708 1/2 709 709 1/2 710 710 1/2 711 711 1/2 712 712 1/2 713 713 1/2 714 714 1/2 715 715 1/2 716 716 1/2 717 717 1/2 718 718 1/2 719 719 1/2 720 720 1/2 721 721 1/2 722 722 1/2 723 723 1/2 724 724 1/2 725 725 1/2 726 726 1/2 727 727 1/2 728 728 1/2 729 729 1/2 730 730 1/2 731 731 1/2 732 732 1/2 733 733 1/2 734 734 1/2 735 735 1/2 736 736 1/2 737 737 1/2 738 738 1/2 739 739 1/2 740 740 1/2 741 741 1/2 742 742 1/2 743 743 1/2 744 744 1/2 745 745 1/2 746 746 1/2 747 747 1/2 748 748 1/2 749 749 1/2 750 750 1/2 751 751 1/2 752 752 1/2 753 753 1/2 754 754 1/2 755 755 1/2 756 756 1/2 757 757 1/2 758 758 1/2 759 759 1/2 760 760 1/2 761 761 1/2 762 762 1/2 763 763 1/2 764 764 1/2 765 765 1/2 766 766 1/2 767 767 1/2 768 768 1/2 769 769 1/2 770 770 1/2 771 771 1/2 772 772 1/2 773 773 1/2 774 774 1/2 775 775 1/2 776 776 1/2 777 777 1/2 778 778 1/2 779 779 1/2 780 780 1/2 781 781 1/2 782 782 1/2 783 783 1/2 784 784 1/2 785 785 1/2 786 786 1/2 787 787 1/2 788 788 1/2 789 789 1/2 790 790 1/2 791 791 1/2 792 792 1/2 793 793 1/2 794 794 1/2 795 795 1/2 796 796 1/2 797 797 1/2 798 798 1/2 799 799 1/2 800 800 1/2 801 801 1/2 802 802 1/2 803 803 1/2 804 804 1/2 805 805 1/2 806 806 1/2 807 807 1/2 808 808 1/2 809 809 1/2 810 810 1/2 811 811 1/2 812 812 1/2 813 813 1/2 814 814 1/2 815 815 1/2 816 816 1/2 817 817 1/2 818 818 1/2 819 819 1/2 820 820 1/2 821 821 1/2 822 822 1/2 823 823 1/2 824 824 1/2 825 825 1/2 826 826 1/2 827 827 1/2 828 828 1/2 829 829 1/2 830 830 1/2 831 831 1/2 832 832 1/2 833 833 1/2 834 834 1/2 835 835 1/2 836 836 1/2 837 837 1/2 838 838 1/2 839 839 1/2 840 840 1/2 841 841 1/2 842 842 1/2 843 843 1/2 844 844 1/2 845 845 1/2 846 846 1/2 847 847 1/2 848 848 1/2 849 849 1/2 850 850 1/2 851 851 1/2 852 852 1/2 853 853 1/2 854 854 1/2 855 855 1/2 856 856 1/2 857 857 1/2 858 858 1/2 859 859 1/2 860 860 1/2 861 861 1/2 862 862 1/2 863 863 1/2 864 864 1/2 865 865 1/2 866 866 1/2 867 867 1/2 868 868 1/2 869 869 1/2 870 870 1/2 871 871 1/2 872 872 1/2 873 873 1/2 874 874 1/2 875 875 1/2 876 876 1/2 877 877 1/2 878 878 1/2 879 879 1/2 880 880 1/2 881 881 1/2 882 882 1/2 883 883 1/2 884 884 1/2 885 885 1/2 886 886 1/2 887 887 1/2 888 888 1/2 889 889 1/2 890 890 1/2 891 891 1/2 892 892 1/2 893 893 1/2 894 894 1/2 895 895 1/2 896 896 1/2 897 897 1/2 898 898 1/2 899 899 1/2 900 900 1/2 901 901 1/2 902 902 1/2 903 903 1/2 904 904 1/2 905 905 1/2 906 906 1/2 907 907 1/2 908 908 1/2 909 909 1/2 910 910 1/2 911 911 1/2 912 912 1/2 913 913 1/2 914 914 1/2 915 915 1/2 916 916 1/2 917 917 1/2 918 918 1/2 919 919 1/2 920 920 1/2 921 921 1/2 922 922 1/2 923 923 1/2 924 924 1/2 925 925 1/2 926 926 1/2 927 927 1/2 928 928 1/2 929 929 1/2 930 930 1/2 931 931 1/2 932 932 1/2 933 933 1/2 934 934 1/2 935 935 1/2 936 936 1/2 937 937 1/2 938 938 1/2 939 939 1/2 940 940 1/2 941 941 1/2 942 942 1/2 943 943 1/2 944 944 1/2 945 945 1/2 946 946 1/2 947 947 1/2 948 948 1/2 949 949 1/2 950 950 1/2 951 951 1/2 952 952 1/2 953 953 1/2 954 954 1/2 955 955 1/2 956 956 1/2 957 957 1/2 958 958 1/2 959 959 1/2 960 960 1/2 961 961 1/2 962 962 1/2 963 963 1/2 964 964 1/2 965 965 1/2 966 966 1/2 967 967 1/2 968 968 1/2 969 969 1/2 970 970 1/2 971 971 1/2 972 972 1/2 973 973 1/2 974 974 1/2 975 975 1/2 976 976 1/2 977 977 1/2 978 978 1/2 979 979 1/2 980 980 1/2 981 981 1/2 982 982 1/2 983 983 1/2 984 984 1/2 985 985 1/2 986 986 1/2 987 987 1/2 988 988 1/2 989 989 1/2 990 990 1/2 991 991 1/2 992 992 1/2 993 993 1/2 994 994 1/2 995 995 1/2 996 996 1/2 997 997 1/2 998 998 1/2 1000 1000 1/2 1001 1001 1/2 1002 1002 1/2 1003 1003 1/2 1004 1004 1/2 1005 1005 1/2 1006 1006 1/2 1007 1007 1/2 1008 1008 1/2 1009 1009 1/2 1010 1010 1/2 1011 1011 1/2 1012 1012 1/2 1013 1013 1/2 1014 1014 1/2 1015 1015 1/2 1016 1016 1/2 1017 1017 1/2 1018 1018 1/2 1019 1019 1/2 1020 1020 1/2 1021 1021 1/2 1022 1022 1/2 1023 1023 1/2 1024 1024 1/2 1025 1025 1/2 1026 1026 1/2 1027 1027 1/2 1028 1028 1/2 1029 1029 1/2 1030 1030 1/2 1031 1031 1/2 1032 1032 1/2 1033 1033 1/2 1034 1034 1/2 1035 103

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and minor blemishes.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, cream-colored tone and a slightly textured surface. There are several prominent water stains, appearing as irregular, brownish-tan patches, particularly along the left edge and in the upper-left quadrant. A few small, dark specks are scattered across the page, likely due to age or handling. The overall appearance is that of an old, unused document page.

Fig. 1
Section of Engine Bed

Sectional view of the engine bed showing a rectangular frame with vertical supports and a central horizontal beam.A detailed technical drawing showing a cross-section of the engine bed. It consists of a rectangular frame with several vertical supports and a central horizontal beam, designed to house the engine components.

Fig. 2

Side view of the engine mechanism showing a large flywheel, gears, and a curved arm.A side-view technical drawing of the engine mechanism. It features a large flywheel on the left, connected to a series of gears and a curved arm that extends to the right. The entire assembly is mounted on a sturdy base.

Fig. 3
Plan of Engine Bed

Top-down plan view of the engine bed showing a circular base with radial lines.A top-down plan view of the engine bed, showing a circular base with radial lines indicating the internal structure or mounting points for the engine components.

Fig. 5

Plan of Packing Section

Plan view of the packing section showing a grid-like structure with vertical and horizontal beams.A plan view of the packing section, showing a grid-like structure with vertical and horizontal beams. It appears to be a frame for the packing mechanism, with a central vertical section and a horizontal section.

Fig. 4

Front Elevation of Packing Machine

Front elevation view of the packing machine showing a large rectangular frame with a central vertical section and a gear mechanism on top.A front elevation view of the packing machine, showing a large rectangular frame with a central vertical section. A gear mechanism is visible on top of the frame, connected to the central section.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration, particularly along the left edge and bottom.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the left edge and bottom. There is no text or other markings on the page.
Fig. 1. Section of Liquefied Tub. A cross-sectional view of a rectangular tub with vertical bars and a horizontal rod passing through the center.

Fig. 1.
Section of Liquefied Tub.

Fig. 2. End Elevation of Puddling Machine. A side view of the machine showing a large curved wheel on the left, connected by a belt to a smaller gear, which is then connected to a vertical rod and a horizontal lever mechanism.

Fig. 2.

Fig. 3. Plan of Liquefied Tub. A top-down circular view of the tub with four radial spokes from the center to the rim.

Fig. 3.
Plan of Liquefied Tub.

Fig. 5.
Plan of Puddling Machine.

Fig. 5. Plan of Puddling Machine. A top-down view of the machine's frame, showing a series of vertical bars and a central horizontal rod with a gear mechanism at one end.

Fig. 4.
Front Elevation of Puddling Machine.

Fig. 4. Front Elevation of Puddling Machine. A front view of the machine showing a large vertical frame, a central vertical rod, and a gear mechanism at the top.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including several brownish water stains and minor discolorations. There is no text or other markings on the page.
Plan of the Boiler Room showing a large boiler with various pipes and valves, and a large door with decorative panels.

Fig. 8.
Plan of Boiling Room.

Plan of the Boiling Room showing a large rectangular boiler with a central horizontal pipe and a vertical stack on the right side.

Section of the Boiling Boiler

Section of the Boiling Boiler showing a large horizontal boiler with a dome-shaped top, a vertical pipe on the right, and a large door at the bottom.

Fig. 9.
Section of Boiling Boiler.

Plan of the Boiler Room showing a large rectangular boiler with a central horizontal pipe and a vertical stack on the right side.
Two circular diagrams: Fig. 10 shows a cross-section of a boiler with a central pipe, and Fig. 11 shows a plan view of a circular boiler with a central pipe.

Fig. 10.

Fig. 11.

Plan of Boiler Top.

Plan of Boiler.

Plan of Boiler Room.

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water damage and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper exhibits significant signs of wear and aging, including a large, irregular water stain in the lower-left quadrant that has spread upwards and to the right, creating a light blue-greyish area. There are also smaller, faint brownish stains and discolorations scattered across the surface, particularly near the top right and bottom left corners. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly rough and uneven.

Fig. 6.
Elevation of Dyeing Box.

Fig. 6. Elevation of Dyeing Box. A detailed technical drawing showing the front elevation of a large, rectangular industrial machine. It features a central door with two decorative panels and a smaller door to its left. A large, curved pipe or hose is attached to the bottom left corner, leading to a complex valve assembly with several circular ports and a central handle.

Fig. 7.
Plan of Dyeing Box.

Fig. 7. Plan of Dyeing Box. A top-down technical drawing of the machine shown in Fig. 6. It shows a rectangular frame with a central horizontal channel. On the right side, there are four rectangular compartments or drawers. A vertical pipe or shaft extends upwards from the center of the frame, and a valve assembly is visible on the left side.

Section of Dyeing Boiler.

Fig. 8.

Fig. 8. Section of Dyeing Boiler. A cross-sectional technical drawing of a large, horizontal cylindrical boiler. The boiler is mounted on a multi-tiered base. A large pipe enters from the top right, and a smaller pipe exits from the top left. The interior of the boiler is shown with a smooth, slightly curved surface.

Fig. 9.
Elevation of Dyeing Boiler.

Fig. 9. Elevation of Dyeing Boiler. A side-view technical drawing of the boiler shown in Fig. 8. It shows the boiler's cylindrical body and its rounded hemispherical head on the left. A pipe is visible on the right side of the boiler.

Fig. 10.

Fig. 10. Plan of Boiler Top. A circular technical drawing showing the top view of the boiler head. It features a central circular opening surrounded by a ring of small holes, likely for steam or water circulation.

Plan of Boiler Top.

Fig. 11.

Fig. 11. Plan of Cover. A circular technical drawing showing the top view of a cover or lid. It has a central circular opening and several small holes around its perimeter, similar in design to Fig. 10.

Plan of Cover.

A detailed historical map of the Nile region and surrounding areas, including Egypt, the Arabian Desert, and the Red Sea. The map features a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with the Nile River as the central feature. Key locations include Alexandria, Cairo, and various cities in Egypt and the Sudan. The Arabian Desert is labeled at the top, and the Red Sea is on the right. The map includes numerous place names, geographical features, and a scale in miles.

This historical map, titled 'PLATE CVIII.', depicts a vast region of Africa and Asia, centered on the Nile River. The Nile flows from the south, through the Sudan, into Egypt, and finally into the Mediterranean Sea. The map is densely populated with place names, including major cities like Alexandria, Cairo, and Khartoum, as well as smaller settlements and villages. The surrounding areas are also labeled, such as the 'Arabia Desert' to the north and the 'Red Sea' to the east. The map includes a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with numbers 29, 30, 31, and 32 marked along the top and bottom edges. A scale in miles is provided at the bottom left. The map is a detailed representation of the geographical features and human settlements of the region during the time it was produced.

A detailed nautical chart of the Great Lakes region, showing the outlines of Lake Superior, Lake Michigan, Lake Huron, Lake Erie, Lake St. Clair, Lake Ontario, and Lake Niagara. The chart includes a coordinate grid with latitude and longitude lines. Numerous place names are labeled, including Detroit, Toledo, Saginaw, Ann Arbor, Lansing, Flint, and many others. A title box in the lower right corner reads 'EGYPT.' and a scale bar below it indicates distances in English Miles.

EGYPT.

English Miles

A detailed historical map of the Persian Gulf region, showing the coastline of Arabia, the Persian Gulf, and the Gulf of Oman. The map includes a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with numbers 29, 30, 31, and 32 along the top and bottom edges. Major geographical features are labeled, including the Persian Gulf (GOLF OF PERSIA), the Gulf of Oman (GULF OF OMAN), and the Arabian Sea (ARABIAN SEA). Key locations such as Bombay (Bombay), Calcutta (Calcutta), and various islands and peninsulas are marked. The map is oriented with North at the top.

This is a historical map of the Persian Gulf region, likely from the 19th century. The map is oriented with North at the top. It shows the coastline of the Arabian Peninsula to the north and the Gulf of Oman to the east. The Persian Gulf is the central feature, with the Gulf of Bengal to the west and the Arabian Sea to the south. The map includes a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with numbers 29, 30, 31, and 32 along the top and bottom edges. Major geographical features are labeled, including the Persian Gulf (GOLF OF PERSIA), the Gulf of Oman (GULF OF OMAN), and the Arabian Sea (ARABIAN SEA). Key locations such as Bombay (Bombay), Calcutta (Calcutta), and various islands and peninsulas are marked. The map is oriented with North at the top.

A detailed historical map of Egypt and surrounding regions, showing the Nile River, the Desert of the Thebaid, and various cities and geographical features. The map is oriented with North at the top. The Nile River flows from the south, passing through the Desert of the Thebaid, and empties into the Mediterranean Sea at the north. Major cities like Cairo, Alexandria, and Memphis are marked. The map also shows the Red Sea to the east and the Gulf of Suez to the west. A scale bar in English Miles is provided at the bottom right, and a title 'EGYPT.' is centered in a box. Longitude and latitude lines are marked along the edges.

EGYPT.

English Miles

10 20 30 40 50 60 70 80

30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54 55 56 57 58 59 60 61 62 63 64 65 66 67 68 69 70 71 72 73 74 75 76 77 78 79 80 81 82 83 84 85 86 87 88 89 90 91 92 93 94 95 96 97 98 99 100

A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration, particularly along the right edge and bottom.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the right edge and bottom. There is no text or other markings on the page.
HIEROGLYPHICS.
H. TAAMVLEN
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
H. NEILUS
Hieroglyphic symbol for GOD NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for GOD NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for GODDESS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for GODDESS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for GODDESS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for GODDESS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for AGATHODORME NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for PHETAN NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for AMMON NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for PHRE NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for RHIA NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for IOH NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for THOTH NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for OSIRIS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for ARUBIS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for ISIS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for NEPHTHE NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for BUTO NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for HORUS NIGHT
Hieroglyphic symbol for HORUS NIGHT
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges, discoloration, and a vertical crease near the center.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly towards the edges. A vertical crease or fold line is visible near the center of the page. There is no text or other markings on the page.
HIEROGLYPHICS.
A. DEITIES

Sacred Ch.      Ros. Ench. M.S.      19 NILUS
Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

1 GOD powerful
NOY      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      20 APIS      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

2 GOD judge      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      21 MNEUTIS      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

3 GODDESS
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      22 Hyperion      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

4 GODS
ANNOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      23 Ceteristes      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

5 Agathodaemon
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      24 Tetrarcha      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

6 PITHAH
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      25 ANURIS      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

7 AMMON
ANOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      26 MACEDO      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

8 PHRE
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      27 Hieracion      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

9 RHEA
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      28 Cereoxochus      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

10 ION
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      29 Bioxiphus      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

11 THOTH
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      30 Platypterus      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

12 OSIRIS
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      31 Mastigias      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

13 ARUERIS      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      32 Soreia      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

14 ISIS
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      33 Thintumosis      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

15 NEPHTHE      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      34 Mesphres      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

16 BUTO      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ      35 Misphragmus
thosis      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

17 HORUS
INOT      Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ Ⲁⲁⲣⲟ

Hieroglyphs for deity
36 Tithous
Hieroglyphs for deity
37 Eoa
Hieroglyphs for deity
38 MEMNON
ANOT
Hieroglyphs for deity
39 Amenses
Hieroglyphs for deity
40 Heron
Hieroglyphs for deity
41 Remesses
Hieroglyphs for deity
42 Sesostris
Hieroglyphs for deity
43 Pheron
Hieroglyphs for deity
44 Nuncoreus
Hieroglyphs for deity
45 Protens
Hieroglyphs for deity
46 Ansenepathes
Hieroglyphs for deity
47 Anysis
Hieroglyphs for deity
48 Psammetius
Hieroglyphs for deity
49 NECHAO
Hieroglyphs for deity
50 PSAMMIS
Hieroglyphs for deity
51 Macmephthes
Hieroglyphs for deity
52 AMASIS
Hieroglyphs for deity
53 Ptoleberius
Hieroglyphs for deity
54 Discozygus
Hieroglyphs for deity
B. KINGS.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration, particularly along the left edge and bottom.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the left edge and bottom. There is no text or other markings on the page.

STROGLYPHEA.

55. ALEXANDER
400 B.C.

ΚΑΛΙΣΤΕΝΕΣ

D. ANIMALS

56. HABITATION
H

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

57. PTOLEMY
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

58. A MAN
160 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

59. THRONE
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

52. NOTERES

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

60. HIM
400 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

61. COLUMN
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

54. HERESICE

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

62. BULLOCK
400 B.C.

Illustration of a bull

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

63. DIADEM
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

56. PHILADELPHUS
B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

64. RAM
600 B.C.

Illustration of a ram

65. ORNAMENTS
C.E.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

58. ARSINOE

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

66. ANTELOPE

Illustration of an antelope

67. SHIP
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

59. EUGENETIS

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

68. TORTOISE
400 B.C.

Illustration of a tortoise

69. SPEAR
800 B.C.

Illustration of a spear

60. PHILOPATOR
B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

70. BASILISK
600 B.C.

Illustration of a basilisk

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

71. ROW
400 B.C.

Illustration of a rowing boat

61. EPIPHANES

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

E. INANIMATE OBJECTS.

72. ARROW
600 B.C.

Illustration of an arrow

62. PHILOMETOR
B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

73. EGYPT
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

74. CENSER
1200 B.C.

Illustration of a censer

63. CLEOPATRA

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

75. MEMPHIS
600 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

76. BEER
600 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

C. PRIVATE PERSONS.

77. RIVER
100 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

78. TEAR
100 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

64. ACTUS

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

79. GREEK
600 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

80. IMAGE
600 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

65. PHILINUS

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

81. COUNTRY
100 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

82. STATUE
100 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

66. DIOGENES

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

83. LAND
800 B.C.

Illustration of a land symbol

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

84. LETTERS
600 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

67. PYRRHIA

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

85. STAR
600 B.C.

Illustration of a star

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

86. WEIGHT
600 B.C.

Illustration of a weight

68. ARRIA

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

87. TEMPLE
100 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

88. LOGO
600 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

69. IRENE

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

89. RIVER
200 B.C.

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

70. BOETHEUS

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

90. SIRENUS

ⲉⲥⲱⲧⲉⲛⲓ

91. OFFERINGS

Illustration of offerings
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with a diagonal fold and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint, illegible markings that appear to be bleed-through from the reverse side. A prominent diagonal fold is visible on the left side, creating a triangular shape. The overall tone is warm and yellowish, characteristic of old paper.

HIEROGLYPHICS.

55. ALEXANDER
ⲁⲕⲉⲧⲁⲕⲁⲧⲉⲣⲉⲥ

ⲕⲉⲧⲁⲕⲁⲧⲉⲣⲉⲥ

D. ANIMALS

59. HABITATION
ⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Habitation: a house-like structure with a roof and walls.
Hieroglyph for Ptolemy: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲕⲟⲣⲓⲙⲓⲥⲁⲕⲉⲙⲓ

73. A MAN
ⲡⲟⲣⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for A Man: a simple human figure.

ⲡⲣⲙⲥⲉⲥ

90. THRONE
ⲧⲉⲥⲥⲓ

Hieroglyph for Throne: a simple four-legged chair.
Hieroglyph for Soteres: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲧⲉⲣⲉⲥⲓⲥⲟⲧⲉⲣⲉⲥ

74. HIM
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Him: a simple human figure.

ⲙⲓ

ⲙⲓ

91. COLUMN
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Column: a simple vertical pillar.
Hieroglyph for Column: a simple vertical pillar.
Hieroglyph for Berenice: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲕⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

75. BULLOCK
ⲥⲉⲥⲉ

Hieroglyph for Bullock: a simple bull.

ⲥⲉⲥⲉ

92. DIADEM
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Diadem: a simple headband.
Hieroglyph for Diadem: a simple headband.

59. PHILADELPHUS
ⲡⲓⲕⲁⲓⲉⲙⲓⲕⲉⲣⲉⲥ

ⲡⲓⲕⲁⲓⲉⲙⲓⲕⲉⲣⲉⲥ

76. RAM
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Ram: a simple ram's head.

93. ORNAMENTS
ⲥⲉⲥⲉⲥⲉ

Hieroglyph for Ornaments: a simple decorative pattern.
Hieroglyph for Arsinoe: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲕⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

77. ANTELOPE
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Antelope: a simple antelope.

94. SHIP
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Ship: a simple sailing vessel.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Euergetes: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲕⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

78. TORTOISE
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Tortoise: a simple tortoise.

95. SPEAR
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Spear: a simple spear.
Hieroglyph for Philopator: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲡⲓⲕⲁⲓⲉⲙⲓⲕⲉⲣⲉⲥ

79. BASILISC
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Basilisc: a simple basilisc.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

96. BOW
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Bow: a simple bow.
Hieroglyph for Epiphanes: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲕⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

E. INANIMATE OBJECTS.

97. ARROW
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Arrow: a simple arrow.
Hieroglyph for Philometor: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

80. EGYPT
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Egypt: a simple landscape with a sun.

98. CENSER
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Censer: a simple censer.
Hieroglyph for Cleopatrides: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

81. MEMPHIS
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Memphis: a simple landscape with a sun.

99. BIER
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Bier: a simple bier.

C. PRIVATE PERSONS.

82. RIVER
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for River: a simple river.

100. TEAR
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Tear: a simple tear.

ⲕⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

83. GREEK
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Greek: a simple landscape with a sun.

101. IMAGE
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Image: a simple landscape with a sun.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

ⲡⲓⲕⲁⲓⲉⲙⲓⲕⲉⲣⲉⲥ

84. COUNTRY
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Country: a simple landscape with a sun.

102. STATUE
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Statue: a simple statue.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

ⲙⲓⲥⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

85. LAND
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Land: a simple landscape with a sun.

103. LETTERS
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Letters: a simple landscape with a sun.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

ⲙⲓⲥⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

86. STAR
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Star: a simple star.

104. WEIGHT
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Weight: a simple weight.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

ⲙⲓⲥⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

87. TEMPLE
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Temple: a simple temple.

105. GOLD
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Gold: a simple landscape with a sun.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

ⲙⲓⲥⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

88. SHRINE
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Shrine: a simple shrine.

106. SILVER
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Silver: a simple landscape with a sun.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Rammensus: a cartouche containing a seated figure.

ⲙⲓⲥⲉⲣⲉⲛⲓⲥⲉ

Hieroglyph for Shrine: a simple shrine.

107. OFFERINGS
ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

Hieroglyph for Offerings: a simple landscape with a sun.

ⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓⲙⲓ

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible foxing and minor blemishes.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, cream-colored tone and a slightly textured surface. There are several small, brownish spots scattered across the page, which are characteristic of foxing or minor aging blemishes. The page is otherwise empty, with no text, illustrations, or other markings.
HIEROGLYPHICS
ATTRIBUTES AND INTHAS
1. LIFE
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 126. WORDWARD
DRAST
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 127. ASSEMBLY
ḥ. ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ.
2. VIRTUE
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 127. PATRON
ḥ. ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. 128. SACRED
DRAST
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
3. IMMORTAL
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 129. MOTHER
ḥ. ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 129. CONSECRATED
DRAST
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
4. ONLY
HAWA
ḥ. 130. WIFE
ḥ. ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. 130. GIVE
+
ḥ. ḥ.
5. POWER
HAWA
ḥ. 131. DIVIDED
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 131. OFFER
EN, INI
ḥ.
6. STABILITY
HAWA
ḥ. 132. FATHER
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 132. DEDICATE
TARD
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
7. ESTABLISHED
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 133. SON
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. 133. LAWFUL
OMHI
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
8. STRENGTH
HAWA
ḥ. 134. FATHER
DRAST
ḥ. 134. GOOD
NANE
ḥ. ḥ.
9. MIGHTY
HAWA
ḥ. 135. SON
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. 135. BESTOWING
ETNEROT
ḥ. ḥ.
10. VICTORY
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 136. ROYAL
ḥ.
ḥ. 136. MUNIFICENT
DEGNANCO
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
11. FORTUNE
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 137. KING
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 137. GREAT
NINOT, NAK
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
12. GLENDOUR
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 138. COY
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. 138. OTHERS
KEXCOTNI
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
13. BEARING
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 139. KING
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 139. CALLED
ETXKO
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
14. GLATRIOUS
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 140. LIBA
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 140. DECLARATION
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
15. RESOUR
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. 141. CERT
ḥ.
ḥ. 141. MANIFEST
ETCOTEN
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
16. RESPICCABLE
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 142. PRIEST
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 142. NAME
ḥ.
ḥ.
17. RESPERABLE
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 143. PRIEST
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 143. ENLIGHTENING
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ.
18. RITE
HAWA
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 144. SACRED
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. 144. LOVING
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
145. PRESERVED
ḥ.
ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ. ḥ.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including creases, wrinkles, and discoloration. A prominent diagonal crease runs from the top center towards the bottom left. The page is framed by a white border.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint creases. A prominent diagonal crease runs from the top center towards the bottom left. The page is framed by a white border, suggesting it is part of a bound volume. There is no text or other markings on the page.
HIEROGLYPHICS.
I. ATTRIBUTES AND ACTIONS
16. LIFE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 126. WORSHIP
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 126. ASSEMBLY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
17. ETERNITY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 127. FATHER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 128. SACRED
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
18. IMMORTAL
ETERNAL
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 129. MOTHER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 129. CONSECRATED
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
19. JOY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 130. ATTENDANT
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 130. GIVE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
20. POWER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 131. DAUGHTER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 131. OFFER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
21. STABILITY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 132. SONS
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 132. DEDICATE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
22. ESTABLISHED
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 133. CHILD
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 133. LAWFUL
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
23. STRENGTH
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 134. DIRECTOR
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 134. GOOD
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
24. MIGHTY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 135. STEERSMAN
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 135. BESTOWING
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
25. VICTORY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 136. ROWER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 136. MUNIFICENT
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
26. FORTUNE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 137. KING
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 137. GREAT
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
27. SPLENDOUR
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 138. CONDITION
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 138. OTHERS
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
28. BEARING
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 139. KINGDOM
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 139. CALLED
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
29. ILLUSTRIOUS
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 140. LIBATION
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 140. DECLARATION
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
30. HONOUR
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 141. CEREMONY
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 141. MANIFEST
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
31. RESPECTABLE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 142. PRIEST
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 142. ENLIGHTENING
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
32. VENERABLE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 143. PRIESTHOOD
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 143. LOVING
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
33. RITE
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 144. SACERDOTAL
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖 144. PRESERVER
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖𓂏𓂖
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration, particularly along the left edge and top.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the left edge and top. There is no text or other markings on the page.

HIEROGLYPHICS.

BEFORE Hieroglyphs for 'before' 1.0 BE THROTH
WORTH
Hieroglyphs for 'throt' 1.0 BE THROTH
NAR
Hieroglyphs for 'throt nar' 1.0
BEFORE Hieroglyphs for 'before' 1.0 BE MECHER
REXP
Hieroglyphs for 'mecher' 1.0 BEFORE THE
KARAKEN
Hieroglyphs for 'before the karaken' 1.0
RELATIONS Hieroglyphs for 'relations' 1.0 BE RESORT
ACCUMBE
Hieroglyphs for 'resort' 1.0 BE A RESORT
OF
Hieroglyphs for 'a resort of' 1.0
NAME THAT Hieroglyphs for 'name that' 1.0 BE FURNISH
CONAL
Hieroglyphs for 'furnish' 1.0 BE A FURNISH
CONAL
Hieroglyphs for 'a furnish conal' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE THEATRUM
FORT ALAN
Hieroglyphs for 'theatrum' 1.0 BE A THEATRUM
FORT ALAN
Hieroglyphs for 'a theatrum fort alan' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE STUMBER Hieroglyphs for 'stumber' 1.0 BE A STUMBER Hieroglyphs for 'a stumber' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE ONE
REXALON
Hieroglyphs for 'one rexalon' 1.0 BE A ONE
REXALON
Hieroglyphs for 'a one rexalon' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE FIRST
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'first stony' 1.0 BE A FIRST
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a first stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWO
CEREPACH
Hieroglyphs for 'two cerepach' 1.0 BE A TWO
CEREPACH
Hieroglyphs for 'a two cerepach' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE SECOND
SLATTAN
Hieroglyphs for 'second slattan' 1.0 BE A SECOND
SLATTAN
Hieroglyphs for 'a second slattan' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE THREE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'three stony' 1.0 BE A THREE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a three stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE FOUR
SLATTAN
Hieroglyphs for 'four slattan' 1.0 BE A FOUR
SLATTAN
Hieroglyphs for 'a four slattan' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE FIVE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'five stony' 1.0 BE A FIVE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a five stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE SIX
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'six stony' 1.0 BE A SIX
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a six stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE SEVEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'seven stony' 1.0 BE A SEVEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a seven stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE EIGHT
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'eight stony' 1.0 BE A EIGHT
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a eight stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE NINE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'nine stony' 1.0 BE A NINE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a nine stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'ten stony' 1.0 BE A TEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a ten stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE ELEVEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'eleven stony' 1.0 BE A ELEVEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a eleven stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWELVE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twelve stony' 1.0 BE A TWELVE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twelve stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE THIRTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'thirteen stony' 1.0 BE A THIRTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a thirteen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE FOURTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'fourteen stony' 1.0 BE A FOURTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a fourteen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE FIFTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'fifteen stony' 1.0 BE A FIFTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a fifteen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE SIXTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'sixteen stony' 1.0 BE A SIXTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a sixteen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE SEVENTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'seventeen stony' 1.0 BE A SEVENTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a seventeen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE EIGHTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'eighteen stony' 1.0 BE A EIGHTEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a eighteen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE NINETEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'nineteen stony' 1.0 BE A NINETEEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a nineteen stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-ONE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-one stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-ONE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-one stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-TWO
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-two stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-TWO
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-two stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-THREE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-three stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-THREE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-three stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-FOUR
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-four stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-FOUR
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-four stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-FIVE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-five stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-FIVE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-five stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-SIX
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-six stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-SIX
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-six stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-SEVEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-seven stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-SEVEN
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-seven stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-EIGHT
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-eight stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-EIGHT
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-eight stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE TWENTY-NINE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'twenty-nine stony' 1.0 BE A TWENTY-NINE
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a twenty-nine stony' 1.0
BEFORE
THE SPEAK
Hieroglyphs for 'before the speak' 1.0 BE THIRTY
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'thirty stony' 1.0 BE A THIRTY
STONY
Hieroglyphs for 'a thirty stony' 1.0

١٤٤٣

١٤

١٤٢

١٤١

١٤

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

١٤١

HIEROGLYPHICS.
1. SET UP
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 181. THOYTH
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 189. THIRTY
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
2. PREPARE
CEASE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 182. MECHIR
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 200. FORTY TWO
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
G. RELATIONS. 183. MESORE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 201. A HUNDRED
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
3. IN ORDER THAT
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 184. FIRST DAY
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 202. A THOUSAND
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
4. WHEREVER
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 185. THIRTIETH
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 203. MCDXXXVIII
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
5. LAND
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ I. NUMBERS Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 204. SEVERAL
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
6. ALSO, WITH
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 186. ONE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ K. SOUNDS?
7. MOREOVER
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 187. FIRST
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 205. Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
8. LIKEWISE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 188. TWO
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 210. Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
9. IN
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 189. SECOND
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 211. Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
10. ITON, AT
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 190. THREE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 212. Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
11. OVER, ON
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 191. THIRD
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 213. Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
12. FOR
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 192. THRICE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 214. Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
13. BY THE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 193. FOUR
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ SUPPOSED ENCHORIAL ALPHABET.
14. OF, TO
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 194. FIVE
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
II. TIME 195. SEVEN
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
15. DAY
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 196. EIGHTH
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
16. MONTH
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 197. TEN
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
17. YEAR
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ 198. SEVENTEEN
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ Ⲁⲑⲓⲧ
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible texture, minor blemishes, and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor blemishes and faint, illegible markings that could be bleed-through from the other side of the page. There is no text or other content on this page.
HIEROGLYPHICS.

I. ADDITIONS. 21 * BARBAD. Hieroglyphic symbols for Barbad 78 * CROCODILE. Hieroglyphic symbols for Crocodile b Hieroglyphic symbols for Upper and Lower UPPER, LOWER. Hieroglyphic symbols for Upper and Lower

II. SPECIMENS OF PIRAMES. RON. INSCR. LAST LINE.

Hieroglyphic text from the last line of the Ron. inscription

... ΕΤΕΡΕΟΥΛΙΟΥ ΤΟΙΣ ΤΕΙΕΡΟΙΣ ΚΑΙ ΕΤΧΩΡΙΟΙΣ ΚΑΙ ΕΛΛΗΝΙΚΟΙΣ ΓΡΑΜΜΑΣΙΝ

Hieroglyphic text from the second line of the Ron. inscription

ΚΑΙ ΣΤΗΝ ΔΙΕΝΕΚΑΣ ΤΟΙΣ ΤΩΝ ΤΕ ΠΡΩΤΩΝ ΚΑΙ ΔΕΥΤΕΡΩΝ . . . . .

Hieroglyphic text from the third line of the Ron. inscription

III. CAMBRIENSIS OF MANUSCRIPTS.

Hieroglyphic text from the Cambriensis manuscript

Hieroglyphic text from the Cambriensis manuscript

Hieroglyphic symbols and cartouches from the Cambriensis manuscript

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

100 101 102 103 104 105 106 107 108 109 110 111 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 120 121 122 123 124 125 126 127 128 129 130

A series of faint, stylized illustrations or symbols arranged horizontally at the bottom of the page. These include a circular emblem on the left, followed by several vertical and horizontal decorative motifs, and a rectangular frame on the right containing internal patterns. The symbols are very light and appear to be bleed-through from the reverse side of the paper.
HIEROGLYPHICS.

L. ADDITIONS 21* Damalis Hieroglyphic sign for Damalis 78* CROCODILE a Hieroglyphic sign for Crocodile b Hieroglyphic sign for Upper, Lower 155* UPPER, LOWER Hieroglyphic sign for Upper, Lower

M. SPECIMENS OF PHRASES. ROS. INSCR. LAST LINE.

Hieroglyphic text from Ros. Inscr. last line

... ΣΤΕΡΕΟΥΛΙΟΥ ΤΟΙΣ ΤΕΙΕΡΟΙΣ ΚΑΙ ΕΓΧΩΡΙΟΙΣ ΚΑΙ ΕΛΛΗΝΙΚΟΙΣ ΓΡΑΜΜΑΣΙΝ

Hieroglyphic text from Ros. Inscr. last line

ΚΑΙ ΣΤΗΣΔΙ ΕΝ ΕΚΑΣΤΩΙ ΤΩΝ ΤΕ ΠΡΩΤΩΝ ΚΑΙ ΔΕΥΤΕΡΩΝ: .....

Hieroglyphic text from Ros. Inscr. last line

N. COMPARISON OF MANUSCRIPTS.

Comparison of manuscripts showing various hieroglyphic signs

Comparison of manuscripts showing various hieroglyphic signs with labels O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with significant water damage and staining.This image shows a single, blank page of aged, cream-colored paper. The paper is heavily stained with numerous brown and tan spots and blotches, which are characteristic of water damage or foxing. The stains are most prominent in the center and lower half of the page, with some smaller spots scattered throughout. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly rough and uneven due to the age and the staining process. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page.
Fig. 1. A large mechanical device with a large wheel and various levers and handles, labeled with letters A through W.

Fig. 1.

Fig. 2. A vertical mechanical device with a handle and several vertical rods, labeled with letters A through W.

Fig. 2.

Fig. 3. A Newton's cradle with five spheres, labeled with letters A through D.

Fig. 3.

Fig. 4. A large mechanical device with a large wheel and various levers and handles, labeled with letters A through W.

Fig. 4.

Fig. 5. A mechanical device with a balance scale and a small platform, labeled with letters A through G.

Fig. 5.

Fig. 6. A mechanical device with a large wheel and various levers and handles, labeled with letters A through W.

Fig. 6.

Fig. 7. A mechanical device with a large wheel and various levers and handles, labeled with letters A through W.

Fig. 7.

Faint architectural sketches of classical structures, including columns and arches, on aged paper with water stains.The image shows a page of aged, yellowed paper with numerous brown water stains. Faint, light-colored architectural sketches are visible across the page. In the upper left, there is a sketch of a classical column with a capital. In the center, there is a larger, more detailed sketch of a column with a capital and a base. To the right of the center, there is a sketch of a smaller column. In the lower left, there is a sketch of an archway or a vaulted structure. In the lower right, there is a sketch of a column with a base. The sketches are very faint and appear to be pencil or light ink drawings.
Figures 5, 6, and 7: Schematic diagrams of electrical circuits. Fig. 5 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb. Fig. 6 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a switch. Fig. 7 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a rheostat.

Fig. 5. Fig. 6. Fig. 7.

Fig. 1: A large, detailed illustration of a mechanical apparatus, likely a generator or motor. It features a large central wheel (A) mounted on a frame (B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z). A hand crank (W) is attached to the side.

Fig. 1.

Figures 8, 9, 10, 11, and 12: Schematic diagrams of electrical circuits. Fig. 8 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a switch. Fig. 9 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a rheostat. Fig. 10 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a rheostat. Fig. 11 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a rheostat. Fig. 12 shows a battery connected to a wire with a bulb and a rheostat.

Fig. 8. Fig. 9. Fig. 10. Fig. 11. Fig. 12.

Fig. 4: A small schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a switch or a small battery.

Fig. 4.

Fig. 13: A schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a wire or a wire with a bulb.

Fig. 13.

Fig. 2: A large, detailed illustration of a mechanical apparatus, similar to Fig. 1 but with a different configuration. It features a large central wheel (A) mounted on a frame (B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z). A hand crank (W) is attached to the side.

Fig. 2.

Fig. 15: A schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a battery or a battery with a bulb.

Fig. 15.

Fig. 5: A small schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a switch or a small battery.

Fig. 5.

Fig. 16: A schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a battery or a battery with a bulb.

Fig. 16.

Fig. 14.
Fig. 14: A schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a wire or a wire with a bulb.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A schematic diagram of a circuit component, possibly a wire or a wire with a bulb.
Fig. 16: A large, detailed illustration of a mechanical apparatus, possibly a battery or a battery with a bulb.

Fig. 16.

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with numerous brown stains and foxing.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, cream-colored tone and a slightly textured surface. It is heavily marked with numerous brown stains, likely from water damage or foxing, which are scattered across the entire surface. There are also some faint, illegible markings at the top edge, possibly from a label or a stamp. The overall appearance is that of an old, weathered document page.
Fig. 1. A large, complex mechanical apparatus for generating electricity, featuring a large wheel (A) mounted on a stand (B). A hand crank (W) is attached to the wheel. Various electrical components and connections are labeled with letters such as C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, X, Y, Z, and a. The apparatus is mounted on a sturdy base.
Fig. 6, 7, 8. Three small diagrams showing electrical discharges. Fig. 6 shows a positive (Pos.) and negative (Neg.) charge. Fig. 7 shows a negative (Neg.) charge. Fig. 8 shows a negative (Neg.) charge and a positive (Pos.) charge. The charges are represented by spheres and are connected by wavy lines representing electrical sparks.
Fig. 9, 10, 11. Three diagrams showing electrical discharges. Fig. 9 shows a positive (Pos.) and negative (Neg.) charge. Fig. 10 shows a negative (Neg.) charge. Fig. 11 shows a positive (Pos.) and negative (Neg.) charge. The charges are represented by spheres and are connected by wavy lines representing electrical sparks.
Fig. 4. A small diagram showing a mechanical component, possibly a switch or a connector, with two circular terminals and a central body.
Fig. 13. A long, curved tube with a glass bulb at one end (A) and a metal cap at the other (B). The tube is labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 2. A mechanical apparatus for generating electricity, featuring a large wheel (A) mounted on a stand (B). A hand crank (W) is attached to the wheel. Various electrical components and connections are labeled with letters such as C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, X, Y, Z, and a.
Fig. 15. A diagram showing a series of vertical rods or wires (a, b, c, d) supporting a horizontal wire (m, n). A central rod (B) is positioned between the vertical rods. The entire assembly is mounted on a base.
Fig. 5, 12. Two diagrams showing electrical discharges. Fig. 5 shows a mechanical component, possibly a switch or a connector, with two circular terminals and a central body. Fig. 12 shows a positive (Pos.) and negative (Neg.) charge. The charges are represented by spheres and are connected by wavy lines representing electrical sparks.
Fig. 14. A diagram showing a series of horizontal wires or rods (a, b, c, d) supporting a horizontal wire (m, n). The entire assembly is mounted on a base.
Fig. 3. A diagram showing a mechanical component, possibly a switch or a connector, with two circular terminals and a central body.
Fig. 16. A diagram showing a large, ornate container or jar (B) with a decorative pattern. A sphere (A) is positioned above the container, connected by a thin rod.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige or cream-colored background. The surface is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are characteristic of old paper. There are also some faint, illegible markings or smudges scattered across the page, but no clear text or illustrations are visible. The overall texture appears slightly grainy due to the age of the paper.
Fig. 1: A horizontal rod with a small sphere at one end.

Fig. 1

Fig. 2: A large Leyden jar with a glass cylinder on top and a metal coating on the glass.

Fig. 2

Fig. 3: A large electrical apparatus with a vertical stand and a horizontal arm.

Fig. 3

Fig. 4: A circular plate with a central hole and four radial lines.

Fig. 4

Fig. 5: A small vertical rod with a horizontal arm at the top.

Fig. 5

Fig. 6: A T-shaped electrical component with a central vertical rod and horizontal arms.

Fig. 6

Fig. 7: A horizontal rod with a central point.

Fig. 7

Fig. 8: A cylindrical component with a central rod.

Fig. 8

Fig. 9: A vertical rod with a horizontal arm and several small spheres.

Fig. 9

Fig. 10: A vertical rod with a horizontal arm and a sphere at the end.

Fig. 10

Fig. 11: A vertical rod with a horizontal arm and a sphere at the end.

Fig. 11

Fig. 12: A horizontal base with several vertical rods.

Fig. 12

Fig. 13: Two small spheres on stands.

Fig. 13

Fig. 14: Two spheres on stands with internal structures.

Fig. 14

Fig. 15: Two spheres on stands.

Fig. 15

Fig. 16: A complex geometric diagram with a circle and various lines.

Fig. 16

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with numerous small brown spots (foxing) and a white triangular tab at the bottom right.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are characteristic of old paper. A white triangular tab is visible at the bottom right corner, possibly a piece of tape or a label remnant. The overall texture of the paper appears slightly grainy and uneven.

Fig. 2.

A horizontal rod with a ball at one end, labeled A and B, and a point C in the middle.

Fig. 4.

A circular plate with a central point labeled S, and points A, B, C, D, E, F around its perimeter.

Fig. 5.

A horizontal rod with a central point C, and points A, B, D, E, F, G, H at various locations.

Fig. 1.

A large apparatus consisting of a tall vertical rod (G) mounted on a cylindrical base (C). The base has a scale (D) and a horizontal arm (A) with a ball (e). The top of the rod has a knob (M) and a point (N).

Fig. 7.

A horizontal rod with points M, A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N along its length.

Fig. 3.

A large apparatus with a vertical stand (C) and a horizontal arm (A). The arm has a central point (D) and a ball (B). A smaller diagram below shows a horizontal rod with points d, c, e.

Fig. 6.

A horizontal rod with points A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N.

Fig. 8.

A horizontal rod with a ball at one end and a point at the other, labeled A and B.

Fig. 9.

A vertical stand with a horizontal arm (A) and a ball (B). The arm has points m, n, o, p, q, r, s, t, u, v, w, x, y, z.

Fig. 10.

A vertical stand with a horizontal arm (A) and a ball (B). The arm has points m, n, o, p, q, r, s, t, u, v, w, x, y, z.

Fig. 11.

A vertical stand with a horizontal arm (A) and a ball (B). The arm has points m, n, o, p, q, r, s, t, u, v, w, x, y, z.

Fig. 12.

A diagram showing a horizontal rod with points M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.

Fig. 13.

Two circular plates on stands, labeled A and B.

Fig. 14.

Two circular plates on stands, labeled A and B, with points M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.

Fig. 15.

Two circular plates on stands, labeled A and B, with points M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.

Fig. 16.

A complex geometric diagram showing a circle with points A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including several small, brownish water stains and some minor discoloration, particularly along the left edge and top. There is no text or other markings on the page.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A large horizontal cylindrical rod mounted on a vertical stand with a square base. Numerous small spheres are suspended from the bottom of the rod by thin threads.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A horizontal cylindrical rod with two small spheres suspended from its ends by threads. The spheres are labeled M and N.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A small horizontal cylindrical rod with a sphere labeled M suspended from its left end by a thread.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A horizontal rod with a vertical cylinder suspended from its center. The rod has labels G, A, B, and C.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A horizontal rod mounted on a vertical stand with a circular base. Two spheres are suspended from the rod by threads.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A horizontal rod mounted on a vertical stand with a square base. The rod has labels A, B, C, and D.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A geometric diagram of a hexagonal prism with vertices labeled A through H.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A geometric diagram of a square prism with vertices labeled A through D.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A geometric diagram of a truncated octahedron with vertices labeled A through S.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A geometric diagram of a truncated octahedron with vertices labeled A through S.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A geometric diagram of a truncated octahedron with vertices labeled A through S.
Fig. 12.
Fig. 12: A diagram of a cylindrical container with a dome-shaped top. It has labels A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 13.
Fig. 13: A diagram of a cylindrical container with a vertical rod or wire passing through its center. It has labels A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, J, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Faint architectural drawing of a horizontal beam or shelf with a vertical support.A faint architectural sketch showing a horizontal beam or shelf structure. A vertical line descends from the center of the beam to a trapezoidal base, possibly representing a column or a support.
Faint architectural drawing of a vertical column or support with a horizontal top.A faint architectural sketch of a vertical column. It features a horizontal top surface and a trapezoidal base, suggesting a column or a support structure.
Faint architectural drawing of a vertical element, possibly a column or support.A faint architectural sketch of a vertical element, possibly a column or a support, with a horizontal top and a vertical body.
Faint architectural drawing of a column with a decorative capital.A faint architectural sketch of a column. It has a decorative capital at the top and a fluted shaft, with a trapezoidal base.
Faint architectural drawing of a rectangular structure, possibly a pedestal or base.A faint architectural sketch of a rectangular structure, possibly a pedestal or a base, with a decorative top and a fluted shaft.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A horizontal rod AB mounted on a stand, with points C, E, Y, and D marked along its length. Several small spheres are suspended from the rod by thin threads.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A horizontal rod AB with a point E marked. A sphere M is suspended by a thread from the left end, and another sphere M is suspended from the right end.
Nat.
Nat.: A horizontal rod labeled O.
Pos.
Pos.: A sphere labeled M.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A horizontal rod with points G, A, D, C, and B marked. A vertical cylinder E is suspended from point D.
Fig. 3: A horizontal rod with points n, r, h, c, g, k, m marked. A vertical stand supports it, with spheres i and y suspended from points f and u.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A horizontal rod with points A, C, and B marked. A vertical stand supports it at point C.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A hexagonal wireframe with vertices labeled V and R.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A square wireframe with vertices labeled V and R.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A wireframe of a truncated octahedron with a vertex labeled s.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A wireframe of a truncated octahedron with a vertex labeled A.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A wireframe of a truncated octahedron.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A cylindrical container with a dome-shaped top. Labels include A, B, a, b, c, d, e, f, g, h, i, k, l, m, n, o, p, q, r, s, t, u, v, w, x, y, z.
Fig. 12.
Fig. 12: A cylindrical container with a vertical rod passing through it. Labels include A, B, c, d, e, f, g, h, i, k, l, m, n, o, p, q, r, s, t, u, v, w, x, y, z.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and faint smudges, particularly along the left edge and top.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige or cream-colored background. The paper has a slightly textured appearance. There are numerous small, irregular brown spots scattered across the surface, which are characteristic of foxing, a form of mold damage. These spots are more concentrated along the left edge and the top of the page. There are also some faint, larger smudges or stains, particularly near the top center. The overall appearance is that of an old, weathered piece of paper.
TOMFIDA.
Fig. 1.
Anatomical diagram of a Tomfida fish, showing internal organs and muscles with various labels.
Fig. 2.
GYMNOTUS.
Anatomical diagram of a Gymnotus fish, showing internal organs and muscles with various labels.
Fig. 3.
SILURUS.
Anatomical diagram of a Silurus fish, showing internal organs and muscles with various labels.
Fig. 4.
Diagram of a horizontal wire with points labeled B, W, A, and F.
Diagram of a vertical glass tube (Fig. 5) with a stopper at the top and a base, containing a wire and other components labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 6.
Diagram of a U-shaped glass tube (Fig. 6) with two cups at the ends, labeled A.
Fig. 7.
Diagram of a glass tube (Fig. 7) placed on a wooden table, with a wire passing through it.
Diagram of a glass tube (Fig. 8) with a bulb in the middle, labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 9.
Diagram of a circular wire (Fig. 9) with points labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 10.
Diagram of a U-shaped wire (Fig. 10) with points labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 11.
Diagram of an electrical setup (Fig. 11) with a wire, a battery, and a glass tube, with points labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with numerous brown spots and stains, showing signs of water damage and discoloration.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, cream-colored tone and is heavily marked with numerous small, irregular brown spots and larger, faint stains, characteristic of foxing or water damage over time. The texture of the paper appears slightly grainy. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page. A small, dark, triangular mark is visible in the bottom-left corner, possibly from a binding or a piece of tape.
TORPEDO.
Fig. 1.
Anatomical diagram of a Torpedo (electric eel) showing internal organs and nerves. Labels include A, B, b, d, E, F, g, h, l, m, n, o, and p. The diagram shows the large, segmented body with internal organs and a central nerve trunk.
Fig. 4.
Diagram of a simple electrical circuit. It shows two horizontal lines, the top one labeled B and the bottom one labeled C. A vertical line connects them at a point labeled W. A point A is marked on the top line between B and W.
Fig. 6.
Diagram of a U-shaped glass tube with two cups at the ends. The tube is labeled A at its peak. The cups contain liquid, and the tube is connected to a battery (represented by a zigzag line).
Fig. 10.
Diagram of a circular coil of wire. A horizontal line passes through the center of the coil, labeled A on the right and B on the left.
Fig. 11.
Diagram of a long, thin coil of wire. It is labeled A at the left end, B at the right end, and C in the middle. A point E is marked on the left side of the coil.
Fig. 5.
Diagram of a cylindrical apparatus mounted on a stand. It has a top cap labeled A, a central rod, and a base labeled B. A wire labeled R enters from the top, and a wire labeled X is shown to the left. The cylinder has a label C and a label D.
Fig. 8.
Diagram of a U-shaped glass tube with a bulb in the middle. The bulb is labeled C. The tube is labeled A at the left end, B at the top of the bulb, and D at the bottom of the bulb. A wire labeled E is shown to the right.
Fig. 2.
GYMNOTES.
Anatomical diagram of a Gymnotes (electric ray) showing internal organs and nerves. Labels include A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, L, M, N, and O. The diagram shows the elongated body with internal organs and a central nerve trunk.
Fig. 3.
SILURUS.
Illustration of a Silurus (catfish) fish, shown in profile.
Fig. 7.
Diagram of a cylindrical apparatus on a stand. It has a top cap labeled A and a base labeled C. A wire labeled B is shown inside the cylinder.
Fig. 9.
Diagram of a complex electrical apparatus. It includes a battery (labeled M), a coil (labeled A), a stand (labeled E), and a wire (labeled G). Other labels include B, C, D, and V.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with numerous small brown spots (foxing) scattered across the surface.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are characteristic of old paper. There is no text or other markings on the page.
Fig. 1: A tall, vertical glass rod or tube with a small sphere at the top and a base with a handle.

Fig. 1

Fig. 2: A circular glass vessel with a small sphere on top and two side ports.

Fig. 2

Fig. 3: A circular plate with several small spheres or pins on its surface.

Fig. 3

Fig. 5: A vertical rod with a small sphere at the top, mounted on a rectangular base.

Fig. 5

Fig. 4: A circular plate with several small spheres or pins on its surface, similar to Fig. 3.

Fig. 4

Fig. 12: A vertical rod with a small sphere at the top, mounted on a base with a handle.

Fig. 12

Fig. 1: A large, complex apparatus featuring a large circular disk mounted on a wooden frame with various rods and handles.

Fig. 1

Fig. 8: A triangular arrangement of rods and spheres, forming a V-shape.

Fig. 8

Fig. 14: A vertical rod with a small sphere at the top, mounted on a base with a handle.

Fig. 14

Fig. 13: A horizontal rod with several small spheres or pins along its length.

Fig. 13

Fig. 9: Two circular plates, one slightly larger than the other, with a small sphere on top of the larger one.

Fig. 9

Fig. 10: A circular plate with a small sphere on top, mounted on a base with a handle.

Fig. 10

Fig. 11: A circular plate with a small sphere on top, mounted on a base with a handle.

Fig. 11

Fig. 16: A vertical rod with a small sphere at the top, mounted on a base with a handle.

Fig. 16

Fig. 15: A vertical rod with a small sphere at the top, mounted on a base with a handle.

Fig. 15

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with numerous brown stains and a faint blue mark in the upper right corner.This image shows a single, blank page of aged, cream-colored paper. The paper is heavily marked with numerous brown, irregular stains of varying sizes, which are likely water damage or foxing. These stains are scattered across the entire surface, with a higher concentration in the upper half and along the right edge. In the upper right quadrant, there is a small, distinct blue mark that appears to be a smudge or a piece of tape residue. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including some minor discoloration and faint, illegible markings that could be bleed-through from the other side of the page. The overall appearance is that of an old, unused document page.
Fig. 1. A tall vertical rod with a scale, a sphere at the top, and a base with a small sphere.

Fig. 1.

Fig. 2. A circular frame with a central rod and a small sphere on the left.

Fig. 2.

Fig. 3. A circular plate with several contact points and a central rod.

Fig. 3.

Fig. 6. A diagram showing two vertical rods (A and B) connected by a wire, with a base and a curved line labeled K.

Fig. 6.

Fig. 4. A circular plate with contact points and a small diagram below showing a rod with points d, p, and f.

Fig. 4.

Fig. 7.
Fig. 7. A large, complex apparatus with a circular disk, a central rod, and various wires and supports.
Fig. 8. A triangular arrangement of three spheres connected by wires.

Fig. 8.

Fig. 14. A vertical rod with a scale and various contact points, with a small diagram below showing a rod with points O, N, L, M, A, B, C, D, and R.

Fig. 14.

Fig. 13. A horizontal rod with various points labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.

Fig. 13.

Fig. 15. A vertical rod with a scale and various contact points.

Fig. 15.

Fig. 16.
Fig. 16. A vertical rod with a scale and various contact points.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9. Two circular plates, one with a handle, labeled A, B, C, E.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10. Two circular plates, one with a handle, labeled A, B, C, E.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11. A circular plate with a handle and a smaller circular plate on top, labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige or cream-colored background. The surface is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, characteristic of foxing or water damage. There are also some faint, illegible markings and smudges scattered across the page, particularly towards the top and bottom edges. The overall texture appears slightly grainy, typical of old paper.

Fig. I.

Fig. I: A vertical apparatus with a glass tube and a metal rod. Labels include 'D' on the tube, 'A' on a sphere, and 'B' on a base.

Fig. 2.

Fig. 2: A large apparatus with four glass tubes on a circular base. Labels include 'A', 'B', 'C', and 'D' pointing to various parts of the tubes and base.
Fig. 3: A small apparatus with a glass tube and a metal rod. Labels include 'A', 'B', and 'C'.
Fig. 4: A curved metal rod or wire. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.
Fig. 5: A vertical rod with a sphere at the top. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.

Fig. II.

Fig. II: A large glass bottle with a metal rod inserted. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.

Fig. III.

Fig. III: A small vertical apparatus with a glass tube. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.

Fig. IV.

Fig. IV: A vertical apparatus with a glass tube and a metal rod. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.
Fig. V: A large glass bottle with a metal rod inserted. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.
Fig. VI: A small vertical apparatus with a glass tube. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.

Fig. VII.

Fig. VII: Two glass bottles connected by a wire. Labels include 'A', 'B', and 'C'.

Fig. VIII.

Fig. VIII: A large glass globe with a metal rod inserted. Labels include 'A', 'B', 'C', 'D', and 'E'.
Fig. IX: A large glass globe with a metal rod inserted. Labels include 'A', 'B', 'C', 'D', and 'E'.

Fig. X.

Fig. X: A small vertical apparatus with a glass tube. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.

Fig. XI.

Fig. XI: Two circular cross-sections of a globe. Labels include 'A' and 'B'.

Fig. XII.

Fig. XII: A large apparatus with a metal rod and a glass tube. Labels include 'A', 'B', 'C', 'D', 'E', 'F', 'G', 'H', 'I', 'J', 'K', 'L', 'M', 'N', 'O', 'P', 'Q', 'R', 'S', 'T', 'U', 'V', 'W', 'X', 'Y', 'Z'.
Fig. XIII: A large circular apparatus with a glass tube. Labels include 'A', 'B', 'C', 'D', 'E', 'F', 'G', 'H', 'I', 'J', 'K', 'L', 'M', 'N', 'O', 'P', 'Q', 'R', 'S', 'T', 'U', 'V', 'W', 'X', 'Y', 'Z'.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is marked by numerous small, irregular brown spots and larger, fainter stains, characteristic of foxing or water damage over time. A faint, thin, diagonal line runs across the page from the upper left towards the lower right. The overall tone is warm and yellowish, typical of old paper.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A glass jar with a rod passing through it. The rod has a small sphere at the top (T) and a larger sphere at the bottom (B). The jar is labeled with A, G, D, E.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A vertical rod with three spheres. The top sphere is labeled C, the middle one A, and the bottom one B. The rod is labeled D.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A complex apparatus with several glass tubes on a wooden base. A central rod has spheres labeled C, E, A, D (labeled 'Pos.'), and B (labeled 'Neg.').
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A glass jar with a rod passing through it. The rod has a sphere at the top (F) and a handle at the bottom (B). The jar is labeled with G, C, D, A.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A U-shaped metal frame with spheres at the ends (A, B) and a central point (E). The ends are labeled C and D.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A vertical rod with a sphere at the top (A) and a spring at the bottom (B). The rod is labeled m.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A glass jar with a rod passing through it. The rod has a sphere at the top (C) and a handle at the bottom (F). The jar is labeled with B, E, m, n.
Fig. 12.
Fig. 12: A small apparatus with two vertical rods and spheres labeled A and B.
Fig. 13.
Fig. 13: A small apparatus with a vertical rod and a sphere.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A glass jar with a rod passing through it. The rod has a sphere at the top (F) and a handle at the bottom (B). The jar is labeled with A.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: Two glass jars connected by a wire. The left jar has a rod with a sphere at the top (F). The right jar has a rod with a sphere at the top (B). The wire is labeled A.
Fig. 17.
Fig. 17: A complex apparatus with a large sphere (D) at the bottom and various rods and spheres labeled A, B, C, E, F, G, H, L, M, N, P, Q, R, S.
Fig. 14.
Fig. 14: A complex apparatus with a central sphere (D) and various rods and spheres labeled A, B, C, E, F, G, H.
Fig. 16.
Fig. 16: A central sphere (D) with four smaller spheres (A, B, C) attached to it.
Fig. 15.
Fig. 15: Two circular plates with a central hole and a rod passing through them.
Fig. 19.
Fig. 19: A complex apparatus with a large sphere (D) at the bottom and various rods and spheres labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, X.
Fig. 18.
Fig. 18: A large circular plate (B) with a rod passing through it. The rod has a sphere at the top (F) and a handle at the bottom (B). The plate is labeled with A, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, X.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige or cream-colored background. The surface is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are characteristic of old paper. There are also some faint, larger, and more diffuse brownish stains, particularly towards the top and left edges. The overall texture appears slightly grainy, and there are no legible characters or distinct illustrations on the page.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: Two vertical glass tubes, one labeled 'c' at the top, likely Leyden jars or similar electrostatic devices.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A large, ornate glass jar on a stand, labeled 'c' at the top, likely a Leyden jar.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A smaller glass jar on a stand, labeled 'c' at the top.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A small, cylindrical glass jar on a stand.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A large, tall glass jar with a long neck and a small sphere at the top, likely a Leyden jar.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A glass jar on a stand with a long rod and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A small, rectangular glass jar on a stand.
Fig. 8: A glass jar on a stand with a long rod and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A complex apparatus with a vertical stand, horizontal rods, and spheres, likely an electroscope or similar device.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A small, conical object, possibly a component of an electroscope.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A small, vertical apparatus with a handle and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 12.
Fig. 12: A large, ornate apparatus with a circular frame and a long vertical rod, likely a large electroscope or similar device.
Fig. 13.
Fig. 13: A large, ornate apparatus with a circular frame and a long vertical rod, similar to Fig. 12.
Fig. 14: A horizontal rod with a sphere at one end and a handle at the other.
Fig. 15.
Fig. 15: A glass jar on a stand with a long rod and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 16.
Fig. 16: A glass jar on a stand with a long rod and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 17.
Fig. 17: A small, vertical apparatus with a handle and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 18.
Fig. 18: A small, vertical apparatus with a handle and a sphere at the top.
Fig. 19: A curved line or arc, possibly representing a path or a component of an apparatus.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous brown spots and stains, particularly concentrated along the left edge and top.This image shows a single, blank page of aged paper. The paper has a warm, light beige or cream-colored tone. It is heavily marked with numerous brown spots and stains, which are characteristic of foxing or water damage over time. These spots are most prominent along the left edge and are scattered across the rest of the page. There is no text, handwriting, or printed content on the page. The overall texture appears slightly grainy due to the age of the paper.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: Three vertical glass tubes or cylinders, labeled A, B, and C, mounted on a common base.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A glass cylinder with a metal cap (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top. The cylinder is mounted on a stand (F).
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A glass cylinder with a metal cap (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top. The cylinder is mounted on a stand (F).
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A glass cylinder with a metal cap (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A tall, thin glass rod or tube with a small sphere (A) at the top and a larger sphere (B) at the bottom.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A small glass tube with a metal cap (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A semi-circular metal plate (A) mounted on a stand. A small sphere (B) is suspended from the center of the plate.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A small glass tube with a metal cap (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 11.
Fig. 11: A complex metal frame with several spheres (A, B, C, D, E, F) and rods, mounted on a base.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A simple cone-shaped object, possibly a funnel or a small container.
Fig. 8: A glass cylinder with a metal cap (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top. The cylinder is mounted on a stand (F).
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A large, complex metal frame with several spheres (A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z) and rods, mounted on a base.
Fig. 12.
Fig. 12: A large, complex metal frame with several spheres (A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z) and rods, mounted on a base.
Fig. 14.
Fig. 14: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 13.
Fig. 13: A large, complex metal frame with several spheres (A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z) and rods, mounted on a base.
Fig. A.
Fig. A: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 15.
Fig. 15: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 16.
Fig. 16: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 18.
Fig. 18: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 17.
Fig. 17: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 19.
Fig. 19: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
Fig. 20.
Fig. 20: A small metal frame with a sphere (A) and a rod (B) passing through it. A small sphere (C) is suspended from the top.
A blank, aged page with a light beige background, showing numerous small brown spots (foxing) and faint, illegible markings.This image shows a blank, aged page with a light beige background. The paper is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, likely foxing or water damage. There are also some faint, illegible markings or smudges scattered across the surface. The overall texture appears slightly grainy, characteristic of old paper.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A mechanical device with a central vertical rod and two horizontal arms, each with a hook, mounted on a rectangular base.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A large circular platform with a central vertical rod and a horizontal arm with a hook, mounted on a pedestal base.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A hand holding a U-shaped metal rod with a hook at one end and a small weight or component at the other.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A U-shaped metal rod with a hook at one end and a small weight or component at the other.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A vertical rod with a hook at the top and a small weight or component at the bottom.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A mechanical device with a central circular component and a horizontal arm with a hook, mounted on a base.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A large mechanical device with a central vertical rod and two horizontal arms, each with a hook, mounted on a base.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A circular dial with a scale and a needle, mounted on a base.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A circular dial with a scale and a needle, mounted on a base.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A large mechanical device with a central vertical rod and two horizontal arms, each with a hook, mounted on a base.
Fig. 6.
Fig. 6: A scientific apparatus consisting of two horizontal glass tubes, each with a glass globe in the center. The tubes are mounted on a wooden base. Various points are labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, and H.
Fig. 4.
Fig. 4: A circular platform with a central vertical rod. A string is attached to the rod and passes over a pulley to a weight labeled B. The platform has markings around its edge and is labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 3.
Fig. 3: A hand holding a U-shaped glass tube. The tube has a small weight at one end and is labeled with letters A, B, C, and D.
Fig. 2.
Fig. 2: A U-shaped glass tube with a small weight at one end. It is labeled with letters A, B, C, and D.
Fig. 5.
Fig. 5: A vertical glass tube with a small weight at the top. It is labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 1.
Fig. 1: A large scientific apparatus with a central vertical rod and a balance scale. It includes a funnel and a weight. Various points are labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 9.
Fig. 9: A mechanical device with a pulley system and a weight. It is labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 7.
Fig. 7: A circular dial with numbers and letters arranged around its perimeter. It is labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 8.
Fig. 8: A circular dial with a needle and a scale. It is labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 10.
Fig. 10: A large scientific apparatus with a central vertical rod and a balance scale. It includes a funnel and a weight. Various points are labeled with letters A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water stains and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and shows signs of wear, including several small, dark brown spots (foxing) and larger, irregular water stains, particularly along the left edge and bottom. The overall color is a warm, off-white or light beige.
Fig. 1
Fig. 1: A technical drawing of a cross-shaped mechanical component, possibly a part of a lathe or a specialized tool, with a central vertical shaft and horizontal arms, enclosed within an oval boundary.
Fig. 2
Fig. 2: A technical drawing of a mechanical assembly, possibly a set of gears or a small engine component, showing multiple cylindrical parts and connecting mechanisms.
Fig. 3
Fig. 3: A technical drawing of a large, complex mechanical apparatus, possibly a lathe or a specialized tool, featuring a tall vertical structure and a horizontal base with various components and figures for scale.
ELLIPTIC TURNING.
Fig. 2
Fig. 2: A technical drawing of a large, complex mechanical apparatus, possibly a lathe or a specialized tool, featuring a tall vertical structure and a horizontal base with various components and figures for scale.
Fig. 3
Fig. 3: A technical drawing of a mechanical component, possibly a gear or a small engine part, showing a cylindrical body with a gear-like structure.
Fig. 4
Fig. 4: A technical drawing of a complex mechanical assembly, possibly a gear train or a specialized tool, featuring a large circular component and various connecting parts.
Fig. 4
Fig. 4: A technical drawing of a mechanical component, possibly a gear or a small engine part, showing a cylindrical body with a gear-like structure.
EMBRANKMENT.
Fig. 1
Fig. 1: A technical drawing of a cross-section of an embankment, showing a trapezoidal shape with a central vertical structure and a horizontal base.
Fig. 2
Fig. 2: A technical drawing of a long, rectangular embankment structure, possibly a wall or a foundation.
Fig. 3
Fig. 3: A technical drawing of a large, sloped embankment structure, showing a wide base and a gradual incline.
Fig. 4
Fig. 4: A technical drawing of a smaller, sloped embankment structure, showing a rounded top and a gradual incline.
Fig. 5
Fig. 5: A technical drawing of a rectangular embankment structure, possibly a wall or a foundation, showing a flat top and a vertical side.
A faded, sepia-toned illustration of a cityscape, possibly New York City, showing buildings and a body of water.A faded, sepia-toned illustration of a cityscape, possibly New York City, showing buildings and a body of water. The image is heavily stained with brown spots and has a low-contrast, washed-out appearance. The scene depicts a cluster of buildings along a waterfront, with a body of water in the foreground. The details are difficult to discern due to the fading and staining.

Fig. 1.

Diagram of the elliptograph mechanism showing a cross-shaped frame with a central pivot point D. A vertical rod B passes through D, and a horizontal rod A passes through D. A diagonal rod E is also pivoted at D. The entire assembly is enclosed within an elliptical path.
ELLIPTIC TURNING.

Fig. 2.

Detailed view of the elliptograph mechanism showing the internal gears and frame. The frame is supported by four legs (E, F, G, H). A large gear (A) is mounted on a vertical shaft (C). A smaller gear (K) is meshed with it. A horizontal rod (D) is attached to the mechanism.

Fig. 7.

Diagram showing a side view of the elliptograph mechanism with various components labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L.

Fig. 6.

Diagram showing a side view of the elliptograph mechanism with various components labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 3.
Diagram showing a side view of a mechanical component, possibly a gear or a housing, with labels A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 5.
Diagram showing a top view of the elliptograph mechanism with various gears and components labeled A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
Fig. 4.
Diagram showing a side view of a mechanical component, possibly a gear or a housing, with labels A, B, C, D, E, F, G, H, I, K, L, M, N, O, P, Q, R, S, T, U, V, W, X, Y, Z.
EMBANKMENT.

Fig. 1.

Cross-section of an embankment showing a central core of porous material (Porous) surrounded by a layer of stratum (Stratum). The core is labeled 'Retentive'.
Fig. 2.
Diagram showing a side view of a long, rectangular embankment structure.
Fig. 3.
Cross-section of a large embankment showing a central core of porous material (Porous) surrounded by a layer of stratum (Stratum). The core is labeled 'Retentive'.
Fig. 4.
Cross-section of an embankment showing a central core of porous material (Porous) surrounded by a layer of stratum (Stratum). The core is labeled 'Retentive'.
Fig. 5.
Cross-section of an embankment showing a central core of porous material (Porous) surrounded by a layer of stratum (Stratum). The core is labeled 'Retentive'.

10 5 0 5 10 15 20 feet.

A blank, aged, cream-colored page with a faint rectangular border and numerous brown stains, likely water damage or foxing.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is framed by a faint, double-lined rectangular border. Numerous small, irregular brown spots, characteristic of foxing or water damage, are scattered across the surface, with a higher concentration along the right edge and bottom. There is no text or other markings on the page.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with a faint rectangular border and numerous brown spots (foxing or water damage).This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is marked by numerous small, irregular brown spots, characteristic of foxing or water damage over time. A faint, double-lined rectangular border is visible near the edges of the page, suggesting it was once part of a larger, possibly decorated, layout. The left edge of the page shows a slight shadow, indicating it is part of a bound volume.
ENGLAND
English Miles.
Scale bar in English Miles, ranging from 0 to 80.

A horizontal scale bar with markings at 0, 20, 40, 60, and 80 miles. The text 'English Miles.' is positioned above the bar.

Historical map of England showing counties, major cities, and geographical features.

A detailed historical map of England, oriented with North at the top. The map is overlaid with a grid of latitude and longitude lines. Major geographical features include the North Sea to the north, the English Channel to the east, and the Irish Sea to the west. The map is divided into numerous counties, each labeled with its name. Major cities and towns are marked with dots and labeled. The map also shows the coastline, major rivers, and some inland features. The title 'ENGLAND' is prominently displayed in a decorative box at the top center. A scale bar in English miles is located at the bottom center.

A detailed historical map of the British Isles, showing the coastline, major cities, and a grid of latitude and longitude lines. The map is oriented with North at the top. The grid lines are labeled with longitude values (50, 51, 52, 53, 54, 55, 56, 57, 58, 59, 60) along the top and bottom edges, and latitude values (50, 51, 52, 53, 54, 55, 56, 57, 58, 59, 60) along the left and right edges. The map shows the British Isles, including Great Britain and Ireland, with various geographical features and place names visible. The map is framed by a border with these coordinate labels.
A historical map of England and Wales, showing the coastline, major cities, and geographical features. The map is oriented with North at the top. A title box in the upper left corner contains the word 'ENGLAND'. A scale bar is located below the title box. The map is framed by a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with numerical labels at the corners: 50, 52, 54, 56 on the left and 36, 38, 40, 42 on the bottom. The map shows the coastline of England and Wales, with labels for major cities such as London, York, Bristol, and Liverpool. The surrounding seas are labeled, including the North Sea, English Channel, and Atlantic Ocean. The map is aged and shows signs of wear, including stains and discoloration.
A detailed historical map of the British Isles and surrounding regions, including the Atlantic Ocean, North Sea, and various islands. The map features a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with labels for major cities, towns, and geographical features. The title 'BRITISH ISLES' is prominently displayed in the center. The map is oriented with North at the top.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows significant signs of wear, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and larger, irregular stains, particularly along the top and right edges. The texture appears slightly rough and discolored.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is covered with numerous small, brownish-yellow spots, known as foxing, which are most prominent along the top and right edges. There are also larger, irregular stains and discolorations, particularly near the top and bottom edges, suggesting water damage or age-related wear. The overall color is a warm, off-white or light cream, and the page appears to be part of a bound volume, as indicated by the slight shadow and texture on the right side.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page with visible water damage and staining.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is marked by numerous small, irregular brown spots and stains, characteristic of foxing or water damage over time. There is no text or other markings on the page.
A detailed historical map of the British Isles, showing the coastline, major cities, and internal regions. The map includes the Hebrides, Orkney and Shetland Islands, and the Scottish Highlands. Major cities like Glasgow, Edinburgh, London, and Liverpool are marked. The map is overlaid with a grid of latitude and longitude lines, with numbers 3, 4, 5, and 6 along the top and 53, 54, 55, and 56 along the left side. The title 'ENGLAND AND WALE' is visible at the bottom right.

6

5

4

3

6

5

4

3

6

5

4

3

ENGLAND AND WALES

1 0 1 2

ENGLAND
AND
WALES.

English Miles.

0 10 20 30 40 50 60

A detailed historical map of England and Wales, showing counties, major cities, and the coastline. The map is framed by a coordinate grid with numbers 1, 0, 1, 2 along the top and 56, 55, 54, 53 along the right side. A scale bar for English Miles (0 to 60) is located below the title. The title 'ENGLAND AND WALES.' is centered in a double-bordered box. The map shows the following features:
  <ul>
<li><b>Counties:</b> Durham, Northumberland, Yorkshire, Lincoln, Nottingham, Derby, Staffordshire, Warwick, Gloucester, Hereford, Shropshire, Oxford, Kent, Essex, Suffolk, Norfolk, Cambridgeshire, Lincoln, Nottingham, Derby, Staffordshire, Warwick, Gloucester, Hereford, Shropshire, Oxford, Kent, Essex, Suffolk, Norfolk, Cambridgeshire.</li>
<li><b>Cities and Towns:</b> London, York, Bristol, Birmingham, Manchester, Leeds, Sheffield, Nottingham, Derby, Lincoln, Leicester, Coventry, London, York, Bristol, Birmingham, Manchester, Leeds, Sheffield, Nottingham, Derby, Lincoln, Leicester, Coventry.</li>
<li><b>Water Bodies:</b> The River Thames, The River Severn, The River Wye, The River Humber, The River Aire, The River Ouse, The River Trent, The River Rib, The River Aire, The River Ouse, The River Trent, The River Rib.</li>
<li><b>Coastal Features:</b> The coastline of England and Wales, including the Isle of Wight, the Channel Islands (Jersey, Guernsey, Alderney, Sark), and the English Channel.</li>
<li><b>Grid:</b> A coordinate grid with numbers 1, 0, 1, 2 along the top and 56, 55, 54, 53 along the right side.</li>
<li><b>Scale:</b> A scale bar for English Miles (0 to 60) is located below the title.</li>
</ul>
</p>
</div>
<div data-bbox=WALES. PART I.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and a faint, irregular border near the edges.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is covered with numerous small, irregular brown spots, known as foxing, which are characteristic of old paper. There is a faint, irregular border near the edges of the page, possibly from the binding or the scanning process. The overall color is a light cream or off-white, with some darker brown spots scattered across the surface.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including numerous small brown spots (foxing) and larger, faint stains, particularly along the left edge and bottom. The page is framed by a thin, dark border.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance and is covered with numerous small, brownish spots known as foxing, which are more concentrated in the upper half and along the left edge. There are also some larger, faint, irregular stains, particularly towards the bottom and right sides. The page is framed by a thin, dark border, possibly the inner edge of the book's cover or the binding material. The overall appearance is that of a well-preserved but aged piece of paper.
A detailed historical map of the English counties of Dorset, Somerset, Devon, and Cornwall, showing towns, rivers, and coastlines. The map is oriented with North at the bottom. Major towns like Bristol, Exeter, Plymouth, and Tiverton are prominent. The Bristol Channel is to the west, and the Atlantic Ocean is to the south. The map includes a grid system with numbers 3, 4, 5 along the top and bottom edges, and letters L, I, S, N, E along the right edge. Numerous smaller towns and villages are labeled throughout the map area.
A detailed historical map of England and Wales, showing counties, towns, and geographical features. The map is framed by a grid with longitude and latitude markings. Major counties labeled include LEICESTER, NOTTINGHAM, LINCOLN, YORK, HUMBER, SUFFOLK, ESSEX, SURREY, HAMPSHIRE, and CANTERBURY. The coastline shows the STRAITS OF DOVER and the ISLE OF WIGHT. The map is signed 'Engraved by S. Hall, Bury St. Bloomst.' at the bottom right.

This is a detailed historical map of England and Wales, showing counties, towns, and geographical features. The map is framed by a grid with longitude and latitude markings. Major counties labeled include LEICESTER, NOTTINGHAM, LINCOLN, YORK, HUMBER, SUFFOLK, ESSEX, SURREY, HAMPSHIRE, and CANTERBURY. The coastline shows the STRAITS OF DOVER and the ISLE OF WIGHT. The map is signed 'Engraved by S. Hall, Bury St. Bloomst.' at the bottom right.

Longitude West 1 from Greenwich

A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration, particularly along the left edge and bottom.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the left edge and bottom. There is no text or other markings on the page.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, characteristic of old paper. There is no text or other markings on the page.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, characteristic of old paper. There is no text or other markings on the page.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges and discoloration, particularly along the right edge and bottom.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the right edge and bottom. There is no text or other markings on the page.
A blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf of a book. The page shows signs of wear, including faint smudges, discoloration, and a small tear near the bottom left corner.This image shows a blank, aged, cream-colored page, likely an endpaper or flyleaf from an old book. The paper has a slightly textured appearance with some minor discoloration and faint smudges, particularly along the left edge and bottom. There is a small, irregular tear or hole near the bottom left corner. The overall tone is warm and yellowish, characteristic of old paper.
Embossed circular seal of the Advocatorum Bibliotheca.An embossed circular seal is centered on a brown, textured book cover. The seal features a laurel wreath surrounding a central sunburst motif. The Latin text "ADVOCATORUM" is embossed along the top inner edge of the wreath, and "BIBLIOTHECA" is embossed along the bottom inner edge. The seal is slightly raised from the cover's surface.